FanStory.com
"Football - A Novel"


Prologue
Introduction

By barbara.wilkey

I'm beginning a new novel and am a little worried about this one. I wrote this novel while at home during the COVID lockdown. It's finished, but as with my many of my novels, my characters took it to places, I had no intentions of going. They've even changed the ending. It's different from any I've written.

It's still a romance, but doesn't have a huge back story. There is one, but it's not as prevalent as in my previous novels. This novel is about a Mother attempting to raise her children while holding down a full time job, with some normal and not so normal twists. It's also a little longer than my previous ones, by about 20,000 words.

Katherine Riley is a widow with four sons to raise by herself. Their ages range from 15 to 6 years old. Of course, being one of my novels there is at least one dog, a yellow Labrador, Daisy. I can promise an additional dog, but I'm not ready to reveal him. I had originally written in a cat, but the cat said too many dogs and wrote itself out.

George Riley, Katherine's deceased husband, died of a heart attack. He was a few years older than her but they went to same high school. Her attraction to him was that he wasn't a jock. They married as soon as she graduated from high school. He was still in college. After college he became a CEO of a large corporation. Business kept him occupied with travel and he was rarely home. Making money was the priority, not the family. Needless to say, Katherine doesn't need to worry about finances, but they do become an issue.

Katherine, now widowed for six months, moved her family from their penthouse in New York City to the small Texas town where she grew-up. Her mother is still alive and lives in that town. She is an important part of Katherine's life.

After Katherine had three children, she went back to school and received an education degree, very much against her husband's wishes. She now has her first job, a high school math teacher.

As with many of my heroines, Katherine is a quiet and soft spoken lady. She finds herself in some interesting situations and struggles coping, especially while trying to protect her children, but she finds her strength when she needs it in the least expected circumstances.

I hope you come along with me while we discover more about Katherine. I don't want to tell too much about the story because there will be no reason to read it. As usual I don't have a decent title for it. I just call it "The Football Novel", but am looking at titles that reveal something about 'life's struggles'. I know the present title has nothing to do with what I've told you so far. Already one mystery. Another mystery is who is the hero of this story?

I'll need plenty of feedback on what works and what doesn't work with this novel. Like I said at the beginning, I have concerns about it. I'm not sure I'm comfortable with it.

Author Notes I hope you enjoy reading as much as I enjoyed writing it. I'm not positive all of this very long novel works.


Chapter 1
Football Chapter 1 part 1

By barbara.wilkey

Chapter 1 part 1 day 1

Dressed for an early morning run, Katherine Riley opened the front door, stretched, and inhaled. What a gorgeous day. It's peaceful. So different from hectic city life.

A cold front had entered during the night and the temperature had dropped to seventy-four degrees. Her yellow Labrador, Daisy waited by her side as she continued stretching.

Minutes later, Katherine and her four legged companion jogged following the sidewalk through the neighborhood. "We'll get this over before the sun heats things up. We're going to struggle getting used to the Texas heat. I never liked it growing up. I doubt I'll like it any better now."

Daisy glanced at her master and wagged her tail.

"I know you won't either. You're too 'cushion and cream'. You enjoy a good air conditioner in the summer and heater in the winter." She petted the dog's head. "It's okay. I doubt we'll need much of a heater this winter. I never understood why homes here have fire places. It's never cold enough to use them."

They followed the sidewalk for three blocks. This seems like a nice neighborhood. It was a good decision to move back home. The boys need their grandma. As she ages, she'll need us. George's parents are also in town, but they never paid any attention to the boys. When they're not traveling the world, maybe they'll drop by. I doubt it. Oh well, it's their loss.

At a grove of crepe myrtle bushes, the sidewalk turned a sharp right. Katherine paused and inhaled. "Boy, they smell good." She screamed and dropped Daisy's leash.

Before her sat a monster of a dog, staring. Katherine froze as did Daisy. Finally, she swallowed and glanced down for her dog's leash. It was under his gigantic paw. Now what? If I move, he might attack. How long before he gets bored and leaves? She continued to stare at the leash, not making eye contact with the massive dog. How long before somebody comes to our rescue?

A few moments later, she heard footsteps. Maybe help's on the way.

"Reggie, there you are," said a male's voice.

Katherine found her voice, "He's yours?"

"He is. He likes admiring pretty ladies."

"I thought there was a leash law in town. I don't see a leash, except for mine and your dog's using it to hold us captive."

The man bent over, lifted his dog's paw, and handed it to her. "I'm sorry Reggie scared you. He's an over-sized marshmallow. Everybody knows him." He glanced down the sidewalk behind him. "Mrs. Jones' Frisky escaped on her again. I stopped to catch him. I guess Reggie got impatient and chose not to wait. Again, I'm sorry."

Accepting the leash, Katherine turned and started home, she said over her shoulder, "Thank you."

*****
He petted the large dog. "Buddy, I don't think you made a friend today." They continued on their jog. She must be new in town. She didn't seem to know who we are. I guess she's not a football fan. Silver Cove isn't that large. We'll meet again. Maybe we'll have another chance to make friends. He grinned at the dog. "Just don't scare her the next time. Not everybody understands how gentle you are. She judged you by your size."

*****
Later that morning, Kathrine and her six year old son, Jeremy climbed into the SUV on their way to the grocery store.

From the backseat Jeremy asked, "Why do I have to go? I could've stayed home."

Katherine watched her son through the rearview mirror. "Because I thought maybe I'd need your help. What if I chose the wrong cereal?" She smiled to herself. The real reason; after your older brothers spent twenty-six-and-a-half-hours in the car with you, they're ready to mail you to the Salvation Army. They needed a break.

"Mom, can I get whatever I want?"

"We need to be cautious because our household goods won't be here for another six days. I don't have a lot of pans. Remember?"

"I remember. My toys haven't made it yet, or my bed. This moving sucks. And I don't have any friends."

"Don't use words like that. We voted as a family to move closer to Grandma. Remember?"

"I remember, but you didn't tell me I wouldn't have friends."

"School starts in ten days. You'll make many new friends."

"I hope so. Are we at the store, yet? Can we stop on the way home? A 'Happy Meal' would taste really good."

Katherine pulled into a parking slot. "I'm sure we can find something healthier than that for lunch."

Jeremy jumped from the car. "Mac and cheese and chicken nuggets are good."

She rushed to catch her son. "We're in a parking lot. Did you forget you need to be careful?"

Inside the grocery store, Katherine started pushing a cart toward the produce section. Jeremy walked alongside her as she chose different fresh fruits. "I'd forgotten how fresh the produce was in Texas."

"Mom, strange things impress you. Can we skip the veggies?"

"No, we can't."

As Katherine reached for a bunch of carrots, she heard a crash and turned her head. "Jeremy, what did you do?" She rushed to him.

A gentleman carrying a fifty pound bag of dog food over his left shoulder pushed the cart aside. He grinned. "Does he belong to you?"

Him again. Is he everywhere? Katherine sighed. "He does. I'm sorry. Jeremy, what happened?"

"I..ah..sort..of..accidently..pushed..ah..the..cart..into..him."

After releasing breath, Katherine asked, "Were you racing the cart?"

Jeremy avoided eye contact. "Not, really, but it..ah..sort of took off by itself."

"Jeremy, look at me." Her eyes met his. "Apologize to this gentleman."

"I'm sorry, Sir. I didn't mean for the cart to crash into you. Why are you carrying so much dog food?"

Her eyes widened. "Jeremy?" She paused. "I'm sorry."

"Not a problem, Ma'am." He glanced at the child. "Because I have a huge dog that eats a lot." He grinned. "Your mom met Reggie this morning. Maybe you'll meet him someday."


"We need to let this gentleman continue his shopping. Again sorry, Sir. Come on, Jeremy." Katherine took her son's hand as she pushed the cart.

"Mom, I want to see this dog."

"That dog's twice your size."

Katherine sighed when she heard a chuckle and the comment, "Yep, Reggie scared her."




CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

gentleman: more information later, owner of a very large English Mastiff

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Author Notes Thank you google images for a photo of a mastiff. This post is a little over 1000 words. I hope you enjoy reading as much as I enjoyed writing it. I don't want to reveal too much until it's time.


Chapter 2
Football Chapter 1 part 2

By barbara.wilkey

PREVIOUS POST:


"Jeremy, look at me." Her eyes met his. "Apologize to this gentleman."

"I'm sorry, Sir. I didn't mean for the cart to crash into you. Why are you carrying so much dog food?"

Her eyes widened. "Jeremy?" She paused. "I'm sorry."

"Not a problem, Ma'am." He glanced at the child. "Because I have a huge dog that eats a lot." He grinned. "Your mom met Reggie this morning. Maybe you'll meet him someday."

"We need to let this gentleman continue his shopping. Again sorry, Sir. Come on, Jeremy." Katherine took her son's hand as she pushed the cart.

"Mom, I want to see this dog."

"That dog's twice your size."

Katherine sighed when she heard a chuckle and the comment, "Yep, Reggie scared her."


TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 1 part 2 day 3

Monday, after her early morning run, Katherine rushed her three youngest sons to her mother's house. On the way to Jordan's, her oldest son, six o'clock football practice, she pulled into the local coffee shop's parking lot.

As his mom parked, Jordan grumbled, "Mom, come on! I'm going to be late for practice. Can't this wait?"

She glanced at the car's clock. "We have time. It'll only take a few minutes. I promise. You wait here." She hurried inside.

Two customers were ahead of her. She studied the menu posted on the wall. The line moved up, and Katherine stepped to the left to see the rest of the menu. As she did, a gentleman bumped into her, spilling his X-large steaming black coffee on her blouse.

"Ugh, Ouch! Hot!" Katherine held her blouse away from her body.

The man grabbed napkins and began wiping it. "I'm so sorry."

"Don't touch me. I'm fine." Their eyes met. "You again? Are you stalking me?"

"Ma'am, I was here first, so I'd say I'm not stalking you." He turned. "Nancy, could you put some ice in a baggy. She needs to cool the burn." He accepted the ice bag. "And two large coffees, one with cream and sugar on the side." He handed the ice to Katherine. "You'll need this."

Katherine accepted it. "You've done quite enough, Sir." She headed out the door.

Catching up, he handed her a coffee. "I didn't know if you like cream and sugar. There's some in the bag."

She grabbed the coffee and then opened the SUV door. "Thank you."

Jordan studied the situation. "Mom, what happened?"

"Scalding coffee was dumped on me. I need to go home to change."

She started to shut the door, but it was held open. "Ma'am, is there anything I can do?"

"Mom, I'll be late for practice. When we signed up, they stated it started at exactly six o'clock. I can't be late for my first practice. How will it look? Football coaches aren't known for their patience."

"Tell the coach your mom had an emergency."

"They won't accept excuses, especially this one. Drop me off and then change."

"Ma'am, I'll take your son to practice. I'm going that way."

Katherine glared at him. "I don't know you. You could be a serial killer. I'm certainly not going to allow you access to my child. No."

He moved his leg to keep the door open and reached for his billfold. "Here. Keep my driver's license, and I'll give you my pick-up registration. In twenty minutes call the school and verify your son's at practice." He took a packet from his glove-box and wrote down a phone number. "This should help ease your fears. My intentions are just to help. Honest."

"Mom, please. I'm going to be late."

After a long pause and a sigh, Katherine said, "Okay, but I'm going to call."

"I'm sure you will." He held out his hand for Jordan to shake as he walked around the SUV.

"I'm Jordan Riley. I see you've already met Mom."

"Sure have on three very interesting occasions." He chuckled. "Let's get to practice."

After they left, Katherine sat for a few seconds. I can't believe I just allowed Jordan to drive away with a complete stranger. She glanced at her watch. "At six-eleven, I'll call this number." She set the alarm on her phone.

As she pulled into her driveway, her alarm sounded. She grabbed the phone and punched in the number.

After two rings she heard a female voice, "Hello, Welcome to the Bears' Cave. Juliet Harper, the athletic trainer, speaking. How can I help?"

"Hello, this is Katherine Riley. We had a difficult morning, and I'm checking to make sure my son, Jordan Riley made it to football practice. Could you tell me if he arrived?"

"Yes, Ma'am. I was told to expect your call. Riley, your mom's on the phone."

The next voice Katherine heard was her son's, "Mom, I knew you'd call, but I wish you didn't. I'll be teased for being the new kid and now a mommy's boy. Great start to a new school. I got to go."



CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

gentleman: more information later, owner of a very large English Mastiff

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Author Notes Thank you google images for a photo of a football. This novel is not actually about football, but there is mention of High School football. High School football is a national past-time in Texas. Raising four sons myself, I can promise you my rear-end graced many bleachers on Friday nights. This post is a little over 700 words. I hope you enjoy reading as much as I enjoyed writing it. I don't want to reveal too much until it's time.


Chapter 3
Football Chapter 2 part 1

By barbara.wilkey

PREVIOUS POST:

After they left, Katherine sat for a few seconds. I can't believe I just allowed Jordan to drive away with a complete stranger. She glanced at her watch. "At six-eleven, I'll call this number." She set the alarm on her phone.

As she pulled into her driveway, her alarm sounded. She grabbed the phone and punched in the number.

After two rings she heard a female voice, "Hello, Welcome to the Bears' Cave. Juliet Harper, the athletic trainer, speaking. How can I help?"

"Hello, this is Katherine Riley. We had a difficult morning, and I'm checking to make sure my son, Jordan Riley made it to football practice. Could you tell me if he arrived?"

"Yes, Ma'am. I was told to expect your call. Riley, your mom's on the phone."

The next voice Katherine heard was her son's, "Mom, I knew you'd call, but I wish you didn't. I'll be teased for being the new kid and now a mommy's boy. Great start to a new school. I got to go."

TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 2 part 1

Katherine accepted the offered classroom keys. "Thank you, Mr. Edwards. I go straight down the hall and then turn right. My room number is 103. Correct?"

"Yes, Ma'am. That's our math hallway. All seven teachers surrounding you teach math. If you have any questions, please come see me or any of them. Please know my door's always open." Paul Edwards opened the office door leading to the hallway.

As Katherine walked through, a person slammed into her and caused her to fall back into her principal's arms. He kept her from landing on the floor.

"Great catch," sounded a male voice from down the hallway.

"Mom!" Jordan leaned over and helped her stand. "Are you okay?"

Katherine straightened herself, took a deep breath, and then studied the football her son held. "I'm fine, but this is exactly the reason for rules about playing ball inside. I think school hallways count as inside."

Jogging toward them, the man said, "I'm sorry. This is my fault."

Her eyes glared into his. "I should've known you'd be involved somehow."

Mr. Edwards grinned. "I see you two have met."

With an offered hand, he said, "Not officially. I'm Coach Gabriel Hudson. I'm glad to meet you."

The principal tried to hide his smile. "Gabe, I'd like to introduce Katherine Riley. She's new to our staff and will be teaching math."

Katherine accepted the offered hand but avoided eye contact. "Nice to meet you." She glanced at her son. "Your ride this morning was with the coach." She searched through her purse and then handed her son the SUV keys. "His vehicle registration and driver's license are in the glove-box. Please get them. I'll meet you in room 103." She hesitated. "Jordan will return your documents." She left.

Paul slapped Gabriel's back. "I can't wait to hear this story. You've made a really bad impression on Mrs. Riley. What happened?"

Gabriel relayed everything that had happened from Reggie scaring her Saturday morning to dumping coffee on her this morning. As he stared down the hallway, he asked, "What's her story?"

Mr. Edwards pointed to his office. "Come in and have a seat. It's long, and you knew or know most the people involved."

Paul poured two cups of coffee and passed one to Gabriel before he sat. "I graduated a year ahead of you. He's probably a year or two behind you. Do you remember George Riley?"

He shook his head. "Should I?"

The principal turned around in his chair and grabbed a year book. He searched until he found the page. "This guy."

"Oh yeah, he was a math geek and captain of the chess club. A real nerd."

"Well. That math geek/nerd graduated with honors and went to Harvard Business School with all-expenses paid. He became a CEO of a huge stock broker firm on Wall Street."

"It pays to be smart."

"Sure does, but it can have its downside. He died six months, ago."

"What does that have to do with Mrs. Riley?" Gabriel took a sip of coffee.

"He was her husband. He left her with four boys. Jordan's the oldest." Paul grinned. "I guess you met Jeremy, the youngest, in the grocery store."

"A typical little guy, full of energy and mischievousness." Gabriel took a long drink of coffee. "I'd think him being a CEO, she wouldn't have to work. I'm sure he left her with plenty of money."

"He did. Let me tell the story." After they both chuckled, Paul continued, "Since George had a prepaid ticket to Harvard, Katherine and he got married the week after she graduated. Literally nine months later, Jordan was born."

"So he was still in school? How'd she get an education?"

"The first three kids, all boys, came one right after another." He paused. "George was never home, so she and the boys were always alone. He traveled literally all over the world."

"She was a trophy wife to be kept on the shelf until needed." After Paul nodded, Gabriel added, "Her life had to be pretty boring, especially since her husband was a world traveler."

"After Joel, her third son was born; Katherine decided to get an education. George knew nothing about it until after Jeremy was born. Three weeks after he was born, she graduated. George was not happy. This is her first teaching experience."

"How do you know all of this?"

"I'm a close friend with her mom. Matter-of-fact, you know her mom and knew her dad." Gabriel's eyes widened, as Paul continued, "Her mom's sweet Ms. Sarah, our favorite volunteer and baker. You knew her dad, Coach Beck."

"Wow, talk about a small world. I remember a young girl following coach around. So that's Ms. Riley. Didn't she run cross country?"

"She did. Still holds a state record. She played softball too."

"That explains her good running form."

"No, you and Reggie scared her. She was running for her life."

"That's true."

They laughed.

After Jordan handed Coach his license and registration and left, Gabriel asked, "Think she can handle discipline?"

"That we'll have to wait and see. I'm wondering if we can talk her into restarting a girls' cross country team. We haven't had one for three years."

"That's a good idea. You'd better ask. She hates me."

"I'm sure with time you can win her over, you usually do."



We have a four day weekend, so my husband and I are traveling to Victoria, Texas and visit with our youngest son. He got his first job there in August and moved. He's on his own and still learning the area. I'm sure before long he won't want his parents around. LOL Anyway, the reason I'm sharing this is I might not post until Monday.


CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: more information later, owner of a very large English Mastiff

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Author Notes Thank you google images for a photo of a high school. This novel is not actually about football, but there is mention of High School football. High School football is a national past-time in Texas. Raising four sons myself, I can promise you my rear-end graced many bleachers on Friday nights. This post is a little over 900 words. I don't want to reveal too much until it's time.


Chapter 4
Football Chapter 2 part 2

By barbara.wilkey

PREVIOUS POST:

"Wow, talk about a small world. I remember a young girl following coach around. So that's Ms. Riley. Didn't she run cross country?"

"She did. Still holds a state record. She played softball too."

"That explains her good running form."

"No, you and Reggie scared her. She was running for her life."

"That's true."

They laughed.

After Jordan handed Coach his license and registration and left, Gabriel asked, "Think she can handle discipline?"

"That we'll have to wait and see. I'm wondering if we can talk her into restarting a girls' cross country team. We haven't had one for three years."

"That's a good idea. You'd better ask. She hates me."

"I'm sure with time you can win her over, you usually do."


TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 2 part 2

Around one o'clock that afternoon, Gabriel knocked on room 103's classroom door. He waited until Katherine turned around. "Hello, it looks like you could use some help hanging whatever that is."

"Thank you, but Jordan and I have it. They're math formulas, by the way."

"Jordan has his end covered, but you're a little short on the other side." He leaned over her and took it. "Hand me that glue gun."

After he finished, Katherine asked, "Do you always push your way into situations?"

He grinned. "That's what I'm best at. Really I came by to see if you needed help." He glanced at a pile of formulas. "Jordan, why don't you and I take care of this for your mom?" He checked his watch. "The staff meeting starts in twenty-five minutes. We have time. Just show us where."

Katherine sighed. "I can do this."

"Never said you couldn't. Us Texas guys, always help..."

"Don't you dare say 'damsels in distress'," interrupted Katherine.

"Never would've considered it." He grinned and held up a poster-board math formula against the wall. "Is this a good place?"

As the last formula was hung, an announcement came over the speaker system. "All staff report to the cafeteria. The meeting will begin in five minutes."

Katherine turned toward her son. "Jordan?"

He looked around at the numerous boxes in the room. "Don't worry, Mom. I have plenty to keep me busy."

"But..."

Coach touched her arm. "Come on, I'll escort you to the cafeteria."

As they walked, Katherine released a deep breath and then faced Gabriel. "I've never been to a faculty meeting. Are there assigned seats?"

"Don't worry. They're harmless and most of the time useless. Usually the departments sit together, example math teachers sit with other math teachers."

"I don't know who the math teachers are."

"I'll introduce you to the department head. He should ask you some questions because later he'll introduce you to the rest of the staff."

"Okay."

"Paul, Mr. Edwards, will tell a few horrible jokes, welcome everybody, and then the introductions will begin. After that, he'll fill us in on any changes for the upcoming year."

"Sounds harmless."

"It is." After entering the cafeteria, he pointed to the far right rectangular table. "The math teachers. Come on, I'll introduce you." He grinned. "Then you're on your own."

As they walked toward the table, a tall slender man, wearing a button down shirt and a bow-tie stood. "Coach, what are you doing in the academic section?"

"I wanted to introduce you to Mrs. Katherine Riley, our new math teacher."

Katherine offered her hand. "It's nice to meet you."

Gabriel said, "Mrs. Riley, I'd like you to meet the math department head, Mr. Rodney Frost."

Rodney accepted Katherine hand. "Nice to meet you." He nodded toward the door. "We'd better get seated. Mr. Edwards just entered." They both sat.

Katherine watched Gabriel walk up to the principal say a few words, slap his back, laugh, and then he went to his designated area. I wonder what that's about. Is he somebody to be trusted or not?

Mr. Edwards stood at the podium. "For those of you who are new, I'm Paul Edwards, your principal. I'm not new."

Everybody laughed, and somebody called out. "You're right. You've been here since dinosaurs roamed the Earth."

He laughed and waved his arm toward the faculty. "You're right. Silver Cove High School staff, welcome to the beginning of a wonderful new school year. I can feel the enthusiasm. Sitting in this cafeteria, are the best high school teachers in the world. I'm excited for this school year to begin. Tomorrow our meeting will begin at 8:00 sharp. First, I'll go over changes and expectations for the upcoming year."

Turning, Katherine watched and smiled at the various shouted comments. Mr. Frost didn't say a word. He didn't even grin. I wonder why?

After a few unfunny jokes, which people commented loudly about how bad they were, Mr. Edwards grinned. "I see you still enjoyed my humor. We'll take a five minute break while department heads talk with new team members and then we'll have you introduce them to the rest of staff."

Katherine turned to Mr. Frost. Their eyes met, he glanced at her hands, and then he left.

I wonder what that's about. How will he introduce me? He only knows my name.

Almost fifteen minutes later, the principal stood at the podium. "Department heads, please join me." He waited for them to line up on stage and then motioned behind the line. "New staff members, please stand behind them. As your name's called, please step forward."

As the English Department began, Mr. Frost came on stage using the back stairs and took his place.

When Mr. Frost stepped to the podium, he turned and pointed behind him. "I'd like to introduce Mrs. Katherine Riley." Katherine stood beside him and smiled. He continued, "Even though she carries the title of Mrs. I'm sure you've noticed there's no golden band on her finger. Those interested staff members, a word of warning, our resident playboy, Coach Hudson, has already laid claim. You'll have to wait your turn. It's yet to be determined if she can teach math or handle discipline." He stepped away from the podium.

Katherine's face turned crimson. Why'd he do that? She went to the back of the stage.

After the last teacher was introduced, Mr. Edwards dismissed the staff and asked to speak with Mr. Frost.

Katherine stood off to the side, waiting for her opportunity to speak with her department head.

After their private discussion Mr. Edwards started to leave, but he turned toward Mr. Frost. "I'd advise you to stay out of Coach's way until he calms down. By the way, this incident will go in your file." He left.

Katherine stepped up. "Mr. Frost, I need to speak with you." He started to walk past her, but she moved in front of him. "After insulting me in front of the entire staff, you aren't going to dismiss me. I have no idea what you have against me."

She fingered her necklace. "My marital status is none of your business, but I'm not wearing a wedding ring because I'm widowed. I'm a mother of four young sons and work full time. I don't have time for any relationship and have no desire to start one."

Mr. Frost attempted to walk away.

Stepping in front of him again, Katherine continued, "Again, this is none of your business but I graduated from Cornell University with honors so, yes, I know my subject."

She inhaled a deep breath. "As for Coach Hudson, he was nice enough to show me where the cafeteria was. I've never been in this building before today. My suggestion: if you don't know what you're talking about keep your mouth shut."

As she walked away, the remaining staff members applauded her.

Under his breath Mr. Frost muttered, "If she graduated with honors, she slept her way through college."

Katherine turned and raised her hand to slap him.

Gabriel walked behind her and held her hand. "Don't do it. He deserves it, but he'll bring charges. As a new teacher, you don't need that. I promise it'll be handled."

"I don't need anyone fighting my battles."

Gabriel grinned. "I'm sure you don't, but this may be bigger than you." He left.

Katherine sighed. How could I possibly be involved in anything? I just arrived to town five days ago.




We had a wonderful time with our youngest son, Steven, and got back in time to post. I've still been thing about a title. How about 'Game of Love'?




CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: more information later, owner of a very large English Mastiff

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Robert Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Author Notes Thank you google images for a photo of question marks. This novel is not actually about football, but there is mention of High School football. High School football is a national past-time in Texas. Raising four sons myself, I can promise you my rear-end graced many bleachers on Friday nights. This post is a little over 1200 words. I hope it's not too long. I don't want to reveal too much until it's time.


Chapter 5
Football Chapter 3 part 1

By barbara.wilkey

PREVIOUS POST:

Katherine stepped up. "Mr. Frost, I need to speak with you." He started to walk past her, but she moved in front of him. "After insulting me in front of the entire staff, you aren't going to dismiss me. I have no idea what you have against me."

She fingered her necklace. "My marital status is none of your business, but I'm not wearing a wedding ring because I'm widowed. I'm a mother of four young sons and work full time. I don't have time for any relationship and have no desire to start one."

Mr. Frost attempted to walk away.

Stepping in front of him again, Katherine continued, "Again, this is none of your business but I graduated from Cornell University with honors so, yes, I know my subject."

She inhaled a deep breath. "As for Coach Hudson, he was nice enough to show me where the cafeteria was. I've never been in this building before today. My suggestion: if you don't know what you're talking about keep your mouth shut."

As she walked away, the remaining staff members applauded her.

Under his breath Mr. Frost muttered, "If she graduated with honors, she slept her way through college."

Katherine turned and raised her hand to slap him.

Gabriel walked up behind her and held her hand. "Don't do it. He deserves it, but he'll bring charges. As a new teacher, you don't need that. I promise it'll be handled."

"I don't need anyone fighting my battles."

Gabriel grinned. "I'm sure you don't, but this may be bigger than you." He left.

Katherine sighed. How could I possibly be involved in anything? I just arrived to town five days ago.


TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 3 part 1

Katherine and Daisy left the house at four-thirty for an early morning run. "Great morning for a run." She petted the dog's head.

After about twenty-five minutes into the run, Gabriel and Reggie ran toward them. He tightened his hold on the large dog's leash and held it up. "I have my vicious dog under control."

Reggie looked at his master and wagged his tail.

As she ran in place, she pulled Daisy closer. "I'm glad."

"This is a pretty peaceful town, but you shouldn't run alone in the dark. It could be dangerous for a female."

"I have Daisy." As an alarm sounded, she checked her watch. "I'd better get back. I wouldn't want Jordan to be late for practice. I've heard the coach is a stickler about punctuality."

Gabriel chuckled. "You heard right. He's a real disciplinarian." He paused and then motioned the sidewalk she came from. "You live that way?"

She swallowed. "I do."

"I'm going that way. Is it okay if I join you? I'm worried about your safety."

"I guess."

As they headed toward her home, Gabriel asked, "Do you run every morning at this time?" When she didn't answer, he continued, "If you're worried about what Frost said, I'm not hitting on you. He's a jerk." He stopped. "To be honest I only care about a winning football team. If we win the division this year, it'll be my fifth in a row. I'm hoping for my first state title."

She began to walk. "Did you take over after Dad died?"

"Nope, they hired a coach, but he didn't make it the full year."

"What brought you here?"

He studied her. "You don't know me, do you?" After she shook her head, he grinned. "That's refreshing, but I'm surprised the daughter of a famous coach doesn't know football."

"I do know football. While growing up it consumed my family's life. I wanted to get as far from it as possible, but as you can tell I've lost the battle with my boys."

"I'm Gabriel Hudson, number 55. I played for the Texans from 2005 until 2016."

"So you were a defensive lineman. Why'd you leave?"

He slightly raised his below-knee-length shorts, revealing two large surgery scars.

She sighed. "A knee injury."

He nodded. "I was getting too old, anyway. Each year the body complained more and more."

"So you became a high school coach. Why here?"

"I grew up here. I played for your dad and then went to UT. I majored in, go figure, PE."

"A true jock. I'm glad you didn't tax your brain," she teased. She stood on the sidewalk in front of her house. "This is it. Thank you for the escort."

Gabriel pointed. "Not a problem. The high school's only three blocks straight and then two off to the right." He paused. "Are you stopping for coffee on your way to work?"

"I usually do. I'll take Jordan, get ready, and then get the boys ready for Grandma's."

"You have a busy morning."

"Not as busy as my mom. She'll bring them back this afternoon in time to get Joshua to practice at the middle school. Jordan can work in my room, until time for his second practice. I just have to remember to get him lunch. I almost forgot yesterday. He should be packing his breakfast now and then eat in my room."

"I'll make you a deal. This week if you'll stop by and get me two large black coffees, I'll make sure you and Jordan get lunch." He checked his watched. "We'll discuss details later."

Katherine shook her head. "Deal, but you shoved your way in, again."

He motioned for Reggie to come. "I told you. It's my specialty." He turned and paused. "I like the way you stood up to Frost yesterday." After hesitating, he added, "His problem isn't with you. He just took it out on you. Paul, Mr. Edwards, will handle him."

Katherine watched him jog. He's an interesting man. Most jocks aren't caring.

Jordan called from the porch, "Mom, you didn't just run with Coach, did you?"

"Not really, but sort of. Daisy and I went for a run, and we just happened to meet up. It was actually strange." She shook her head. "Did you pack yourself breakfast?" After he nodded, she continued, "I'll put Daisy inside, get my purse, and then we'll leave."

On the way to the SUV, she asked, "What did you pack?"

"Two sandwiches, a banana, and an apple. Oh yea, couple pieces of cheese, two bottles of Gator Ade, and two blueberry muffins. Think that'll hold me over until lunch? What's lunch anyway?"

"Good question. I'll worry about that later. Did you remember to pack a change of clothes?" She stopped at the door. "Did you wake up Joshua and let him know we're leaving?"

"MOM?"

"Just checking. That's what Mom's do." She backed out of the driveway. Once Jordan was at football practice, Katherine showered and dressed, and then got the other boys up and fixed their breakfast.

After she threw the paper plates in the trash, she glanced at her watch. "We're on track. Do you guys have what you want to take to Grandma's?" She glanced at Joshua. "What time does your practice start?"

"Four o'clock."

"Grandma, will take you and then bring the other two here. She'll stay until I get home. I think this'll work." She ran her fingers through Jeremy's hair. "Behave yourself. You hear?"

He giggled.

Katherine bit her lower lip. "I was afraid of that. Let's load up."

"Can Daisy come?" asked Jeremy

"All right. Maybe she'll help you behave. We need to get going."


Is 'New Horizon's' too much of a cliche for a title?



CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: more information later, owner of a very large English Mastiff

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Author Notes Thank you google images for a photo of a lady jogging with her yellow Labrador. I also want to thank everybody for the wonderful reviews on this novel, so far, I was worried about it because it's a little different than I usually write. Thank you, again. This novel is not actually about football, but there is mention of High School football. High School football is a national past-time in Texas. Raising four sons myself, I can promise you my rear-end graced many bleachers under the Friday night stadium lights. This post is a little over 960 words. I hope it's not too long. I don't want to reveal too much until it's time.


Chapter 6
Football Chapter 3 part 2

By barbara.wilkey

PREVIOUS POST:

"Just checking. That's what Mom's do." She backed out of the driveway. Once Jordan was at football practice, Katherine showered and dressed, and then got the other boys up and fixed their breakfast.

After she threw the paper plates in the trash, she glanced at her watch. "We're on track. Do you guys have what you want to take to Grandma's?" She glanced at Joshua. "What time does your practice start?"

"Four o'clock."

"Grandma, will take you and then bring the other two here. She'll stay until I get home. I think this'll work." She ran her fingers through Jeremy's hair. "Behave yourself. You hear?"

He giggled.

Katherine bit her lower lip. "I was afraid of that. Let's load up."

"Can Daisy come?" asked Jeremy

"All right. Maybe she'll help you behave. We need to get going."


How about 'Against All Odds' for a title.?

TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 3 part 2 day 4

Katherine arrived at school about 7:15. Good I have time to work in my room before the staff meeting. I wonder how I get these two coffees to Coach. I won't worry about it, he'll find me. He has a knack for doing that.

As she walked by the front office, Mr. Edwards opened the door. "Coach is looking for you." He glanced at the coffee and chuckled. "I guess at least one of those is for him. He's a bear without coffee."

"Two are his." She held up one. "This is mine. Do you know where he is?"

"I'm sure he's not far. He'll come running when he smells coffee." Paul paused. "I'm sorry about what happened yesterday. I heard you handled Mr. Frost very appropriately. I want to assure you that I also handled it."

"Thank you." She turned her head when she heard running and frowned. "I guess you don't follow any rules."

Gabriel grinned. "The one about running in the hall?" He accepted the offered coffee and took a long drink. "Thanks. I needed that. I smelled coffee and..."

Mr. Edwards opened the office door. "Come to my office, and we'll discuss your nonconforming attitude."

"Won't do any good. You've tried." He held up the coffee. "Thank you, again."

Continuing toward her class, Katherine turned her head when she heard, "Good morning, Mrs. Riley. I see you're an early person too."

Katherine stopped and offered her hand, "Hello. One of my sons needed to be here by 6:00, so I've been back and forth."

"I'm Angie Brooks. I also teach math." She paused. "I'm sorry about what happened. Frost can be a real jerk, but the rest of us aren't like that."

"Thank you. It shocked me. I don't know what I did to upset him."

"I don't think you did anything except get this job. I heard a rumor his son applied and interviewed but you were hired instead."

"That would cause hard feelings. It almost makes sense, but still..."

"I can understand being upset, but it's no reason to verbally insult you in front of the entire staff. Besides I heard his son partied his way through college and didn't really have the grades."

Katherine's eyes widened. "I see there's a strong rumor mill here."

"I think all schools have them."

Gabriel walked by. "Thanks again, for the coffee."

Angie smiled. "Hmm, coffee?"

Stopping in her tracks, Katherine faced her new friend. "Don't even start. There's nothing to what Frost said about Coach and me. We've only talked with each other three times and each time was an accidental meeting."

"Just so you know he's a nice guy if you catch him in non-football mode. He eats, drinks, and sleeps football."

"I understand. My dad used to be a football coach. You might have heard of him, Coach Bob Beck."

"The same coach our stadium's named after?"

"The one and the same. I can promise you, I'll never get involved with a jock." She stood at the door of her room. "I guess I'd better get busy. Do you have any idea what our class size will be and what we're teaching?"

Angie giggled. "Math. It depends on what level math you're teaching. I don't think the assignments have been made, yet." She paused. "We should have our preliminary schedule sometime today, but it won't be finalized until later this week. I hope we have it before our team meetings."

"Makes sense."

Angie went to her classroom door. "I'll come by and we'll go together."

Katherine took a sip of coffee. "I needed this." She turned her head at the sound of footsteps. "Did you have a good practice?"

Jordan frowned. "I think Coach is into torture." He plopped into a chair, opened his bag, and took out a sandwich. "I'm starving."

She set her coffee cup on a desk and opened a box. "Is he into actual torture or tough conditioning? I've heard he's into winning."

"He called it conditioning, but my legs are questioning it." He took a bite and chewed. "He doesn't like losing. He's made that clear."

Katherine checked her watch. "I only have a few minutes." She surveyed the boxes. "Can you empty these and then break them down and stack them?"

"Sure. Will I see you for lunch?"

"Yes, I'll eat with you." Katherine glanced at the lady standing at the door. "Angie, hmm, Mrs. Brooks, I'd like you to meet Jordan, my son."

Angie walked to him and offered him her hand. "Hello. I'm guessing you play football."

"I do, Ma'am. Is your husband by chance Coach Brooks?"

"He is. What position do you play?"

"Tight end."

She grinned. "You'll get to know him quite well."

Katherine's eyes met her knew friend's. "Jordan says the coaches are into torture."

"Mom!"

Laughing, Angie said, "I'm sure this early in the season, all players think that. We'd better get going. Nice to meet you, Jordan."

"Nice to meet you too, Mrs. Brooks."

Katherine waved. "I'll see you around lunch time."

*****
After Angie and Katherine arrived at the designated table, Angie introduced Katherine to the rest of the team. It was decided that the afternoon's team meeting would be held in Angie's room.

As Mr. Edwards walked to the podium, Mr. Frost sat at the table. "I see you're all here."

Frank Collins, another math teacher, said, "We're meeting in Angie's room this afternoon."

Rodney frowned. "I see you're making decisions without my input again. I thought we were past that."

Paul Edwards began with unfunny jokes. After he finished, he pointed to the screen. "We'll start with our mandatory yearly trainings. First, sexual harassment. Please remember, it's not just for staff, but if you witness sexual harassment with the students it's your responsibility to report it."

The morning passed slowly as they watched nine videos.

As the last training ended, Mr. Edwards asked Coach Hudson to come up. When Coach stood up front, he and Paul whispered a little and then Coach began, "I've been asked to talk to you as the Athletic Director. Mr. Edwards and I have decided to bring it to a vote. We feel we don't do enough for our female students. It's been three years since we've had a girls' cross country team, and feel it's about time to start one again. If you agree, raise your arm up high, straight elbow." He scanned the room. "If you're opposed, raise your arm high." He released a deep breath. "We have one negative vote."

Mr. Frost stood. "We have too many sports as it is, and they get in the way of real learning. We don't need another one."

Coach grinned. "We know how you feel about sports, but majority wins. If we get enough student involvement, we'll proceed. Staff, we'll include this in our morning announcements. As it is right now, homeroom teachers, it'll be your responsibility to let me know the number of girls interested. We'll go from there."

Mr. Edwards stood beside Coach and added, "We have a few ideas for the sponsor of this activity." He held up a stack of papers. "I have your schedules. Please understand they may change. Department leads, please come up and then pass them to your team." He glanced at his watch. "Department level meetings will begin promptly at 12:45. Have a nice lunch."

Mr. Frost passed the schedules to each teacher, but studied Katherine's. She held out her hand. "My schedule, please."

He glared at her. "There's no way you're qualified to teach these classes." Turning, he headed toward Mr. Edwards.

They spoke for a few minutes before Paul took the schedule and came to Katherine. "Sorry for the delay, but here's your schedule." He scanned it, grinned, and winked. "It looks good to me."

Katherine accepted the schedule. "Thank you."

As she studied it, Angie looked over her shoulder. "What was Frost so upset over?"

"I don't know. I think he doesn't like anything I do."

Over the intercom system came, "Mrs. Riley, please report to the office."

"Now what?"





CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: more information later, owner of a very large English Mastiff

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Author Notes Thank you google images for a photo of hot coffee. I also want to thank everybody for the wonderful reviews on this novel, so far, I was worried about it because it's a little different than I usually write. Thank you, again. This novel is not actually about football, but there is mention of High School football. High School football is a national past-time in Texas. Raising four sons myself, I can promise you my rear-end graced many bleachers under the Friday night stadium lights. This post is a little over 1360 words. I hope it's not too long. I don't want to reveal too much until it's time.


Chapter 7
Football Chapter 4 part 1

By barbara.wilkey

PREVIOUS POST:

Mr. Frost passed the schedules to each teacher, but studied Katherine's. She held out her hand. "My schedule, please."

He glared at her. "There's no way you're qualified to teach these classes." Turning, he headed toward Mr. Edwards.

They spoke for a few minutes before Paul took the schedule and came to Katherine. "Sorry for the delay, but here's your schedule." He scanned it, grinned, and winked. "It looks good to me."

Katherine accepted the schedule. "Thank you."

As she studied it, Angie looked over her shoulder. "What was Frost so upset over?"

"I don't know. I think he doesn't like anything I do."

Over the intercom system came, "Mrs. Riley, please report to the office."

"Now what?"

TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 4 part 1

As Katherine opened the office door, Coach grinned. "I'd like you to meet my parents; Rebecca and Harold Hudson. Mom, Dad, this is Katherine Riley. She's a new math teacher. If she brings me coffee in the morning, I told her I'd make sure she and her son got lunch this week."

Rebecca offered her hand. "I'm glad to meet you. Harold and I have been fixing lunches for the coaches and Paul since Gabe started here. I'm glad our son included you. I hope you like it." She handed Katherine two sacks and set on the counter two glasses filled with tea.

"I'm sure it'll be delicious. I'm curious how did this get started?"

Gabriel moved closer. "I'll explain as I help you carry this. I'm sure Jordan's hungry."

"Thank you. He's always hungry."

Chuckling, Gabriel put both drinks in one hand and opened the door as he continued, "I'm sure that's true. I'll answer your question. I like to have the coaches meet during lunch. Games are so unpredictable that one can never plan enough. With all the coaches getting lunch, there wasn't time, so Mom and Dad offered help. Everybody seems to like what they fix; at least there haven't been any complaints."

"So after all these years football remains a town affair?"

"Things don't change much, do they?" He waited for her to enter the classroom and then he followed.

Jordan glanced up. "Mom, did you remember lunch?"

Gabriel grinned. "She did."

Jordan jumped to attention. "Sorry, Coach. Yesterday..."

"Not a problem," interrupted Gabriel. "She mentioned she'd forgotten it yesterday. We made a deal. She brings me my morning coffee, and I'll take care of lunch." He set the drinks on a desk. "I have a meeting to get to. Enjoy."

Katherine handed Jordan a sack, but called after Gabriel, "Or you should say your parents took care of it." She shook her head as she heard him laughing down the hall, and called after him, "Thank you again. I'm sure it's delicious."

Jordan opened the sack. "Mom, this has two chicken salad croissants, grapes, cherry tomatoes, carrots, celery, and two snickerdoodle cookies for dessert. Wow! Coach doesn't do anything halfway, does he?"

"No, he doesn't." Katherine stared at the door. "Let's eat, and then get busy. This classroom needs to be ready for students in one week."

*****
About 12:30, Katherine gave Jordan a few jobs to complete in the classroom while she attended her meeting and told him if he got hungry he could eat her second sandwich. Ten minutes later she crossed the hall to Angie's room.

Angie glanced up. "Have you had a chance to study your schedule?"

Katherine sat beside her. "I have. I wish I had a break before 2:00, but I'll work with it."

"Our breaks are often in the afternoon because on Friday's the athletes travel to away games. This way they won't miss a lot of class time, especially in the more difficult classes."

"Makes sense."

Rodney Frost walked in. "Of course everything revolves around sports. We certainly wouldn't want to do anything that'd actually increase the learning opportunity for students."

Frank Collins followed Rodney in. "Mrs. Riley, I heard your dad was Coach Beck, is that right?"

Before she had a chance to reply, Alan Green, an Assistant Principal, came into the room. "You heard right. Mrs. Riley's dad was none other than the famous Coach Beck."

Mr. Frost glared at Katherine. "I figured you got the job because you were sleeping with Coach. Then to secure the deal you slept with Edwards. Now, you really sealed the deal with nepotism. Nobody else had a chance."

Mr. Green raised his hand. "Stop it. This is totally..." His glare followed Katherine out the door. "Unprofessional." He used his walkie-talkie and notified Mr. Edwards. He stood in the door watching Katherine and then turned. "Mr. Frost, Human Resources will hear about this. I'm going to recommend a suspension."

"You can't do that. I spoke the truth."

"You better have evidence to back up your accusations."

Coach Hudson was the first to show up. Mr. Edwards was right behind him.

After hearing verbatim what had happened, Gabriel glared at Frost. "The venom you're spouting is even low for you." He left the room. "I'm searching for Mrs. Riley. You better hope she's not working on her resignation."

Paul checked his watch. "Mr. Frost, you need to be in my office in twenty minutes. I'll be on the phone to H.R." He left.

Gabriel checked the security cameras and discovered Katherine went toward the football field. Both he and Paul headed that direction spouting choice words about Frost.



CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: more information later, owner of a very large English Mastiff

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Frank Collins math teacher

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Author Notes Thank you google images for a photo of chicken salad sandwich. I also want to thank everybody for the wonderful reviews on this novel. This novel is not actually about football, but there is mention of High School football. High School football is a national past-time in Texas. Raising four sons myself, I can promise you my rear-end graced many bleachers under the Friday night stadium lights. This post is a little under 800 words.


Chapter 8
Football Chapter 4 part 2

By barbara.wilkey

PREVIOUS POST:

Mr. Green raised his hand. "Stop it. This is totally..." His glare followed Katherine out the door. "Unprofessional." He used his walkie-talkie and notified Mr. Edwards. He stood in the door watching Katherine and then turned. "Mr. Frost, Human Resources will hear about this. I'm going to recommend a suspension."

"You can't do that. I spoke the truth."

"You better have evidence to back up your accusations."

Coach Hudson was the first to show up. Mr. Edwards was right behind him.

After hearing verbatim what had happened, Gabriel glared at Frost. "The venom you're spouting is even low for you." He left the room. "I'm searching for Mrs. Riley. You better hope she's not working on her resignation."

Paul checked his watch. "Mr. Frost, you need to be in my office in twenty minutes. I'll be on the phone to H.R." He left.

Gabriel checked the security cameras and discovered Katherine went toward the football field. Both he and Paul headed that direction spouting choice words about Frost.


TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 4 part 2

They spotted Katherine sitting halfway up in the center of the stadium.

Gabriel's eyes met Paul's. "Any idea how we proceed?"

"Nope, I was hoping you did."

"At least you're married. My longest relationship lasted almost two months."

"Between seasons?"

"Yep." Gabriel studied Katherine. "We'd better do something. We can't let her sit there all day. You'd better go first. She's probably crying. I don't do tears."

"Think I do?"

"You have a wife and a daughter. You have to do tears."

Shaking his head, Paul said, "Remind me again why we're friends." He went up the stadium stairs toward Katherine. Gabriel followed.

Katherine used the back of her hand to wipe tears from her cheeks. "I see you found me."

Gabriel offered her a handkerchief. "It wasn't hard."

She accepted it and blew her nose. "Thank you. I'll wash and return it." She studied the field. "Does Mr. Frost actually believe I've slept with both of you? If he does, how many other people believe that?" She hesitated. "What have I done to him? When I signed my contract, I remember a morality clause. Are you here to fire me?"

Paul sat beside her. "To ease your fears, I'm not here to fire you. Yes, there's a morality clause and no we haven't slept together. I'm confident you and Gabe haven't either. I have no clue what Mr. Frost believes or how many people he's shared his lies with. I promise you, I'll handle the situation."

"Thank you."

Mr. Edwards checked his watch. "I have a meeting I need to attend in seven minutes." He glanced at Gabriel. "Can you stay until she's ready to return?" Paul stood and patted her shoulder as he left. "It'll work out."

Gabriel moved closer. "Do you want to talk or sit in silence?"

She wiped an escaped tear. "Sit in silence."

"Sounds good."

After releasing a deep breath, Katherine said, "I'm sure you have strategic planning to discuss for this football season. You don't need to sit with me. I'll be all right."

He shielded his eyes from the sun as he surveyed the football field. "It's been a difficult lesson, and one I fought all the way, but I've come to realize football isn't the most important part of life."

"I bet that was a hard lesson. Dad never learned it."

Gabriel searched his pockets. "I still slip back to my old ways, especially during the season." He took a tube from his pocket. "Here it is." Handing it to her, he continued, "Put this on. You'll sunburn. I'm pretty sure since living in New York; you're not used to the Texas sun."

Accepting it and rubbing it on her arms, she said, "Thank you."

Taking off his cap, he placed it on her head. "Your scalp will burn."

She gave a partial smile. "Now yours will."

He took the sunscreen from her, squeezed some on his hand, and rubbed his scalp. "It won't."

After a few moments of silence, he asked, "What are you thinking about? Paul, Mr. Edwards, is worried you're going to resign."

"I know you and Mr. Edwards are friends. You don't need to correct yourself around me." As he grinned, Katherine continued, "My welcome back to Silver Cove hasn't been exactly warm. I don't know what I'm going to do. I don't think I can face my team. I know there's a strong rumor mill, and I'm sure by now it's traveled through the school."

"I wouldn't worry about it."

"How can you say that?" interrupted Katherine as she glared at him. "It's not only my personal reputation; it's my professional one. He's implied I can't get a job on my own merits."

"He's wrong, isn't he?"

"Of course he is. You're not a very good cheerleader."

"You're probably right." Gabriel chuckled. "I told Paul that I wasn't the right person for this job." He paused. "My suggestion would be to prove him wrong. All you need to do is be yourself." He hesitated. "Some Faulkner guy said, 'You can't swim for new horizons until you have the courage to lose sight of the shore'."

"It was William Faulkner. Do you believe that?"

He stood and offered his hand. "I do. You ready?"

Standing she ignored his hand. "If we walk in together, everybody will think we were together."

He blinked. "We are together. Paul and I searched for you."

"Right, but..."

"But nothing," he interrupted as they walked toward the school.

As they passed the locker room, Gabriel ran in, grabbed two water bottles, and handed Katherine one. "You were in the sun, you need to drink this."

She took a drink. "Thank you."

At the office door, they paused. Gabriel opened it. "You want to come inside?"

Katherine chewed on her lower lip. "I think I'll return to my meeting."

Grinning, Gabriel asked, "You want an escort?"

"Thank you, but I can do it." Katherine continued down the hall.

Gabriel watched her walk. That's one strong lady.

As she entered Angie's room, everybody clapped, and Frank said, "We're glad you're back. Don't let that crazy old fool get to you. We don't believe a word he said."

Angie hugged her. "Nobody does."

The team meeting continued throughout the afternoon.

About ten minutes before four o'clock, Jordan knocked on the door. "Excuse me. Mom, I need to get to practice."

Katherine glanced at her watch. "Call when you're finished and I'll come get you. Have fun."



This is a bridge post. Not a lot happening, but is necessary to the story. I can promise more action very soon.


CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: more information later, owner of a very large English Mastiff

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Frank Collins math teacher

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Author Notes Thank you google images for a photo of an empty high school football stadium. I also want to thank everybody for the wonderful reviews on this novel. This novel is not actually about football, but there is mention of High School football. High School football is a national past-time in Texas. Raising four sons myself, I can promise you my rear-end graced many bleachers under the Friday night stadium lights. This post is a little over 900 words.


Chapter 9
Football Chapter 4 part 3

By barbara.wilkey

PREVIOUS POST:

At the office door, they paused. Gabriel opened it. "You want to come inside?"

Katherine chewed on her lower lip. "I think I'll return to my meeting."

Grinning, Gabriel asked, "You want an escort?"

"Thank you, but I can do it." Katherine continued down the hall.

Gabriel watched her walk. That's one strong lady.

As she entered Angie's room, everybody clapped, and Frank said, "We're glad you're back. Don't let that crazy old fool get to you. We don't believe a word he said."

Angie hugged her. "Nobody does."

The team meeting continued throughout the afternoon.

About ten minutes before four o'clock, Jordan knocked on the door. "Excuse me. Mom, I need to get to practice."

Katherine glanced at her watch. "Call when you're finished and I'll come get you. Have fun."


TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 4 part 3

After the meeting, Katherine scanned the classroom. I'll never be ready. I only have a few days. I need to pick up Joshua and then start dinner. I'm sure Mom's ready for a break. Thank heavens she's willing to help.

Once home, Katherine discussed with her mom how the boys' day went.

After her mom left, Katherine changed into some sweats and a T-shirt. She made sure her phone was in her pocket for when Jordan called for a ride. While dinner was in the oven, she played a couple games of Dominos with the boys.

When Jordan called the boys went out back to play. After Katherine reminded Joshua to watch his brothers, she said to Jordan, "I'm walking out the door. I'll be there in a few minutes." She hung up.

As Katherine opened the SUV's door, a tan sedan pulled sideways in front of her driveway. She walked to the car. "Excuse me but I need to leave. Would you please move?"

Mr. Frost rolled down his window and had his phone taping the conversation. "You're not going anywhere until you admit you slept your way into this teaching job."

"I don't know what you're talking about. You need to leave."

He repeatedly honked the horn as he yelled, "You're a slut! Admit it!"

Joshua, Joel, and Jeremy opened the front door. "Mom, are you all right?"

She turned her head. "Everything's all right. Go back inside." She held up her phone. "I'm calling the police."

Laying on the horn, Mr. Frost said, "Go ahead, you should be arrested for prostitution."

*****
After twenty minutes, Jordan went back into the locker room. "Excuse me, Coach, can I call Mom again? She said she was walking out the door. She should've been here by now."

"Sure." Gabriel watched Jordan dial and listened as the phone rang and rang. When nobody answered, he said to Coach Brooks, "I'm taking Riley home. I'm sure this isn't like his mom." He turned to Jordan. "Come on. Let's go."

When they arrived at the Riley house, a police officer was already on the scene.

As Gabriel got out of his pick-up, he noticed the boys peering out the window. "Jordan, go inside and get your brothers away from the window." He opened the back door, waited for Reggie, and then walked over to the officer. "Brad, what's going on?"

"Hey Coach, it seems Mr. Frost won't allow Mrs. Riley to back out of her driveway unless she admits the truth about how she traded favors to get a job."

Katherine exhaled a deep breath. "I've told him numerous times that these accusations are false."

Gabriel raised his cap, ran his hand through his hair, then replaced it. "There isn't an ounce of truth to these accusations."

Frost stepped from his car. Thud! His fist hit the car's roof. "He's lying and he's one of the men she slept with."

Brad's eyes widened. "Coach?"

"I have never slept with this lady. I just met her a few days ago. How could I?"

"You and Edwards slept with her when she interviewed for the teaching job. That's why she was hired," yelled Frost.

Coach took a step closer to Frost. "I wasn't anywhere around when she interviewed for the job. I didn't even know Edwards was interviewing for anything. He doesn't confide staffing information with me. I'm a football coach."

Katherine tilted her head. "That would be impossible. I was in New York City and interviewed through Skype. I already had the job when I arrived. All I needed to do was sign the contract. I did that Monday morning. I've only been in town five days. I arrived last Thursday."

Frost thought for a minute. "You're lying. How did you buy this house? You had to be here earlier to purchase it."

"How do you know I own my house?" She shook her head. "My mom made the arrangements. She sent me photographs as did the realtor, and I remembered the house from when I grew up. My girlfriend, Paula, lived here." She paused. "My boys and I got in town Thursday. Our furniture won't arrive till Friday. My husband left me a large sum of money. I paid cash for it. None of this is any of your business." She glanced at the officer. "I want this man off my property."

"Mr. Frost, your car needs to be to moved. You're coming down to the station." The officer's eyes met Katherine's. "Do you want to press charges?"

She glanced at Gabriel, before she said, "At least I want an order of protection. I don't want this man anywhere around my family or me. He needs to stay away from us. What do I need to do to make that happen?"

"You'll need to come down to the station and fill out paperwork. They'll be filed with the court and you'll need to make a court appearance. A temporary one lasts for twenty days."

Katherine sighed. "I really can't take-off school right now."

Gabriel stepped closer. "You've had your life disrupted by Frost. Now he came to your home. Who knows what he'll do next. Paul will understand and give you the needed time."

"I'm already taking Friday afternoon off for my household goods delivery."

Gabriel removed his phone and spoke with Paul. After the conversation, he said, "Paul will go with you tomorrow to file the complaint. He wants the court clerk to know how this came about. He has inside information."

She nodded. "Okay." She faced the officer. "When will he be released? Will I need to worry about him returning tonight?"

"We can hold him until the morning. You'll be safe tonight."

Frost glared at Katherine. "You haven't heard the last of this."

Gabriel walked to Frost's car. "That sounds like a threat to me, don't you think, Brad?"

"It sure does."

Opening Frost's car door, Gabriel said, "Good. The keys are in it. I'm taking it to the school parking lot. You can get it there." He glanced at Katherine. "I'll be back. Reggie, stay." He got inside.

Before Gabriel left he watched Brad pat-down Frost. Once Rodney was inside the patrol car, and they left, Gabriel drove away.

Katherine went inside and smiled. Jordan had finished dinner and the boys were eating. "Thank you. I don't know what I'd do without you."

Jordan placed a plate in front of her. "Mom, what was that all about?"

She patted her son's hand. "Nothing for you to worry about. Mr. Frost has some problems he's trying to work out. Everything's fine."

After she finished eating, she sent Jeremy and Joel up to take their baths. "After your baths, I'll be up to read a story."

Reggie was the first to answer the door. Daisy stood next to him. As Katherine opened the door, Gabriel smiled and petted both dogs. "I see nobody's getting inside without approval." His eyes met Katherine's. "How you holding up?"

"I'm fine. Thank you for asking."

Jeremy stood at the top of stairs. "Mom, story time."

She glanced at her youngest son. "I'm being paged."

"A mom's job's never done." Gabriel sat on a folding chair. "I'll wait. I'm not leaving until I'm assured you're fine."

"You're pushing your way in again."

He chuckled. "I've told you, it's my specialty."

When Katherine returned after putting the two younger boys to bed, Jordan, Joshua, and Coach were having a discussion about who were the all-time best quarterbacks.

"I see you three have a lot in common." She smiled.

Coach stood and offered the chair. "Please have a seat."

"No, the guest should sit. Sorry about the lack of furniture. I really do have some."

"I'm sure you do, but a gentleman always gives the lady his seat."

Jordan laughed. "Do you argue every time you're together?"

Coach nodded. "Most times." He glanced at Katherine. "Do we agree on that?"

"Probably." She swallowed. "Boys, could you go upstairs? I know it's a little early for bed, but..."

Jordan stood. "Sure Mom. Joshua, come on."

After the boys were out of hearing range, Gabriel said, "Jordan's a good kid."

"He is. I rely on him a lot. Probably more than I should. He's still young."

"You've done a great job with them." He petted Reggie's head. "Now, how are you really doing?"

"You mean about Mr. Frost?" After he nodded, Katherine continued, "I'm okay." She bit her lower lip.

"I'm not a great conversationalist, but I'm not sure you have anybody to talk with. How about your mom?"

"I don't want to upset her with this. She has enough to worry about taking care of the boys until school starts."

Gabriel ran his fingers through his short hair. "I guess you're stuck with me. Should I go buy a gallon of ice cream? What flavor?" He stood.

"What?"

"I've heard when women have problems they eat a gallon of ice cream."

Katherine smiled. "That's when they have relationship problems. Mr. Frost and I don't have a relationship."

"Oh, then what should I do?"

She reached over and took his hand. "Just be here, and you're doing a great job."

"So my pushiness came in handy?"

"I guess." Katherine petted Daisy's head. "Why aren't you in bed with Jeremy?"

Still having his hand on Reggie, Gabriel said, "Because she knows you're not really fine. Dogs have an extra sense."

"I'm not sure what you want from me. Do you want me to break down in tears?"

"Please don't. I have no experience with tears."

"We agree on something else. I don't usually cry. But I don't know what I'm feeling." Katherine paused. "I guess I'm angry. I don't understand why this is happening. If I've done something wrong, I don't understand what it is."

"You haven't done anything wrong. Frost's the one with the problem. You just happened to come along at the wrong time. He's taking it out on you. He'd be angry with anybody, unless it was his son who Paul hired."

"I don't understand why he keeps accusing me of me of sleeping with everybody."

"Because you're a beautiful lady and that's all he can come up with."

She smiled. "He could be a little more creative."

"I hope to see you smile more often. It brightens the room." Gabriel cleared his throat and stood. "I'd better get going. Morning comes early."

"It sure does." She paused. "I'm curious how Frost knew I bought the house."

Gabriel shrugged his shoulders. "Good question. Even for a small town that news got out fast."

Katherine followed him to the door. "Very true. I'd think they'd have other things to talk about." She opened the door. "Thank you for being concerned."

After Gabriel and Reggie left, Katherine leaned against the door. Does he really think I'm beautiful? Of course not, I'm a mother of four children. He's being kind. Don't let that fool you, he's ultimately a jock and always will be. He's arrogant and his wants will always come before all else.

Jordan came partly down the stairs. "Mom, is everything all right?"

"Yes. Let's get some sleep. Four-thirty's early."








CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: more information later, owner of a very large English Mastiff

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Frank Collins math teacher

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Author Notes Thank you google images for a photo of a car blocking a driveway. I also want to thank everybody for the wonderful reviews on this novel. This novel is not actually about football, but is part of the background. High School football is a national past-time in Texas. Raising four sons myself, I can promise you my rear-end graced many bleachers under the Friday night stadium lights. This post is a little over 1000 words.


Chapter 10
Football Chapter 5 part 1

By barbara.wilkey

PREVIOUS POST:


"You haven't done anything wrong. Frost's the one with the problem. You just happened to come along at the wrong time. He's taking it out on you. He'd be angry with anybody, unless it was his son who Paul hired."

"I don't understand why he keeps accusing me of me of sleeping with everybody."

"Because you're a beautiful lady and that's all he can come up with."

She smiled. "He could be a little more creative."

"I hope to see you smile more often. It brightens the room." Gabriel cleared his throat and stood. "I'd better get going. Morning comes early."

"It sure does." She paused. "I'm curious how Frost knew I bought the house."

Gabriel shrugged his shoulders. "Good question. Even for a small town that news got out fast."

Katherine followed him to the door. "Very true. I'd think they'd have other things to talk about." She opened the door. "Thank you for being concerned."

After Gabriel and Reggie left, Katherine leaned against the door. Does he really think I'm beautiful? Of course not, I'm a mother of four children. He's being kind. Don't let that fool you, he's ultimately a jock and always will be. He's arrogant and his wants will always come before all else.

Jordan came partly down the stairs. "Mom, is everything all right?"

"Yes. Let's get some sleep. Four-thirty's early."


TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 5 part 1

About four-forty A.M. Katherine and Daisy went outside. Katherine began her stretching routine. She paused when she noticed a dark figure jogging toward her. She smiled when she noticed the large dog alongside. "Must be Coach."

As the man got closer, she said, "You don't need to jog with me every morning." She pointed to her dog. "I have Daisy. The only person who bothers me is Rodney Frost, and he should still be at the police station."

"True, but yesterday I told you it wasn't safe for you to jog by yourself in the dark." He chuckled. "I figured you wouldn't pay attention, so here I am. I jog this way anyway." He glanced over his shoulder. "I park my truck at the school. It's only a few blocks back."

She set her watch. "I need to be back here at five-forty. I turn around at the half way point, timewise. Jordan can't be late to practice."

"The best football teams are the best disciplined."

She started jogging. "So I've heard. Come on, Daisy."

Gabriel followed her lead. "Last night when I got home, I spoke with Paul. When you get to school, check with him."

Katherine stopped in tracks and started to say something.

"I pushed my way in again, didn't I?" interrupted Gabriel. "Let's get going." They jogged a few steps. "Just trying to help."

"You honestly believe that, don't you?"

"Hmm."

They continued in silence, until Katherine's watch sounded. She turned. "It's time to turn around."

As they arrived at Katherine's house, she headed toward the front steps. "Two large black coffees, correct?"

"Yes." He rubbed his stomach. "And maybe something to eat."

"Like what?"

"Surprise me. I like everything."

Of course, you do. I'll ask when I get to the coffee shop what you usually order.

*****
After getting the boys where they belonged and arriving at school, Katherine went straight to the office and asked, "May I please speak with Mr. Edwards?"

Paul stepped from his office. "Mrs. Riley, I thought I heard your voice. Please come in and have a seat." After she entered, he closed the door. "I heard you had a visitor last night." He grinned as she juggled the three coffees and the small bag. "Gabe again?"

"Of course, the same person you heard about last night's incident from."

After calling his secretary, he said, "Please tell Coach Hudson to come to my office."

They both heard the intercom.

Within minutes, there was a knock and then the door opened. He saw the coffees and the bag. "I was hoping it was my coffee. What surprise did you get?" Before Katherine could answer, he examined the sack's contents and grinned. "A jalapeno kolache, cherry Danish, and a Southern brunch pastry puff." His eyes met hers. "I..."

"I couldn't make up my mind and you gave me no hints," interrupted Katherine before he continued. "I figured with the workout you needed some protein."

"Sounds like a typical mom. Great choices. Thank you." Gabriel glanced at Paul. "Have you decided what you're going to do about Frost?"

Paul motioned Gabriel to have a seat. "We were just getting started. Any ideas?"

"Only what we discussed last night. I feel he's a threat to Mrs. Riley and needs to be stopped."

"May I say something?" asked Katherine.

"Of course, this is about what's best for you," said Paul.

"I want an order of protection. I don't want him around my boys." She paused. "Jordan's old enough he's asking questions. I don't want him to worry." Releasing a deep breath, she continued, "You have the final decision about him coming back here. May I request if Jordan's in one of his classes, that he be transferred to another teacher; even if it means taking a different math course?"

Pouring himself a cup of coffee, Paul eyed Katherine. "I shouldn't say this, but I will. Frost's no longer part of our staff. I was close to removing him after yesterday's outburst, but then when I heard about last night, it sealed the deal. That's why I want to go to the police station. I want to make sure everything's spelled out."

"Thank you." She glanced at Gabriel. "You two had this all worked out last night, and didn't need me for anything, right?"

Gabriel's eyes met Paul's. "Mrs. Riley feels I force my way into situations and do things without consulting her."

Paul stirred his coffee. "Gabe, that's part of your charm. You see something that needs to be done and do it, without hesitation."

Katherine smiled. "That's one way to put it."

"Okay, now that's settled." Paul glanced over his schedule. "Mrs. Riley, how does ten o'clock this morning look?"

"I have a meeting at nine. It should only take an hour. It should be fine."

"Great. Come to my office when you're finished." He picked up his phone and listened. He covered the receiver. "Sorry, I need to take this."

Both Gabriel and Katherine stood. He opened the door and followed her out. "Can I ask a question?"

"Always."

"Do you really believe I'm arrogant?" When she didn't answer, he continued, "I see that's an area I need improvement."

After they left the office, Gabriel walked toward the locker room area. Katherine stood and watched. I think I hurt his feelings. Why does that surprise me? Because arrogant jocks don't have feelings. Could there be more to him?




PLEASE HAVE A SAFE AND WONDERFUL THANKSGIVING!!! IT IS MY PRAYER THAT YOU AND YOUR FAMILY ARE BLESSED!!!!





CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: more information later, owner of a very large English Mastiff

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Frank Collins math teacher

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Author Notes Thank you google images for a photo of 3 coffee cups. I also want to thank everybody for the wonderful reviews. This novel is not actually about football, but is part of the background. High School football is a national past-time in Texas. Raising four sons myself, I know my rear-end graced many bleachers under the Friday night stadium lights. This post is a little over 900 words.


Chapter 11
Football Chapter 5 part 2

By barbara.wilkey

PREVIOUS POST:

Pouring himself a cup of coffee, Paul eyed Katherine. "I shouldn't say this, but I will. Frost's no longer part of our staff. I was close to removing him after yesterday's outburst, but then when I heard about last night, it sealed the deal. That's why I want to go to the police station. I want to make sure everything's spelled out."

"Thank you." She glanced at Gabriel. "You two had this all worked out last night, and didn't need me for anything, right?"

Gabriel's eyes met Paul's. "Mrs. Riley feels I force my way into situations and do things without consulting her."

Paul stirred his coffee. "Gabe, that's part of your charm. You see something that needs to be done and do it, without hesitation."

Katherine smiled. "That's one way to put it."

"Okay, now that's settled." Paul glanced over his schedule. "Mrs. Riley, how does ten o'clock this morning look?"

"I have a meeting at nine. It should only take an hour. It should be fine."

"Great. Come to my office when you're finished." He picked up his phone and listened. He covered the receiver. "Sorry, I need to take this."

Both Gabriel and Katherine stood. He opened the door and followed her out. "Can I ask a question?"

"Always."

"Do you really believe I'm arrogant?" When she didn't answer, he continued, "I see that's an area I need improvement."

After they left the office, Gabriel walked toward the locker room area. Katherine stood and watched. I think I hurt his feelings. Why does that surprise me? Because arrogant jocks don't have feelings. Could there be more to him?

TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 5 part 2

After meeting with the police and the court clerk, Paul opened the school door for Katherine. "I think that went well. What do you think?"

"I guess so. Think a thirty day restraining order is enough? I guess we'll find out."

As they neared the office, Gabriel opened the door. "Well?"

As Katherine's jaw set, she glared at Gabriel. "Why didn't you tell me Mr. Frost had a gun and a knife?"

Gabriel exhaled. "You were frightened, so I decided you didn't need to know."

"You push your way into my life and now you're making decisions on what I need to know. Did it occur to you that I have a right to know about things that affect me? I'm not a child."

"I guess I didn't look at it that way. Next time I will."

"Let's pray there's not a next time," interjected Paul. He watched Gabriel walk over to a table.

Gabriel handed a sack and drink to Katherine. "Today's lunch. I hope you don't mind, but I already gave Jordan his."

She accepted the sack. "Thank you for thinking of Jordan. I'm sure he was hungry." After a few moments, she asked, "What's for lunch?"

"Two pulled pork sandwiches, coleslaw, potato salad, a brownie, and lemonade." He grinned. "I think Mom put two brownies in Jordan's."

"Tell her thank you but she didn't need to do that. Yesterday, he got my second sandwich and will probably get this one. There's no way I can eat two. Anyway, you can convince her to put only one in mine? I hate wasting food."

Gabriel chuckled. "I doubt it. She usually adds not subtracts." He glanced at the clock on the wall. "I need to get to my meeting. Have a nice lunch. Paul, yours is in your office. Beside it I laid an outline for girls' cross country and the cost." As Katherine headed toward the door, he opened it. "Please accept my apology. I'll work on those areas."

Is he serious? Does this arrogant jock have a soft side?

*****
The afternoon was filled with staff meetings and working in classrooms. As Katherine prepared to leave, there was a knock on her classroom door. She glanced up and saw a middle-aged woman. "Hello, may I help you?"

She offered her hand. "Yes, Ma'am. I'm Sandy Frost, Rodney's wife."

Katherine chewed her lower lip. "Mrs. Frost, I'm not sure you should be here."

When Katherine didn't accept the hand, Sandy placed it by her side. "I'm not here to harm you. I want to apologize for Rodney's behavior. He's had problems for a while. They got worse when he was turned down for assistant principal positions at three other schools, and then our son didn't get this math job. All the positions were filled with women, and he felt he was discriminated against. I don't share his opinions."

Katherine smiled. "I'm glad you came in. I couldn't figure out what I'd done to cause your husband's anger. Now I understand I just happened to be a representation of what happened." She hesitated. "I know it's none of my business, but has he seen a doctor?"

Her eyes threatened to tear, and Sandy used a Kleenex to wipe them. "No. I've tried to get him to see one, but he refuses. I'm hoping after this incident the court will force him to seek help."

Offering Sandy additional tissues, Katherine said, "I hope he gets the help he needs."

Sandy glanced at the door. "I guess I'd better leave. I know this is the beginning of the school year and you're busy. Thank you for listening."

"Thank you for taking time to explain the situation. Please let me know if he gets help."

She nodded. "I will. Good bye."

*****
Gabriel and Paul stood outside the office talking as Sandy Frost walked by.

Paul waved. "Have a nice day, Mrs. Frost."

Coach's eyes widened. "Mrs. Frost?" He jogged down to Katherine's classroom.

Following close behind, Paul said, "I wonder what she wanted?"

They both barged into the room. "You all right?"

She glanced up. "Why wouldn't I be?"

Mr. Edwards said, "Because Mrs. Frost was in the building."

"Yes. Sandy came to speak with me. She apologized for her husband's behavior and explained some things."

Gabriel blurted, "So she didn't threaten you or ask you to drop the charges?"

"No. She hopes the court will order medical care that he refuses to get."

The men looked at each other. Paul was the first to speak. "I guess we worried for nothing."

"Maybe so."

Katherine shook her head. "You two are starting to worry me."

Gabriel walked toward the door. "I have practice to get to." He glanced at Paul. "How about you?"

"I have paperwork that needs my attention. Good day, Mrs. Riley."

"Good bye." Katherine watched them leave and muttered, "No wonder they're friends. They're both crazy."

Paul called back, "We heard that."






CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: more information later, owner of a very large English Mastiff

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Frank Collins math teacher

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Sandy Frost Rodney Frost's wife

Author Notes Thank you google images for a photo of a pulled pork sandwich. I also want to thank everybody for the wonderful reviews. This novel is not actually about football, but is part of the background. High School football is a national past-time in Texas. This post is a little over 800 words.


Chapter 12
Football Chapter 6 part 1

By barbara.wilkey

PREVIOUS POST:

Gabriel and Paul stood outside the office talking as Sandy Frost walked by.

Paul waved. "Have a nice day, Mrs. Frost."

Coach's eyes widened. "Mrs. Frost?" He jogged down to Katherine's classroom.

Following close behind, Paul said, "I wonder what she wanted?"

They both barged into the room. "You all right?"

She glanced up. "Why wouldn't I be?"

Mr. Edwards said, "Because Mrs. Frost was in the building."

"Yes. Sandy came to speak with me. She apologized for her husband's behavior and explained some things."

Gabriel blurted, "So she didn't threaten you or ask you to drop the charges?"

"No. She hopes the court will order medical care that he refuses to get."

The men looked at each other. Paul was the first to speak. "I guess we worried for nothing."

"Maybe so."

Katherine shook her head. "You two are starting to worry me."

Gabriel walked toward the door. "I have practice to get to." He glanced at Paul. "How about you?"

"I have paperwork that needs my attention. Good day, Mrs. Riley."

"Good bye." Katherine watched them leave and muttered, "No wonder they're friends. They're both crazy."

Paul called back, "We heard that."

TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 6 part 1

As Gabriel walked through the parking lot, a short cut to the practice field, he noticed all of Katherine's tires were flat. He used his walkie-talkie to notify Paul as he returned inside.

Gabriel asked Paul, "Do you think Mrs. Frost did this?"

Paul shook his head. "No, I think she honestly came to apologize. I think Frost did."

"This could get him locked-up, right?"

Paul cued the security video of the staff parking lot. "It will if we can prove he broke the court order. I wish this video would hurry and get back to when we returned. It had to happen after that. At least we have a time frame."

The two men watched the tape. Finally, Gabriel jumped up and pointed. "There. Who's that? It's definitely a male."

Paul moved closer. "That's a knife. Does it look like the knife he had last night?"

"Wouldn't the police still have it as evidence?"

"Maybe. Come on, turn around."

"Frost would know we have cameras surrounding that area."

"True. How we going to identify him? He's the same height and build." Paul picked up his phone. "I'll call the police."

Gabriel placed his finger on the phone stopping the call. "We better notify Katherine, and see how she wants to handle this."

"You're right. I'll call her to come here."

Coach pointed. "You don't need to. Here she comes." He stepped out of the office. "Mrs. Riley, could you talk with us a few minutes?"

She stepped in. "Of course, I was just headed home. Your faces say it's serious. Is something wrong with Jordan?"

"Jordan's fine." Gabriel glanced at Paul.

Paul avoided eye contact. "All four of your tires were slashed."

"What? How?"

Clueing up the video, Paul said, "This is how. Gabriel was on this way to practice when he noticed."

Pointing Katherine said, "Is that Mr. Frost?"

Gabriel was the first to speak, "We think so. How'd you like to handle this?"

Her eyes widened. "I'm surprised you haven't called the police."

Paul sighed. "I tried but Gabe stopped me. He thought we should wait for your instructions."

Her eyes met Gabriel's as she sat. "Thank you." She faced Paul. "Please call the police. Any idea how I'm going to get four new tires tonight?"

Removing his phone, Gabriel said, "I have a friend, Sam, who owns a garage. He'll help. I suggest you call your insurance company. They can communicate with the school's insurance. If we can prove its Frost, he should be forced to pay. Let them fight it out." He glanced at her. "Can you cover the initial cost until they decide who's paying? If not, I can help."

Paul added, "So will I."

"I can cover it. But how will I get home? I need to get Joshua from practice, and then Jordan. I'm sure they can't get it done tonight." Katherine glanced at her phone. "It's almost five-thirty."

Paul offered, "I can take you home, but I have a meeting later so won't be able to help any further."

Gabriel put his phone away. "He'll be here in about twenty minutes. He'll take your SUV to his shop. If it's all right, I can bring Jordan home."

Katherine nodded. "I guess I'll have to tell Mom what's been going on. I've been trying not to worry her. She'll have to be my taxi for everything. Think my car will be fixed by the end of the day tomorrow?"

"It should be." Gabriel checked his watch. "I need to get to the practice field. I'll return when Sam gets here." He left.

Paul pointed to a chair. "You might as well get comfortable."

Katherine took out her phone. "Mom will need to get Joshua from practice. I know I won't be home by six."

*****
When Sam arrived, Gabriel jogged up and welcomed him. Paul and Katherine came outside.

Sam checked the tires and assured Katherine he had all four in stock. For payment, he'd work with her and the insurance companies.

Gabriel assisted him loading the SUV onto the trailer. After it was loaded, Sam wiped his hands on a grease rag, and shook Katherine's hand. "I'll deliver your SUV here by early evening. Is that okay?"

"It'll have to be. I need to pick up one of my sons from football practice around six o'clock."

Sam tipped his cap and eyed Gabriel. "I'll do what I can to have it here by noon. Will that help?"

Katherine's eyes twinkled. "It would, but will that cause problems? I'm sure you already have jobs lined up."

He nodded. "Can't promise but I'll do what I can." He climbed inside the wrecker. "I need to get back. See you tomorrow."

After Sam drove away, Katherine faced Gabriel. "Thank you." She hesitated. "Did you have anything to do with possibly getting it back earlier?"

Gabriel eyed the practice field. "I'm needed."

Paul grinned. "Let's get you home." He pointed toward his car. "I'm parked over here."



CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: more information later, owner of a very large English Mastiff

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Frank Collins math teacher

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Sandy Frost Rodney Frost's wife

Sam Car repair shop owner




Author Notes Thank you google images for a photo of a flat tire. I also want to thank everybody for the wonderful reviews. This novel is not actually about football, but is part of the background. High School football is a national past-time in Texas. This post is a little over 800 words.


Chapter 13
Football Chapter 6 part 2

By barbara.wilkey

PREVIOUS POST:

When Sam arrived, Gabriel jogged up and welcomed him. Paul and Katherine came outside.

Sam checked the tires and assured Katherine he had all four in stock. For payment, he'd work with her and the insurance companies.

Gabriel assisted him loading the SUV onto the trailer. After it was loaded, Sam wiped his hands on a grease rag, and shook Katherine's hand. "I'll deliver your SUV here by early evening. Is that okay?"

"It'll have to be. I need to pick up one of my sons from football practice around six o'clock."

Sam tipped his cap and eyed Gabriel. "I'll do what I can to have it here by noon. Will that help?"

Katherine's eyes twinkled. "It would, but will that cause problems? I'm sure you already have jobs lined up."

He nodded. "Can't promise but I'll do what I can." He climbed inside the wrecker. "I need to get back. See you tomorrow."

After Sam drove away, Katherine faced Gabriel. "Thank you." She hesitated. "Did you have anything to do with possibly getting it back earlier?"

Gabriel eyed the practice field. "I'm needed."

Paul grinned. "Let's get you home." He pointed toward his car. "I'm parked over here."



TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 6 part 2

After practice, Coach called, "Riley, over here." As Jordan stood beside him, he continued, "Your mom had some flat tires. After you shower, come to my office I'll give you a ride home. You don't need to hurry. I have a few things to do before I can leave."

"Okay." Jordan went into the locker room.

On the way home, Gabriel asked, "You seem quiet. Is something wrong?"

"Mom put on new tires just before we left New York City. I don't understand what happened." Jordan adjusted himself in the seat. "I know something's bothering her but she won't tell me what. I don't know how to help."

"How do you know something's wrong?"

Jordan's eyebrows rose. "Duh, I've only lived with her for almost sixteen years. In February, I'll be sixteen."

"I guess you're the resident expert."

"Dad was gone most of the time, so I figured it was my job to take care of her."

Coach chuckled. "I've only known your mom for a few days, but I've already learned she's a strong lady and more than capable of taking care of herself."

"Really? How do you know?"

"She's not afraid to express herself and has put me in my place on several occasions."

"I guess I don't understand. Can you explain?"

"Son, I don't understand women. Why do you think I'm single?"

"I figured, because you haven't found the right woman."

Glancing at Jordan, Gabriel said, "Maybe you're right. I never thought about it that way." He parked by the curb. "Let's get inside. Your mom may be worried."

As they entered, Katherine was setting dinner on the table and glanced up. "Good you're home. Coach Hudson, would you like to eat with us? I have plenty." She shook her head when she saw Reggie. "Did you go home and get him?"

Jordan petted Reggie's head. "Nope, he stays in the locker room."

Gabriel eyed his massive dog and Daisy sniffing each other. "I think they like each other. Reggie comes to school with me every day." When Katherine's eyes widened, he continued, "He's an English mastiff. He's docile. I accuse him of being lazy."

He roughed up his ears. "But he doesn't seem to mind. He gets exercise twice a day, the morning runs and then during football practice with the players. Otherwise he sleeps all day." He chuckled. "He's sort of the team mascot. He even travels on the bus to away games."

"Okay." She held an extra plate in her hand. "You haven't answered my question about sharing dinner."

He glanced at Reggie. "Why not? Sure you don't mind?"

"I don't. Sorry about the card table. Our dining room table will be delivered Friday."

Jeremy shouted, "My toys too."

Gabriel winked at him and then pulled a bib from his back pocket. "Jeremy, why don't you put this on Reggie?"

Grinning from ear-to-ear, Jeremy took the bib. "Mom, do we have enough chairs so Reggie can have one? He's ready to eat."

"No," hurried Gabriel. "He's not eating at the table. He's not allowed, but he tends to help himself. He's supposed to lie off to the side. But because of his big jowls, he slobbers, a lot. You have solid wood floors. The two don't mix well." He pointed. "Reggie, go lay by the door."

The massive dog lumbered over and plopped down. 'Thud.'

Looking Katherine in the eyes, Gabriel said, "How can I help?"

"I have a loaf of garlic bread in the oven. Would you get it then I think we're ready."

After setting it on the table, Gabriel held out Katherine's chair as her eyes widened. "Thank you."

"You look surprised. I do know how to act in polite society." Gabriel scanned the table. "It looks good."

"I didn't mean..."

"You're surprised a jock would think to hold a lady's chair," interrupted Gabriel.

As her cheek tinged pink, she said, "Jeremy, pass your plate. How hungry are you?"

"I'm starving, besides spaghetti's my favorite, next to mac-n-cheese." As his mom, placed the plate in front of him, he added, "Mom, I can eat more than that."

"If you eat all of that, you can have more."

Joel grinned. "He never cleans his plate."

"Joel, no comment is needed."

Jordan asked, "Coach, what offense do you usually run?"

"I'll quickly answer your question, but I don't think we'd better talk football during dinner. I like the spread attack but I'll have to wait and see how we do during practice. Some key players graduated and I'm not sure what'll be best this year. Now, Joel, how do you like Texas so far?"

Katherine took a deep breath and mouthed, "Thank you."

Gabriel winked at her.

Joel rubbed his chin. "I think I'm going to like not having so much snow, but I'm not too fond of the heat. Especially at night. It's hard to sleep."

Pointing to four boxes stacked in a corner, Katherine said, "Since heat rises, the upstairs is still hot at night. The central air conditioner doesn't cool the upstairs enough. I've bought window air conditioners, but I haven't had time to install them."

Gabriel glanced at Jordan. "What you say after dinner we put those in, and we can talk all the football we want?"

Joshua piped up, "Coach, I can help."

"Sure can."

After dinner, the boys and Gabriel helped clear the table. Gabriel walked over to the boxes and lifted one. "Jordan, grab one and carry it upstairs." He turned toward Katherine. "Which room first?"

"Jeremy's. He'll go to bed first. Jeremy, show Coach Hudson, your room and then take your bath."

Joel started to follow upstairs. Gabriel nodded. "Help your mom with the dishes, and then come up. Deal?"

"Okay."

*****
After the air conditioners were installed and the younger boys were in bed and the older ones were upstairs, Gabriel petted Reggie. "Jordan knows something's going on and is worried about you."

Katherine released a breath. "How do you know?"

"He asked me about it on the way home." When her eyes met his, he continued, "I didn't say anything.

"Thank you. I guess I haven't done a very good job of hiding it."

Chuckling he said, "He's lived with you for almost sixteen years and can read you really well."

Katherine smiled. "I guess he's right. We've spent a lot of time together. George was rarely home. Most the time it was just the boys and me." She chewed her lower lip. "Thank you for helping with the air conditioners. I don't know when I'd have gotten to it."

"Thank you for dinner. I'm not the best cook so it's usually fast food or something frozen. Once in a while, it's a prepared meal that all you have to do is heat it up. A home cooked meal's special."

"Your mom's a really good cook. I'm sure you can get a meal there."

"I can, and you're right she's a great cook. I try to go there not around meal times so she knows I'm visiting with her and Dad not just coming for a meal."

"I understand. That's thoughtful." After a long pause Katherine asked, "Can I ask a question?"

"Always, what?"

"Earlier you made a comment about 'me being surprised a jock knew how to hold a chair for a lady.' What did you mean?"

"I've heard my reputation has preceded me. I'll admit in high school and college I fully embraced jockdom. My first few years playing pro, I did some pretty stupid stunts and earned the reputation of being a jerk. The fame, alcohol, and women were abundant. I woke up one morning after a celebration party and didn't know where I was or how I got there. I looked in the mirror and realized I didn't like who I'd become. It wasn't how my parents raised me."

Reggie laid his head on his owner's knee. Gabriel petted it. "I changed at that moment. Since then I've tried to become a better person. A few times you've mentioned my arrogance, and I've realized I still have a lot to work on."

"I'm sorry. I didn't mean..."

"You're right," interrupted Gabriel. "I still have a lot of areas that need work." He checked his watch and stood. "It's getting late. I'd better go. Thank you for everything." He opened the door and left.

Katherine stared at the door. This jock does have a soft side. She walked up stairs and peeked in at her younger boys. They were sound asleep and then said good night to her two older ones.




CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Frank Collins math teacher

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Sandy Frost Rodney Frost's wife

Sam Auto repair shop owner




Author Notes Thank you google images for a photo of a plate of spaghetti. I also want to thank everybody for the wonderful reviews. This novel is not actually about football, but is part of the background. High School football is a national past-time in Texas. This post is a little over 1400 words. I'm sorry about the length. After Friday, I am off for two week. I can finally actually review all of your posts.


Chapter 14
Football Chapter 7 part 1

By barbara.wilkey

ENDING OF PREVIOUS POST:

"Earlier you made a comment about 'me being surprised a jock knew how to hold a chair for a lady.' What did you mean?"

"I've heard my reputation has preceded me. I'll admit in high school and college I fully embraced jockdom. My first few years playing pro, I did some pretty stupid stunts and earned the reputation of being a jerk. The fame, alcohol, and women were abundant. I woke up one morning after a celebration party and didn't know where I was or how I got there. I looked in the mirror and realized I didn't like who I'd become. It wasn't how my parents raised me."

Reggie laid his head on his owner's knee. Gabriel petted it. "I changed at that moment. Since then I've tried to become a better person. A few times you've mentioned my arrogance, and I've realized I still have a lot to work on."

"I'm sorry. I didn't mean..."

"You're right," interrupted Gabriel. "I still have a lot of areas that need work." He checked his watch and stood. "It's getting late. I'd better go. Thank you for everything." He opened the door and left.

Katherine stared at the door. This jock does have a soft side. She walked up stairs and peeked in at her younger boys. They were sound asleep and then said good night to her two older ones.


TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 7 part 1

Predawn lit the Eastern sky, as Katherine and Daisy stepped out the front door. Katherine tilted her head and smiled. "Coach Hudson, you don't need to jog with me every morning. I can do this, really I can."

He grinned. "There are two things wrong with that statement. First, I jog anyway and this is part of my usual route, so there's no way I'm going to allow you to be molested when I can prevent it. Second, I think we've known each other long enough that you can call me Gabriel, or Gabe. May I call you Katherine?"

"I have no control over the first one, do I?"

"Only if you stop jogging in the dark."

"It's the only time I have." She checked and set the timer on her watch. "The second, I guess we can be on a first name basis." She moved her head, stretching her neck from shoulder to shoulder. "Ready?"

"Let's do this. Come on, Reggie."

Both dogs stopped and growled across the street.

Katherine paused. "What's wrong with them?"

"No clue, but they heard something." Gabriel stared that direction. "I don't see anything." He hesitated. "Want to continue or abort?"

"I don't see anything either." She glanced at the house. "Let me make sure I locked the door." She ran up the steps and checked the door. "It's locked, and I woke up Jordan before I left. Let's go."

A couple of times during the run, both dogs stopped, stared, and growled.

As they returned to Katherine's house, she said, "Now, I understand. I'm glad you're with me. Something definitely has the dogs upset, and it's a little unsettling. I wonder if Mr. Frost is planning something, but isn't he in jail? Wasn't he arrested for slashing my tires?"

"I have friends with the police department. When I get to school, I'll make a few phone calls and let you know."

"Thank you." As Katherine started up the stairs, she stopped. "NO!!"

Gabriel ran to her. "What's wrong?"

Her cheeks tinged pink. "I forgot to ask Mom if she can be here about 5:45 to take Jordan to practice." Katherine released a deep breath. "I'll have to walk him."

"No, you won't. It's too dangerous to walk or jog back by yourself." Gabriel ran his hand through his short hair. "Get Jordan, we can run back to the locker room together. We're both going there anyway."

"But..."

"But nothing," interrupted Gabriel. "Get your son."

Katherine opened the door and called him. He walked out of the kitchen. "Mom, Grandma's not here yet."

"I know I forgot to ask her."

"Mom!"

"It'll be all right. Coach Hudson came up with an idea."

"How about you and me run to practice?" he asked.

Jordan grinned and slipped on his backpack. "It works for me."

"Jordan, did you remember your breakfast and a change of clothes?"

"Yes, Mom."

"Okay. I'll see you after practice." She stretched up and kissed his cheek.

Using the back of his hand, he wiped it away. "Mom, did you have to do that in front of Coach?"

"It's what moms do and I'm a mom." She reached over and embraced him in a bear hug. "And they do this too."

"Mom?"

Gabriel chuckled. "I have a mom too. It's what they do. Let's go."

"You really have a mom?"

They jogged down the sidewalk. "Of course. My mom makes the lunch you've eaten every day this week."

"Really?" Jordan glanced back and waved at Katherine, still standing on the porch.

She waved. Of course, he has a mom. Everybody does.

Daisy stood alert and growled.

Katherine turned and scanned the area. "Did you hear something, girl?" She petted the dog's head. "Let's get inside."

*****
When Katherine's Mom, Sarah, arrived at seven o'clock, Katherine and the three boys piled in the car. "Mom, could you please stop at the coffee shop on Second Avenue? I have a deal with Coach Hudson. I supply coffee in the mornings and he'll supply lunch for Jordan and me." She laughed. "Or I should say his mom supplies lunch. I think he got off pretty easy with this deal."

"Coach is a special person. I'm a volunteer for the Quarterback Club. He's one of the good guys."

As Sarah pulled into a parking place, Katherine said, "Mom, you like everybody." She opened the door. "I'll be right back."

A few minutes later, she returned, got inside the car, and then passed a sack back to Joshua. "I got you guys something for breakfast. Wait until you get home to eat. I don't want crumbs in Grandma's car."

Sarah smiled. "Besides coffee what did you get for that hunky coach?"

A pink tinted Katherine's cheeks as she swiped at her mom's arm. "Mom?"

Nodding Sarah said, "I thought so. You can't fool your mom. You like him."

"I don't even know him."

At school, Katherine kissed her sons' cheeks, reminded them to behave, and kissed her mom's cheek. "Thank you for everything. My car should be returned sometime today. I appreciate you."

"I know, Sweetheart. Have a good day. If it doesn't arrive in time, call." She glanced to her right. "Look who's coming right on cue with his trusty dog."

"Mom! Hush!"

Coach Hudson leaned inside the car and hugged Sarah. "How you doing? I'm sure the boys are keeping you busy."

"I'm fine and happy to help. I missed these guys when they were in New York. Now I can see them every day."

"That's true. I need to get inside. Paul, Mr. Edwards wanted to see me." He started to close her car door, but stopped. "Will you be available to help with physicals next week?"

"I'm planning on it. It's Thursday, right?"

"It is."

"Are you including some girls or just the football team?"

"I think that's what Paul wants to discuss right now. We're thinking about a girls' cross country team."

"Oh good. Katherine, you could help with that."

"Mom, I've got to go. I'll talk with you tonight."

Gabriel grinned. "I'll see you later, Ms. Sarah." He reached for the two cups of coffee. "Are these for me?"

Katherine handed him the sack. "Here's your breakfast."

"What do I get today?"

"Two sausage, egg, and cheese biscuits and a blueberry kolache."

They walked to the school's door as Gabriel continued, "Yum. You're great at this. You know your mom's right. You'd be the right person to help with the girls' cross country team. I hear you were really good. I think you still hold a few records. We need to check that."

"Don't get..." She stopped as Reggie turned and growled. "What does he hear?"

"I don't know." Gabriel turned and scanned the area.

"After you and Jordan left this morning, Daisy did the same thing. It's sort of spooky. Something's going on, but what?"

"I don't know." He put this hand on the small of her back. "Let's get inside. We're stuck in meetings all day."

Katherine checked her watch. "I have about thirty minutes to work in my room."

"You about done, or do you need some help?"

"It's getting down to the wire, but I think I'll be all right. Thank you for asking."

"Let me know if you need something. I can help or I'll get somebody in there."

"I know." She continued to her room, as Gabriel went into the office.





CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Frank Collins math teacher

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Sandy Frost Rodney Frost's wife

Sam Auto repair shop owner


Author Notes Thank you google images for a photo of a Texas sunrise. I drive to school just as the sun is peaking over the horizon. I will have to admit of all the states I've lived in Texas has the most beautiful skies. I also want to thank everybody for the wonderful reviews. This novel is not actually about football, but is part of the background. High School football is a national past-time in Texas. This post is a little over 1200 words and is an information post. It gives the story background knowledge that will help understand future events. I'm sorry about the length.


Chapter 15
Football Chapter 8 part 1

By barbara.wilkey

ENDING OF PREVIOUS POST:

"Don't get..." She stopped as Reggie turned and growled. "What does he hear?"

"I don't know." Gabriel turned and scanned the area.

"After you and Jordan left this morning, Daisy did the same thing. It's sort of spooky. Something's going on, but what?"

"I don't know." He put his hand on the small of her back. "Let's get inside. We're stuck in meetings all day."

Katherine checked her watch. "I have about thirty minutes to work in my room."

"You about done, or do you need some help?"

"It's getting down to the wire, but I think I'll be all right. Thank you for asking."

"Let me know if you need something. I can help or I'll get somebody in there."

"I know." She continued to her room, as Gabriel went into the office.


TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 8 part 1

Katherine smiled when she saw Gabriel jogging toward her house. She rechecked the door to ensure it was locked and then joined him. "Good morning."

"Good morning to you. I see you have your trusty jogging companion."

She petted Daisy's head. "Daisy and I have been at this since she was old enough to jog. What about Reggie?"

Gabriel chuckled. "He puts up with it, but would rather sleep all day." He paused as both dogs stood alert and growled toward the left.

"They hear it again, don't they?" asked Katherine.

"Sure do. My police buddy said Frost was locked up. So it's not him."

"Maybe he's hired somebody to do his dirty work."

Gabriel pointed down the sidewalk. "Let's get going."

Katherine set her alarm. "I have a busy day. I'll get your coffee, but we won't need a lunch. I'm taking a half-a-day off. My furniture arrives this afternoon."

"I bet you're excited."

"I can't wait to sleep in a real bed and not on air mattresses. Jeremy can't wait for his toys."

"I'm sure." Gabriel stopped and stared. "Not only did the dogs hear it, so did I. It was sort of a click, but I can't identify it."

"Should we go back?"

"No. They seem to remain a distance away. If they move closer, we'll take precautions."

Silence continued until Katherine's alarm sounded. As they turned, Gabriel paused and scanned the area. "I don't see a thing, but the dogs hear it."

In front of Katherine's house, Gabriel said, "I'll make sure you get inside safely."

"Thank you. Please be safe on the way back to school."

"I will. Besides who would bother me with Reggie? He may look like a big lug, but if crossed, he'll react."

At the door, Katherine waved. "I'll see you later."

After Jordan was at practice and reminded that Grandma would pick him up. Katherine returned home and prepared for her day. When her mom arrived, she left.

She stopped by the office, and dropped off Coach Hudson's coffee and breakfast, and went on to her classroom.

As she sipped her coffee, Angie walked in. "I hear you and Gabe are spending time together."

"Who'd you hear that from? He's just worried because I jog in the dark. Since he jogs the same route at the same time, we do it together. That's hardly spending time together."

"My husband, Bill. He's friends with Gabe. I guess Gabe mentioned it."

"I hope it doesn't get around. I'd hate to give Mr. Frost's allegations credibility. It's really nothing."

"Gabe's one of the good guys. He wouldn't let anything happen to damage your reputation." Angie scanned the room. "Is there anything I can help with?"

Katherine took a long drink of coffee. "Did Gabriel send you to help?"

"Huh? Why'd you ask?"

"Yesterday he asked about how I was coming and asked if I needed help."

"Gabriel didn't say anything, but Mr. Edwards dropped by and asked."

"And they're close friends. Hmm. Sounds fishy." Katherine paused. "I've mentioned to Gabriel that he has a bad habit of pushing his way into my business. So I guess he's decided not to make it obvious. Grrr." She laughed and turned a circle with her arms out. "How does it look? What do I need to work on?"

"I think you're close. You have posters, desks arranged." She glanced around the room. "Your targets? Where do you plan to put your targets?"

"Targets?"

"Basically objectives for each subject you teach. They need to be posted."

Katherine studied each wall and then pointed. "I guess I could write them on the white board. They'll change almost daily, right?"

"Yes, you're teaching, what four different math classes?"

"Yes, AP Calculus, Calculus, AP Pre-calculus, Pre-calculus, and Geometry." Katherine's eyes widened. "That's five." She took a deep breath. "That's too many." She plopped in a chair. "I don't think I can do it. How many are you teaching?"

Gabriel walked in. "You're stressing. What's wrong?"

Angie shook her head. "She just realized she's teaching five different subjects. She thought it was four."

"Mr. Edwards is finalizing our schedule. We'll get them at the meeting." Gabriel glanced at his watch. "That starts in fifteen minutes. I came by to thank you for the coffee and breakfast." He glanced around the classroom. "Your room's looking good." He gestured toward the door. "Ladies, after you. I'll escort you two beautiful ladies to the cafeteria." He followed them out the door.

After everybody was seated and Mr. Edwards stood at the podium, a man from the back of the room called out. "We hear you have our final schedules. We heard our classes are growing. How many students? I might need more desks."

Paul grinned and shook his head. "I see you're ready to get right to business." After a short pause, he continued, "Texas Department of Education has increased the class size to twenty-six students from fifth grade to twelfth. The only department that this impacts is the math department. We're down one teacher. So we may not be allocated another math teacher. I'm working on that."

He rubbed his chin. "The Social Studies department has a lot of students signed up this year. I'm not sure why the increase, but we have a staff member, who can cover that. Coach Hudson, would you prefer to teach US History, or Government?"

Gabriel called out. "How long do I have to think about it?"

Mr. Edwards glanced at his watch. "Times up."

"Figured." He took a deep breath. "If it'll help, I'll do both, but I have one stipulation. Instead of taking one of the classrooms in the social studies hall, can I have that empty room close to the office? I think its room 101. Less travel time will be a huge help."

Paul glanced toward the Assistant Principals. After they nodded, he continued, "I don't see any reason why not. But remain flexible for a while. It could change. Thank you for agreeing to take both."

"Just helping."

Paul held up a stack of papers. "Here's your new schedules. Please understand they can change," he laughed, "up until the end of the first nine weeks. We normally don't make changes after mid-quarter progress reports go home. Department leads please come and get them."

Nobody from the math department got up.

Mr. Edwards stared at the papers for a few moments. "I guess I never assigned a new math department chair. Mr. Collins, would you do it?"

Frank stood. "Sure." He got the papers and passed them out.

The teachers studied their schedule.

Katherine released a breath. "Good, my AP Pre-calculus became a regular Pre-calculus class. So I only have four subjects. I can handle that."

Angie smiled. "I knew it'd work out."

After the staff meeting, Katherine went to her room and searched the planning documents and wrote the first week's objectives for each subject on the white board and divided them with colored magnetic strips. I think I'm almost ready. I have Monday to finish anything I've forgotten. I'm in good shape.

She turned her head when she heard, 'Knock, knock' at the door.

Katherine glanced up and smiled. "When did you learn to knock? I'm used to you just walking in."

Gabriel set down a large bag. "It's the new me. I told you that I'd work on a few things." He studied the bag. "I figured you wouldn't think about lunch with furniture being delivered. Mom and I decided to help. There should be enough for all the boys and Ms. Sarah."

Grinning, Katherine teased, "But not me."

Chuckling he realized his error. "Of course you. I'd never forget you." He avoided eye contact. "Hmm, I guess I'd better go."

She touched his arm. "Gabriel, thank you. It's very thoughtful."

"If you need any help, you have my number. It's on the school phone tree." He left.


CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Frank Collins math teacher

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Sandy Frost Rodney Frost's wife

Sam Auto repair shop owner

Bill Brooks Assistant football coach and Gabriel's friend.



Author Notes Thank you google images for a photo of a math problem. I also want to thank everybody for the wonderful reviews. This novel is not actually about football, but is part of the background. High School football is a national past-time in Texas. This post is a little over 1300 words and is an information post. It gives the story background knowledge that will help understand future events. I'm sorry about the length.


Chapter 16
Football Chapter 9 part 1

By barbara.wilkey

ENDING OF PREVIOUS POST:

After the staff meeting, Katherine went to her room and searched the planning documents and wrote the first week's objectives for each subject on the white board and divided them with colored magnetic strips. I think I'm almost ready. I have Monday to finish anything I've forgotten. I'm in good shape.

She turned her head when she heard, 'Knock, knock' at the door.

Katherine glanced up and smiled. "When did you learn to knock? I'm used to you just walking in."

Gabriel set down a large bag. "It's the new me. I told you that I'd work on a few things." He studied the bag. "I figured you wouldn't think about lunch with furniture being delivered. Mom and I decided to help. There should be enough for all the boys and Ms. Sarah."

Grinning, Katherine teased, "But not me."

Chuckling he realized his error. "Of course you. I'd never forget you." He avoided eye contact. "Hmm, I guess I'd better go."

She touched his arm. "Gabriel, thank you. It's very thoughtful."

"If you need any help, you have my number. It's on the school phone tree." He left.



TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 9 part 1

Katherine barely arrived home and changed her clothes before the movers arrived. The boys and her mom had just finished eating.

Sarah handed her daughter a sandwich. "Eat. I got this."

"But, Mom." As Katherine watched Sarah walk away, she took a bite. "This is really good. Mrs. Hudson's a good cook." She exhaled a deep breath and took another bite.

Mid-afternoon, Katherine noticed her mom slowing down. She slipped her arm around her. "Mom, go home. I'll be all right."

"Honey, are you sure. There's still a lot to be unloaded."

"You need to go home and rest. I might need your help tomorrow. If I do, I promise I'll call."

Finally, Sarah agreed to leave.

The movers carried large boxes and more furniture, but left them in the entry way and the living room.

Katherine, with Daisy by her side, approached a mover. "Excuse me. Who's in charge?"

The large man pointed to a taller man. "He is."

Walking up to him, Katherine said, "Sir, I don't understand why these men aren't placing the boxes in the appropriate rooms."

"We were told to deliver furniture. That's what we're doing."

"The contract says you're to put the boxes and furniture in the assigned room, put together any furniture taken apart, and then take the boxes with you."

"Ma'am, that's not how it's done." He walked away. "I have work to do."

Katherine hurried to the kitchen with Daisy following. I need to find the contract. She opened a drawer, then another, and shouted, "Found it!"

*****
A few minutes before four o'clock Jordan opened the locker room door. Coach Hudson walked up to him. "Didn't your mom bring you?"

"No. I didn't want to bother her. I told Joel to let her know I left."

"What's going on?"

"She's arguing with the movers. The contract said one thing, and they're doing something else. It's a mess." He continued to the locker room.

Gabriel hesitated. "After practice come to my office, I'll give you a ride home."

Jordan nodded.

Gabriel walked up to Bill. "When we're done have as many available coaches and players come to Katherine Riley's house. I think the movers are taking advantage." He paused. "You'd better wait for my phone call."

Bill grinned. "You'll get accused of pushing your way in again."

"Probably, but she needs help."

"How about waiting until she asks?"

"She'd never ask. I'll risk the anger." Gabriel walked away. "Let's get some conditioning started."

*****
After practice, Jordan stood outside Coach's office. Gabriel motioned him in. "You were a little off during practice. You worried about your mom?"

"Sorry Coach. I'm needed at home. Not here."

Gabriel shoved his paperwork aside. "I'll do this later. Let's go." He motioned for Reggie to follow.

*****
As Gabriel parked the pick-up at the curb, Jordan sighed. "I knew it wouldn't be good but I never imagined this." He glanced at Gabriel. "There's boxes stacked all the way to the curb and even a cop. Sorry Coach, but I should've skipped practice."

"Understood."

When they got to the door, they saw Joshua talking to the officer and another man, "Sir, I'm sure our dog didn't kill his or any cat. She's been inside with Mom."

Gabriel nodded. "Hello, Eugene." He glanced at the officer and offered his hand. "I don't think we've met. I'm Gabriel Hudson. You must be new in town. What's going on?"

The officer accepted his hand but eyed Reggie. "I'm Don Rolland. This is my first week on the job. Mr. Holland says their dog killed his cat."

Gabriel addressed the wide-eyed officer, "Reggie may be big, but he's a marshmallow." He faced Eugene. "I thought Maggie was allergic to cats."

Eugene bit his lower lip. "Coach, you know how fickle women are. She is to most cats but not this one."

Gabriel nodded. "Did you get a look at the dog? Can you describe it?"

"I got a good look at him." Eugene used his hand to measure about thigh high. "He was big and brown. He ran up, grabbed the cat round the stomach, and shook him 'til it died."

The officer asked, "Did he take the cat with him? Where did he go?"

"The cat's on the lawn. I saw the dog run up to this door." He pointed at Joshua. "And this boy let him in."

Joshua raised his hands chest level. "I did not."

A loud crash, a scream, and a "Help!" rang out. All heads turned toward the stairs.

Gabriel took two stairs at a time and was the first on the scene. He lifted the bed frame and examined Katherine's hand. "Jordan, get your mom two bags of ice."

Katherine alternated her free hand rubbing her hand and then her cheek. "Thank you." She wiped the tears attempting to escape. "What are these men doing here?"

The officer introduced himself and Eugene. "He says your dog killed his cat."

Looking at Daisy, who had since laid her head in Katherine's lap, she said, "That's impossible. Daisy's been by my side all afternoon."

Eugene pointed. "It wasn't that dog. It was your black dog."

"She's the only dog I have."

Jordan returned with bagged ice.

Gabriel examined her hand. "I don't think you broke any bones." He took the ice and placed one on her hand. "Put this on your cheek. It'll help keep down the swelling and bruising." He motioned to Jeremy. "Hold it on your mom's cheek."

Jeremy grinned. "I get to help."

Officer Rolland looked behind him. "Mr. Holland, why don't you show me the dead cat?"

After they left, Gabriel said, "Joshua, watch from the window. I bet there's no cat."

Katherine attempted to stand. "Thank you, your pushiness was needed this time."

Offering his hand, he asked, "What happened?"

"The movers refused to honor their contract. They said they didn't have any tools, never put anything in the rooms, and it's my job to dispose of the boxes." Katherine set her jaw. "I have it in writing. I even called their front office, but got nowhere."

Taking out his phone, Gabriel said, "I got this." After he put the phone away, he continued, "A few friends and some players are on their way. Jordan and I'll set up the beds. You direct traffic. I mean let them know where to put things."

He glanced out the window. "I guess we have an hour and half, maybe two before it rains. Until they get here, take a break and keep the ice in place. Jeremy, keep it on your mom's pretty face. We wouldn't want it to bruise."

"You're incorrigible." Katherine turned and left.

Gabriel chuckled. "At least she didn't say I butted in."

"I heard that, and you did."



CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Frank Collins math teacher

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Sandy Frost Rodney Frost's wife

Sam Auto repair shop owner

Bill Brooks Assistant football coach and Gabriel's friend.




Author Notes Thank you google images for a photo of a moving. I also want to thank everybody for the wonderful reviews. This novel is not actually about football, but is part of the background. High School football is a national past-time in Texas. This post is a little over 1100 words and is an information post. I'm sorry about the length. Again, I made changes as I posted. I hope it works.


Chapter 17
Football Chapter 9 part 2

By barbara.wilkey

ENDING OF PREVIOUS POST:


Gabriel examined her hand. "I don't think you broke any bones." He took the ice and placed one on her hand. "Put this on your cheek. It'll help keep down the swelling and bruising." He motioned to Jeremy. "Hold it on your mom's cheek."

Jeremy grinned. "I get to help."

Officer Rolland looked behind him. "Mr. Holland, why don't you show me the dead cat?"

After they left, Gabriel said, "Joshua, watch from the window. I bet there's no cat."

Katherine attempted to stand. "Thank you, your pushiness was needed this time."

Offering his hand, he asked, "What happened?"

"The movers refused to honor their contract. They said they didn't have any tools, never put anything in the rooms, and it's my job to dispose of the boxes." Katherine set her jaw. "I have it in writing. I even called their front office, but got nowhere."

Taking out his phone, Gabriel said, "I got this." After he put the phone away, he continued, "A few friends and some players are on their way. Jordan and I'll set up the beds. You direct traffic. I mean let them know where to put things."

He glanced out the window. "I guess we have an hour and half, maybe two before it rains. Until they get here, take a break and keep the ice in place. Jeremy, keep it on your mom's pretty face. We wouldn't want it to bruise."

"You're incorrigible." Katherine turned and left.

Gabriel chuckled. "At least she didn't say I butted in."

"I heard that, and you did."


TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 9 part 2

It wasn't long before Coach Brooks knocked on the door. Katherine answered, "Hello, you're Angie's husband, right?"

"I am. A few more coaches and players are on their way. I see they left you in a mess, and there's rain headed this way." He scanned the area. "I suggest we clear the living room." He motioned to two players. "Mrs. Riley, tell these gentlemen where you want the boxes and they'll take them."

Katherine looked at a box. "That goes to Jeremy's room." She paused, "Joshua, was there a cat?" After he shook his head, she continued, "You stay in the upstairs hallway and direct traffic." She pointed to the side of the box. "On the boxes, it should say where it goes." She looked back at the boys. "Stack them against a wall. We can unpack later."

Bill grinned. "May I suggest they unpack as much as they can, break the boxes down, and stack them in the garage?" He eyed the boys. "I mean neatly stacked, not just thrown in there."

"Yes Coach," they said in unison.

Katherine petted Daisy's head. "That's a good idea. I hadn't thought of it."
Joel answered the door. "Mom, more help."

"Thank you. I don't know what I'd do without you.

Bill motioned to the other coaches. "I think we need to put together as much furniture as we can. The players can carry boxes."

They all agreed it would be the best use of resources.

About nine o'clock, Gabriel came downstairs, with Reggie by his side, and rubbed his stomach. "Anybody else hungry?"

The boys shouted, "Yes Coach!"

Katherine chewed her lower lip.

Gabriel grinned. "I'm butting in again, but I got this. Bill, how many players and coaches do we have?"

"Total of five coaches and six boys, ten counting Mrs. Riley's boys." He nodded at her. "Of course, Mrs. Riley."

Quickly, Gabriel did the math in his head. "That's seventeen total counting me." He removed his phone and ordered nine large pizzas, four with pepperoni and five with extra cheese and drinks. His eyes met hers. "Yes, I just did it again, and it's already paid for."

"But?"

He headed upstairs. "But nothing. I have two more beds to finish and then yours." From the top of the stairs, he said, "Yes, I'm incorrigible. Mom's mentioned it numerous times while I grew up." He chuckled.

Katherine put her hands on her hips and glared at the stairs.

Bill came up behind her. "I know he's frustrating. Just so you know; he's like this all the time. Not just around you."

"But he just came in and took over."

"It means he cares."

"What?"

"I need to get back to work." Bill left.

After the pizza delivery, work stopped and everybody grabbed a slice, ate it, carried in another box, grabbed another slice, and ate it. This was repeated until the pizza was gone.

The wind picked up and it started to drizzle. As the last three boxes were lifted, it poured.

Katherine went to the door and held it open for the boys. "Thank you. We made it. I couldn't have done it without you."

The teenagers grinned as they acknowledged a job well done. The one who'd entered first, asked, "Is there anything else we can help with?"

Glancing at her watch, Katherine said, "It's getting late. Take these boxes to their rooms and then you'd better get home. How'd you get here? I don't want you walking in the rain."

One of the boys said, "I drove. I can take them."

Bill joined the discussion, "I want you guys going straight home. Understood?"

In unison, they answered, "Yes Coach."

As they walked away, Katherine faced Bill. "You guys are strict."

Grinning, Bill said, "What makes a good football player doesn't necessarily make a good citizen. They're good boys, but tend to find mischief or at least it finds them."

"I get it." Katherine's head turned as Gabriel joined them. "We just sent the boys home."

Reggie nuzzled Daisy.

"I think they like each other." He checked his watch. "Good. I didn't realize it was this late."

His eyes met Bill's, and Bill answered, "I warned them to go straight home."

"Good. Jordan, let's get your mom's bed put together." Gabriel glanced at Bill. "I'm almost finished. You and the others might as well leave." He and Jordan went to Katherine's room.

Katherine thanked and said good-bye to the coaches. They offered to help tomorrow. She assured them she and her boys could finish.

Just as she finished putting the younger boys to bed, Jordan came to her. "Coach wants to know if you want that ruffle thing on the bed before we put the mattress on."

"What ruffle thing? I'll be down in a minute."

Within minutes, Katherine walked into her bedroom. Gabriel held up a ruffled ivory bed-skirt. "Do you want this on before we put on the mattress?"
Her eyes widened. "I do. I'm surprised you know what it is."

"Not sure its official name, but I do have a Mom who likes rufflely things. I do come out of my cave once in a while."

"Sorry, I didn't mean."

He chuckled. "Yes, you did." He tossed a corner to her. "Help me adjust it on that side." After it was on, he motioned to Jordan. "Let's get this mattress on and then we're finished."

After the mattress was adjusted, Jordan sighed. "Mom, am I done for tonight?"

She gave her eldest son a big hug. "Yes, you were a huge help. Thank you." She reached over and picked-up a fitted sheet.

Gabriel held out his hand. "I'll help. You have to be tired."

"I'm doing all right. I'll admit it will be great sleeping in my own bed tonight."

"I can't even begin to imagine."

After the bed was made, Gabriel walked around the living room. "It looks a lot better than it did when I arrived. It's almost manageable."

Katherine touched his lower arm. "Thank you. I really mean it. I couldn't have gotten everything inside before it rained. There's no way I would've gotten the bed frames made."

He touched her cheek. "It's only slightly bruised. I'm sure you can cover it with make-up." He held her badly bruised hand and shook his head. "There's no hope for your hand. It may be really sore in the morning."

"Along with my entire body. Tomorrow will be another hard day."

Gabriel motioned to Reggie as he walked to the door. "I need to get home. If you need any help tomorrow, you have my number." He held out his hand. "Give me your phone."

"Why?"

"You have my number on the staff roster, but I'm putting it in here so you have it readily available." He added it. "How do you want me to identify myself?"

"What?"

"I'm pretty sure you have a few choice names for me."

"Why don't you just put it under Gabriel Hudson? I think I can find it."

He handed her phone back and grinned. "You sure?"

"Yes." She hesitated. "Really, I'm indebted to you. I hate to admit it, but this is one time your pushiness was needed. Thank you."

He cupped her hand in his. "You're welcome and thank you for saying it."
"You're still incorrigible," she teased.

"Like I said, Mom would agree." He opened the door. "Good night."

"Good night."


CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Frank Collins math teacher

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Sandy Frost Rodney Frost's wife

Sam Auto repair shop owner

Bill Brooks Assistant football coach and Gabriel's friend.




Author Notes HEY!!!! It's snowing in Texas. WOW!!! Thank you google images for a photo of pizza. I also want to thank everybody for the wonderful reviews. This novel is not actually about football, but is part of the background. High School football is a national past-time in Texas. This post is a little over 1200 words and is an information post. I'm sorry about the length. Again, I made changes as I posted. I hope it works.


Chapter 18
Football Chapter 10 part 1

By barbara.wilkey

ENDING OF PREVIOUS POST:

Gabriel motioned to Reggie as he walked to the door. "I need to get home. If you need any help tomorrow, you have my number." He held out his hand. "Give me your phone."

"Why?"

"You have my number on the staff roster, but I'm putting it in here so you have it readily available." He added it. "How do you want me to identify myself?"

"What?"

"I'm pretty sure you have a few choice names for me."

"Why don't you just put it under Gabriel Hudson? I think I can find it."

He handed her phone back and grinned. "You sure?"

"Yes." She hesitated. "Really, I'm indebted to you. I hate to admit it, but this is one time your pushiness was needed. Thank you."

He cupped her hand in his. "You're welcome and thank you for saying it."

"You're still incorrigible," she teased.

"Like I said, Mom would agree." He opened the door. "Good night."

"Good night."


TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 10 part 1

As Gabriel drank his first cup and read the front page of the newspaper, he set it on the table. "Reggie, what are we doing here? Are you worrying about Kate and the boys as much as I am?"

Reggie made a grunting sound.

"I thought so. We're both concerned." He downed another cup. "Let's go and push our way into her life, again." He petted the dog and grinned. "It's part of our charm."

*****
Once parked at Katherine's house, he walked to the door. "You know we're going to hear about it, don't you?"

Reggie lay down.

"What are you worried about? She's never lectured you." Gabriel knocked. No answer. He knocked again and then listened. He heard boys arguing. I have a feeling things aren't going well. He bent over and rubbed Reggie's ears. "Should I just walk in?"

Reggie stood.

"I take that as a yes." He opened the door and saw Joel standing on the couch holding an action figure out of Jeremy's reach. "What's going on?"

With tears streaming down his cheeks, Jeremy said, "He took my Hulk and won't give him back."

Gabriel took it from Joel. "Did you take his toy?"

"Yes, because..."

Holding up his hand, Gabriel continued, "Is there ever a reason to take somebody else's belongings, especially a brother?"

Joel hung his head. "No, but..."

"Okay, Jeremy, before I give this to you, what did you do?"

Joel crossed his arms and grinned. "Coach just ditched you out. Tell him."

Gabriel gave Joel a warning look. "Jeremy, do you have something to tell me?"

"It wasn't me. The Hulk was saving the world, and the bad guys hid in the Lego fort Joel built, and he destroyed it. I didn't do it, The Hulk did."

Gabriel held out the action figure. "So you're telling me this piece of plastic on its own power smashed a Lego fort. Do I understand correctly?" When Jeremy nodded, he continued, "Show me how he did it." He set the figure on the floor. "Don't touch it. I want it to move on its own."

Jeremy sighed. "It had a little help."

"Thought so. Maybe you owe Joel an apology."

"Okay." With tears running down his cheeks, Jeremy walked up to his brother and gave him a hug. "I'm sorry and so is The Hulk."

Gabriel asked, "Joel, how about you?"

"I accept your apology." Joel sighed. "And The Hulk's too."

Petting Reggie's head, Gabriel muttered, "One emergency solved, but you'd better remain with these two." He scanned the room. "Jeremy, where's everybody?"

"Jordan and Joshua are supposed to put our rooms together, and Mom's yelling at the washing machine."

Gabriel pointed toward the kitchen. "The laundry room's this way, right?"

He nodded. "I think so."

As Gabriel headed that direction, he heard water splashing and a loud, "No!"

Gabriel rushed to the washer and turned off the water source. He turned around, attempting to hide his grin. "Joel, bring your mom a towel." He scanned the large sorted piles of clothes. "Before I left yesterday, why didn't you tell me that you needed the washer and dryer hooked up? I would've done it. You could've gotten an early start."

"It was late, and you'd already done so much." Katherine paused, studied the floor, and the drenched dog. "I couldn't ask one more thing."

He used his finger to raise her chin so their eyes met. "I would've preferred you asked." He used a finger to move a stray strand of hair. "You're pretty cute soaking wet and hair falling out of your pony tail. The look suits you."

Joel handed her the towel. "Mom, what happened?"

"She fought the washer and the washer won."

Huffing, she turned. "I'm going to change."

He called after her. "I already know I pushed my way in and am incorrigible."

*****
When she returned, she noticed he had put the first pile in the washer. "Thank you, but you didn't need to do that."

"Just helping."

"Since you helped me again, I hate to say this, but you can't just walk in my house. I thought the new you knocked." She shook her head. "You need to knock and..."

"Stop right there," interrupted Gabriel. "I did knock, but nobody heard me. You were back here, and the two older boys were upstairs, and the two younger ones were fighting. Before I came back here, I solved their fight. I left Reggie with them and gave him instructions to referee." He took her bruised hand and checked it, but didn't comment.

"It's fine." She moved her hand out of his. "I want to thank you, again for everything." With her back against the wall she slid down to the floor. Her knees were chest high and her head in her hands. "I don't know what I was thinking when I thought I could make this move by myself."

Daisy nuzzled in and licked her cheek.

Gabriel knelt to her level. "You're doing fine. Everybody needs a little help once in a while."

"I bet you don't. You're always in control."

"Even me. Why do you think I have a large coaching staff supporting me? They have my back." He offered his hand, helped her up, and scanned the area. "I won't be much help putting all this where it goes. While you were changing, I took the liberty to get help. If it's all right, I'll take the boys fishing on my parents' farm. Bill will come with me. Angie will help you. Ms. Sarah and Mom will be here shortly. I haven't mentioned a word about this to the boys, in case you disapprove."

As she set her jaw, he added, "I know I over stepped, again, but you need help. Accept it, please?" He grinned. "There's a benefit. I'll be out of your hair all day."

She shook her head and laughed. "Okay, that's something positive." She scanned the boxes. "And you're taking the boys with you?"

He nodded. "I told Bill to bring some lunch. After they eat, we'll be out of the way."

"You know I can feed my own kids."

"I know. Matter-of-fact, I happen to know from experience that you're a good cook. Dinner Wednesday evening was very good." Gabriel turned his head as he heard a knock on the door. "It's probably Bill and Angie." He started toward the door. "I'll get it."

Katherine exhaled. "It's my house, but I'll let you answer it." She headed for the door with Daisy by her side. "Is it okay if I follow?"

He paused. "No, it's not." Placing his hand on the small of her back, he added, "It is okay if you walk beside me." He stopped and his eyes met hers. "I never want to give you the impression I think you're less important than me. If I ever give you that impression, please tell me."

After swallowing, she said, "I will."

"I'd never degrade you."

After Katherine nodded, they continued to the door. Gabriel waited until she opened it, and they both greeted Bill and Angie.

Bill shook Gabriel's hand. "I began to think nobody was going to let us in."

Gabriel glanced at Katherine. "I acted like me again and gave an impression I had no intention of giving and had to quickly correct it." He hesitated. "We good?"

Katherine touched his arm. "We're good."

Angie held up a large bag. "I have sub sandwiches and chips for everybody. Anybody hungry?"





CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Frank Collins math teacher

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Sandy Frost Rodney Frost's wife

Sam Auto repair shop owner

Bill Brooks Assistant football coach, Gabriel's friend, and Angie's husband.





Author Notes Thank you google images for the photo of The Hulk. I also want to thank everybody for the wonderful reviews. This novel is not actually about football, but is part of the background. High School football is a national past-time in Texas. This post is a little under 1300 words. I'm sorry about the length. Again, I made changes as I posted. I hope it works.


Chapter 19
Football Chapter 10 part 2

By barbara.wilkey

ENDING OF PREVIOUS POST:

As she set her jaw, he added, "I know I over stepped, again, but you need help. Accept it, please?" He grinned. "There's a benefit. I'll be out of your hair all day."

She shook her head and laughed. "Okay, that's something positive." She scanned the boxes. "And you're taking the boys with you?"

He nodded. "I told Bill to bring some lunch. After they eat, we'll be out of the way."

"You know I can feed my own kids."

"I know. Matter-of-fact, I happen to know from experience that you're a good cook. Dinner Wednesday evening was very good." Gabriel turned his head as he heard a knock on the door. "It's probably Bill and Angie." He started toward the door. "I'll get it."

Katherine exhaled. "It's my house, but I'll let you answer it." She headed for the door with Daisy by her side. "Is it okay if I follow?"

He paused. "No, it's not." Placing his hand on the small of her back, he added, "It is okay if you walk beside me." He stopped and his eyes met hers. "I never want to give you the impression I think you're less important than me. If I ever give you that impression, please tell me."

After swallowing, she said, "I will."

"I'd never degrade you."

After Katherine nodded, they continued to the door. Gabriel waited until she opened it, and they both greeted Bill and Angie.

Bill shook Gabriel's hand. "I began to think nobody was going to let us in."

Gabriel glanced at Katherine. "I acted like me again and gave an impression I had no intention of giving and had to quickly correct it." He hesitated. "We good?"

Katherine touched his arm. "We're good."

Angie held up a large bag. "I have sub sandwiches and chips for everybody. Anybody hungry?"

TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 10 part 2

Once the men left, it was agreed that Sarah and Rebecca would unpack the kitchen and set it up. Katherine would work on her bedroom and the den. Angie would put the living room together. Each area was close enough they could visit as they worked.

Katherine walked into the living room but avoided eye contact with Angie. "I shouldn't ask, but I have to. How well do you know Gabriel?"

"I wondered when you'd get around to asking."

She turned and went into the bedroom. "Never mind. I shouldn't have. Besides you're Bill's wife."

Angie followed and sat on the edge of the bed. "I'd never share our conversations with Bill. That being said, I've known Gabe for three years. He has faults, he's a man, but he's a good guy."

Katherine refolded a sweater, twice. "I guess I'm wondering about his life when he was a pro player. He says he's changed, but I'm not sure." She set it in a drawer.

"I didn't know him back then. All I know is the stories I've heard. He supposedly fell into the rich, playboy trap. He went to and hosted wild parties and had numerous women. Many of his escapades were mentioned in tabloids." Angie took a few pairs of shoes out of a box. "Where do you want these?"

After Katherine pointed to a place in the closet, Angie petted Daisy and continued, "Now, he's a homebody; just him and Reggie. I've only known of him dating three women and none of them went past a second, maybe a third, date. I've known women who made ridiculous plays for him, but he wasn't interested. It seems he's honestly turned his life around and content with it."

Katherine took a stack of books from a box. "These belong in the den." She went to the den and then returned. "I've made a few comments about his pushiness and arrogance. Those comments seemed to bother him. Earlier today he just walked into my house without knocking. He said he knocked; he came on in when he heard Joel and Jeremy fighting. Later on, when everyone arrived, he headed to the door first, giving the impression I might just follow him to my own door. I made some little comment and he seemed truly upset."

"I wondered what was going on." Angie paused. "I don't know where it comes from but he's a huge advocate for women. He wants to make sure women are treated equally and they should come to expect it."

Angie picked up some books. "You want these in the den too?" Katherine nodded, and Angie continued, "He's not really pushy, well...yes he is, but he sees something that needs to be done and does it. He doesn't think about the consequences until it's too late. That's a problem but also part of his charm. He's always willing to help. Just so you know he does it to everybody, not just you. Does this help?"

After Katherine nodded, Angie added, "I better get back to the living room." Over her shoulder she said, "Please ask me anything. I think you two would make a great couple."

Katherine replied, "I have no desire to be in a relationship with anybody. I've only been widowed six months. I have children who need me." Under her breath she added, "Especially a relationship with a self-centered jock."

*****
When they arrived at Gabriel's parent's farm the boys and Bill readied the fishing poles, while Gabriel and Reggie went inside. He noticed his mom and dad cooking. "What's going on? This looks like you're cooking for an army."

Harold grinned. "We are."

Rebecca kissed her son's cheek. "When you're finished fishing, you're going to bring this for dinner."

"Mom, I didn't ask you to do this. Kate will think I've pushed my way into her life again. She doesn't like it when I do."

"I know you didn't ask and I'll tell her that. Moving is hectic and I wanted to do it for her. I like her, a lot. But more importantly, I like her for you. I think you two are good together."

"Mom, we barely know each other, and most of the time she's upset with me."

"You'll work everything out and realize how right I am. Now get, and take those boys fishing."

When Gabriel walked outside, Bill asked, "We ready?" He studied his buddy. "What's wrong?"

"Mom's matchmaking." He grabbed his pole. "Let's do this."

They walked to the pond.

As Jordan showed Jeremy how to put a worm on the hook, his youngest brother asked, "When you were my age, did Dad teach you to do this?"

"Nope, Dad never had time. He was always gone."

"Who taught you?"

"Mom sent us to camp for two weeks every summer. You're getting old enough to go. Maybe she'll send you next year."

Both Bill and Gabriel looked at each other as they listened to the boys.

Bill leaned over and whispered, "These boys never really had a dad."

Gabriel grabbed a bobber and fingered it. "Paul alluded to it, but I didn't realize the depth of his comment." He took the bobber to Jeremy and added it to his line. "I think this'll help. If it goes under water, you've caught a fish. Why don't we go over here?" They walked down the bank a little farther. "I think there's more fish."

"I can't wait to catch a huge one. Think Mom will cook it?"

"If we help her, I'm sure she will."

After about an hour of fishing, Gabriel went to the truck to get snacks and drinks. As he carried them, Bill met him partway. "I'll give you a hand." He took an ice chest. "Hey, is your mom trying to match you and Katherine?"

Gabriel nodded. "Ever heard of anything so ridiculous?"

Bill chuckled. "I think she's right. Katherine's a good match for you."

As his eyebrows rose, Gabriel said, "Are you forgetting how often she's angry with me? Most of the time we're barely speaking."

Setting down the ice chest, Bill said, "That's a mark of a good relationship." He grinned. "Guys, want drinks and a snack?"

Gabriel put down the second ice chest. "Chips and cookies over here." He held up an apple. "And if you want to make your mom happy fresh fruit."

Jeremy walked to him. "Coach, you're funny. Why'd I eat an apple when there's cookies?"

Grinning, Gabriel answered, "Good point. Just trying to stay on your mom's good side."


CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Frank Collins math teacher

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Sandy Frost Rodney Frost's wife

Sam Auto repair shop owner

Bill Brooks Assistant football coach, Gabriel's friend, and Angie's husband.

Author Notes Thank you google images for the photo of fishing. I also want to thank everybody for the wonderful reviews. This novel is not actually about football, but is part of the background. High School football is a national past-time in Texas. This post is a little over 1000 words. I'm sorry about the length. Again, I made changes as I posted. I hope it works.


Chapter 20
Football Chapter 10 part 3

By barbara.wilkey

ENDING OF PREVIOUS POST:

After about an hour of fishing, Gabriel went to the truck to get snacks and drinks. As he carried them, Bill met him partway. "I'll give you a hand." He took an ice chest. "Hey, is your mom trying to match you and Katherine?"

Gabriel nodded. "Ever heard of anything so ridiculous?"

Bill chuckled. "I think she's right. Katherine's a good match for you."

As his eyebrows rose, Gabriel said, "Are you forgetting how often she's angry with me? Most of the time we're barely speaking."

Setting down the ice chest, Bill said, "That's a mark of a good relationship." He grinned. "Guys, want drinks and a snack?"

Gabriel put down the second ice chest. "Chips and cookies over here." He held up an apple. "And if you want to make your mom happy fresh fruit."

Jeremy walked to him. "Coach, you're funny. Why'd I eat an apple when there's cookies?"

Grinning, Gabriel answered, "Good point. Just trying to stay on your mom's good side."

TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 10 part 3 day 8 Saturday evening (post 20)

Around five o'clock the ladies gathered in the living room. Katherine smiled. "It looks great. The majority of the boxes are emptied. Thank you so much. I doubt I could've gotten it done by myself."

Rebecca pointed at the kitchen. "You need to check the kitchen. We put things where we thought they should go. You may have different ideas."

"I doubt it. I think most kitchens are set up for user convenience. I can't imagine things would be that far off. Thank you." Katherine entered the dining room and slid her hand along the antique walnut wood cabinet. "My china looks great in this. It came with the house." She turned her head at a commotion outside. "It must be the boys. Peace and quiet just ended."

Moments later in rushed the boys with Reggie running behind. Jeremy led the pack, stopped, and held his arms wide. "Mom, I caught a huge fish. This big. Can you cook it?"

Gabriel followed behind. "On the front porch is a bucket of enough bluegill for a fish fry." His eyes met Katherine's. "What do you want me to do with them?"

"Hmmm." Katherine closed her eyes and then opened them. She witnessed the anticipation on her youngest son's face. "We cook them."

Harold walked in carrying two large containers. "Tonight's dinner."

Bill followed with more containers. "Here's more." He glanced behind him. "Jordan and Joshua have the rest."

Katherine glared at Gabriel.

He held up his hands. "I'm innocent. It was all Mom's doing."

Rebecca came up and held both Katherine's hands. "Gabe's right. I did this on my own. He knew nothing about it. I know how stressful moving is and wanted to help."

"Thank you but setting up the kitchen and dining room was more help than you'll ever know. You didn't need to do this."

Embracing Katherine, Rebecca said, "I did."

When the hug ended, Rebecca glanced at Sarah. "Let's get this dinner started." She pointed to the couch. "Katherine, sit and take a break. We got this."

Katherine walked up to Gabriel. "I have a problem. What do I do with the fish?" She paused. "I know how to cook fish, but are they cleaned?"

Gabriel grinned. "Are you saying you don't clean fish?" He paused. "So you're admitting you need help?"

Katherine sighed, "You're incorrigible."

Rebecca called from the dining room. "I've known that for years. You should've seen him at Jeremy's age. I think he can identify with that child."

Opening the front door, Gabriel paused and adjusted Reggie's bib. "Come on boys, let's clean fish."

"Dinner will be ready in ten minutes," said Sarah.

"Okay boys, we'll do it after dinner. Go wash up."

Angie hugged Katherine. "I can't wait to start our family."

Katherine's eyes widened. "Are you sure?" She paused and then teased, "Maybe daughters, I wouldn't suggest four sons. To be honest, I wouldn't change a thing."

Katherine eyed the brisket, potato salad, baked beans, coleslaw, and banana pudding. "This is too much. You really didn't need to do this."

Rebecca took her hand. "I've already told you, I did. Now sit and enjoy."

*****
After dinner, Gabriel, Bill, and the boys went outside and cleaned fish. After the dishes were done, Harold and Rebecca went home and soon Sarah followed. Once the fish were cleaned, Bill and Angie left.

Katherine glanced at Jeremy, who said, "I know Mom, time for a bath." He stomped up the stairs.

Joel glanced up the stairs. "I already know, I'm next."

Gabriel grinned. "They have their routine down."

Folding a dish towel, Katherine said, "They do. That's a good thing."

Gabriel scanned the room. "Before I leave is there anything that needs to be done. I don't want something like the washing machine incident to happen again."

Hesitating Katherine said, "I was wondering..." She exhaled. "I was wondering if you'd..."

"Just spit it out."

"Would you like to come tomorrow night for fish dinner?"

His eyes twinkled. "I'd love to. Anything I should bring?"

"Reggie."

"Of course, I don't go anywhere without my trusty companion." He petted Daisy's head. "She'd miss him."

"Then it's a date." Her cheeks tinged pink. "I didn't mean a date. I meant friends..." She inhaled. "I don't know what I meant." She turned and walked away.

Gabriel reached out and touched her hand. "I know what you meant. It's definitely not a date."


CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Frank Collins math teacher

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Sandy Frost Rodney Frost's wife

Sam Auto repair shop owner

Bill Brooks Assistant football coach, Gabriel's friend, and Angie's husband.

Author Notes Thank you google images for the photo of a bucket of bluegill. I also want to thank everybody for the wonderful reviews. This novel is not actually about football, but is part of the background. High School football is a national past-time in Texas. This post is a little over 730 words. Again, I made changes as I posted. I hope it works. I've figured out the busier I am at my paying job the more mistakes I make with my writing. Thank you for having patience with me.


Chapter 21
Football Chapter 11 part 1

By barbara.wilkey

ENDING OF PREVIOUS POST:

Gabriel scanned the room. "Before I leave is there anything that needs to be done. I don't want something like the washing machine incident to happen again."

Hesitating Katherine said, "I was wondering..." She exhaled. "I was wondering if you'd..."

"Just spit it out."

"Would you like to come tomorrow night for fish dinner?"

His eyes twinkled. "I'd love to. Anything I should bring?"

"Reggie."

"Of course, I don't go anywhere without my trusty companion." He petted Daisy's head. "She'd miss him."

"Then it's a date." Her cheeks tinged pink. "I didn't mean a date. I meant friends..." She inhaled. "I don't know what I meant." She turned and walked away.

Gabriel reached out and touched her hand. "I know what you meant. It's definitely not a date."

TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 11 part 1

Early afternoon Gabriel adjusted Reggie's bib before he knocked on Katherine's door. Waiting for an answer, Reggie turned and growled. Gabriel sighed. "I heard it too. I have no idea what's going on. It seems every time I'm around Katherine it happens. Makes no difference if it's here or at school."

Katherine, drying her hands, opened the door. "Sorry, I was cleaning up after lunch. Have you eaten? We have plenty of leftovers. I meant to send some home with you last night and forgot. Please remind me today."

"We'll see." Gabriel scanned the room. "How can I help?"

Katherine eyed the football in his hand. "It looks like you planned a game."

"Well, to be honest I planned on helping you and then a game. I thought if you finished getting the house in order, you could join us. You need to relax too."

She tilted her head, "And you think playing football's relaxing?"

He grinned. "How about playing a game with the boys?"

"I'll give you that." She checked her watch. "I might be finished in about two hours. The boys are out back, if you want to join them."

Taking her hand, he checked it. "I see the bruise is already changing colors." He searched the room. "Where's Daisy?"

"Outside with the boys."

He glanced toward the back door. "Before I go out, how can I help?" Watching her eyes scan the room, he grinned. "Out with it."

"I have a few boxes in the bedrooms that need to be put on the closets' top shelves. Each room has at least one."

Gabriel tossed the ball to the couch and headed for the stairs. "Let's do this. Is Jeremy's room first?" He noticed she stood still. "I need you to tell me which box and exactly where." He took her hand. "Now's not the time to be shy."

After Gabriel put numerous boxes up on shelves in each of the boys' rooms, he asked, "If you need to get something from those boxes, how you going to do it?"

"I guess I'll worry about that later. They can't stay in the middle of the rooms."

"Are there boxes in your room too?" After she nodded, he continued, "Any others?"

"There's one in the den. I'm not sure where to put it."

"Is there anything on the top shelf of the coat closet?"

"Good idea. Let's put it there I didn't put anything on the top shelves because I can't reach there."

Gabriel chuckled. "I've noticed you're height challenged." He paused. "Exactly how tall are you? Can you even claim five and a half feet?" He stood beside her and put his hand on top of his head and looked down. "I'm six feet five inches. I'm well over a foot taller to you. You barely come to my chest. Come on, out with it."

"I'm not sure it's relevant." She started down the stairs but over her shoulder said, "All you'll do is tease me."

He cocked his head. "That short. Hmmm. I wouldn't think of teasing you. But now I'm curious."

"If you tease me just a little, I'll never, and I mean never forgive you. I'm trusting you. I'm five feet two even, usually."

Grinning, he asked, "Usually? Either you are or you aren't." As she started to frown, he added, "I'm not teasing, I just don't understand, either you are or you aren't."

"Sometimes I'm five feet two and a few times I've been measured at five feet and one and a three quarter inches. It depends which doctors' office measured it."

"Thank you for clearing that up. I'm pretty sure you're every bit of five feet two inches."

"You're teasing."

"Maybe a tad. Let's take care of the boxes in the den."

After all the boxes were put up, Gabriel asked, "What else you need help with?"

She picked up the football and passed it to him. "Nothing. You're free to play with the boys."

"Thank you, Ma'am." He headed for the back door and then turned. "Are you joining us?"

"I want to double, well, triple check and make sure everything's set, then I'll be out."

He continued outside. "If you take too long, I'll be back."

"I'm sure you will."

*****
After spending time in each room, Katherine decided there was nothing more that needed to be done. She poured herself a cup of coffee and sipped it as she watched Gabriel and the boys play. He's so good with them. Better than their dad.

She paused. I guess it's a little over a week since we've met and he's already taken them fishing and, now, playing football. She laughed. "Probably because he's an overgrown kid himself."

Gabriel came up to the kitchen window and shouted, "I thought you were watching. Do I need to drag you out here?"

She set her coffee cup down. "I'm coming."

With Katherine standing beside Jeremy, Gabriel said, "This is your mom. Although, she's one tough lady, please remember she's a lady and no rough stuff."

"Oh, you don't think I can handle it, huh?"

Gabriel chuckled. "I guess she's ready. Let's go." He hesitated, "Teams, your mom, Jordan, and Joshua. Jeremy, Joel, and me on the opposing team. Sound fair?"

Everybody agreed.

After forty-five minutes, Jordan went back to pass to his mom. Katherine dropped back. Gabriel came up behind her and reached over her. She slipped back into him. Joshua came up and grabbed Gabriel's knees for a tackle, knocking him down. Katherine fell on top."

Jordan yelled, "Mom!" He ran to her and helped her up. "Are you okay?"

She glanced at Gabriel. "He blocked my fall. You'd better ask if he's okay."

Both dogs faced the same direction and growled.

Katherine sighed. "They hear it again."

"They do." Gabriel touched her arm. "Are you sure you're all right? You hit pretty hard."

"So my fall bruised you? Jordan, you'd better get Coach Hudson a bag of ice."

"Coach?"

Gabriel shook his head. "She's teasing."

Glancing at the sky, Katherine said, "I'd better start dinner. Before I do, I better check the menu, I was thinking, of course, fried blue gill, hush puppies, coleslaw, corn on the cob, now, comes the hard part, rice or French fries?"

The vote was unanimous for French fries.






CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Frank Collins math teacher

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Sandy Frost Rodney Frost's wife

Sam Auto repair shop owner

Bill Brooks Assistant football coach, Gabriel's friend, and Angie's husband.

Author Notes Thank you google images for the photo of a family football game. I also want to thank everybody for the wonderful reviews. This novel is not actually about football, but is part of the background. High School football is a national past-time in Texas. This post is a little over 1000 words. Again, I made changes as I posted. I hope it works. I've figured out the busier I am at my paying job the more mistakes I make with my writing. Thank you for having patience with me. It's official I turned in the first part of my retirement stack of papers last week. My last official day of work is May 28th.


Chapter 22
Football Chapter 11 part 2

By barbara.wilkey

ENDING OF PREVIOUS POST:

After forty-five minutes, Jordan went back to pass to his mom. Katherine dropped back. Gabriel came up behind her and reached over her. She slipped back into him. Joshua came up and grabbed Gabriel's knees for a tackle, knocking him down. Katherine fell on top."

Jordan yelled, "Mom!" He ran to her and helped her up. "Are you okay?"

She glanced at Gabriel. "He blocked my fall. You'd better ask if he's okay."

Both dogs faced the same direction and growled.

Katherine sighed. "They hear it again."

"They do." Gabriel touched her arm. "Are you sure you're all right? You hit pretty hard."

"So my fall bruised you? Jordan, you'd better get Coach Hudson a bag of ice."

"Coach?"

Gabriel shook his head. "She's teasing."

Glancing at the sky, Katherine said, "I'd better start dinner. Before I do, I better check the menu, I was thinking, of course, fried blue gill, hush puppies, coleslaw, corn on the cob, now, comes the hard part, rice or French fries?"

The vote was unanimous for French fries.

TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 11 part 2

While Katherine prepared dinner, Gabriel walked in. She glanced at him. "Football game over?"

"For now. Is there anything I can help with?"

"I'm using your mom's left over coleslaw. I hope it's all right."

"Of course. Why wouldn't it be?"

She smiled. "Good. You said you're here to help but you've mentioned before you lacked cooking skills."

"They do, but I can follow directions."

"Okay, then I'll put you to work. In the refrigerator's bottom left drawer there's a bag of sweet corn. Do you know how to clean it?"

"You're asking this country boy if he knows how to clean corn. Shame on you."

"I wasn't sure how much pro-status corrupted you."

As soon as the words were heard, Gabriel flinched.

She touched his arm. "I'm sorry. Please forgive me. I was disrespectful."

"I deserved it. So you've checked the tabloids. I'm sure you don't want me around your boys. I'll leave." He started toward the door.

Katherine took his hand. "I haven't checked anything and I have no desire to. As far as I'm concerned, you're a great role-model for the boys. I haven't seen any evidence to the contrary."

Gabriel studied her hand holding his. "I've told you I'm not proud of my actions during those years."

She used her other hand and put her finger to his lips. "Please stop. The past is the past. You've done wonderful things since. You should be proud of everything you've accomplished."

He softly pecked her finger. "Thank you." He picked up an ear of corn and started shucking. "I guess I'd better get busy."

After dinner and the kitchen was cleaned, Gabriel suggested, "Let's go outback and continue the game."

Winking at him, Katherine checked the time. "Let's play a quiet inside game. It won't be long before Jeremy needs to take his bath."

Gabriel's glance alternated from boy to boy. "What do you guys suggest? I don't know what the choices are?"

Jeremy jumped into his mom's lap. "What games can we play?" He faced Gabriel. "Sometimes we argue so Mom puts games in time out."

Grinning, Gabriel said, "I see." His eyes met Katherine's. "Suggestions?"

"We can take a vote. 'Busytown', but it has to be played on the floor because the board's large," she paused, "or 'Hoot Owl Hoot'.

Jordan frowned. "Mom, not that game. It uses strategies and Jeremy's too young to understand."

"I was thinking we could play with partners."

Jeremy yelled, "I get Coach."

Katherine took out 'Hoot Owl Hoot' from the closet. "Get your teams ready."

Jordan and Joshua made a team, Joel and Katherine, and then Jeremy and Gabriel.

The game continued until the grandfather clock chimed seven-thirty. Katherine started picking up. "Jeremy, you need to take your bath."

"But Mom..."

"Jeremy, everybody has a busy day tomorrow. School starts Tuesday, the following day."

All eyes focused on the young child as he stomped upstairs.

Katherine called after him as she returned the game to the closet. "Let me know when you're ready for your story."

Gabriel stood. "I think the dogs want out." He walked toward the back door with both dogs. Jordan grabbed the football and Joshua followed.

The three of them passed the ball around until Katherine stood at the backdoor. "Boys, you need to begin to settle down. Jordan, four-forty-five comes really early. Joshua, five-forty-five comes early too."

Jordan tossed Gabriel the ball. "I know, Mom." He faced Coach. "Why do we start practice at six?"

"It's cool and as a team we need two practices a day."

"Figured it was something like that. See you in the morning."

Before the boys went upstairs, they hugged Katherine.

When Gabriel walked in the door, he passed Katherine the ball. She accepted it. "Thank you for spending time with the boys. It means a lot to them." She hesitated. "And to me."

After she entered the living room, she sat on the couch and set the football beside her. "You know you didn't need to bring your own. We do own all sorts of balls, footballs, soccer balls, baseballs, and basketballs. Even a kickball or two. I'm sure I'm forgetting some."

Gabriel sat on the opposite side of the football. He tapped the ball a few times.

Katherine put her hand on his hand. "Something's on your mind. What?" When he didn't say anything, she continued, "I'm really sorry for my earlier comment. I know you're sensitive about that time in your life."

He took a few of her fingers in his hand. "Don't worry about it. I'm not." Their eyes met, as he continued, "I've wondered what your life was like before George died." When her eyes widened, he said, "The boys have made a few comments."

She nodded, "That explains your question."

"If you don't want to talk about it, I understand."

"It's fine. You've shared a little about your previous life. It's only fair I do." Katherine exhaled. "Where to start?"



CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Frank Collins math teacher

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Sandy Frost Rodney Frost's wife

Sam Auto repair shop owner

Bill Brooks Assistant football coach, Gabriel's friend, and Angie's husband.

Author Notes Thank you google images for the photo of the Hoot Owl Hoot game. I also want to thank everybody for the wonderful reviews. This novel is not actually about football, but is part of the background. High School football is a national past-time in Texas. This post is a little over 800 words. Again, I made changes as I posted. I hope it works. I've been home since Thursday because Mother Nature decided Texas needed to experience winter. Go Figure. From the looks of the weather forecast, I may be home another week. The only thing Texas knows about ice and salt is a Margarita. Thank you for having patience with me. I


Chapter 23
Football Chapter 11 part 3

By barbara.wilkey

ENDING OF PREVIOUS POST:

When Gabriel walked in the door, he passed Katherine the ball. She accepted it. "Thank you for spending time with the boys. It means a lot to them." She hesitated. "And to me."

After she entered the living room, she sat on the couch and set the football beside her. "You know you didn't need to bring your own. We do own all sorts of balls, footballs, soccer balls, baseballs, and basketballs. Even a kickball or two. I'm sure I'm forgetting some."

Gabriel sat on the opposite side of the football. He tapped the ball a few times.

Katherine placed her hand over his. "Something's on your mind. What?" When he didn't say anything, she continued, "I'm really sorry for my earlier comment. I know you're sensitive about that time in your life."

He caressed a few of her fingers. "Don't worry about it. I'm not." Their eyes met, as he continued, "I've wondered what your life was like before George died." When her eyes widened, he said, "The boys have made a few comments."

She nodded, "That explains your question."

"If you don't want to talk about it, I understand."

"It's fine. You've shared a little about your previous life. It's only fair I do." Katherine exhaled. "Where to start?"


TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 11 part 3

She scanned the living room. "It was pretty much the same as here, only in a New York City penthouse."

"That doesn't make sense."

"The boys and I lived by ourselves in a huge penthouse. Here the boys have my mom, large backyard to play in," she smiled, "you and your parents." Katherine noticed Gabriel's dark brown eyes staring at her. "George was gone months at a time. Every few months he'd stop by for a few hours on his way to another city. As time passed, the visits became less frequent and eventually nonexistent." She checked her watch. "He'd call Sunday evenings around nine o'clock. He made sure the boys were in bed so he wouldn't have to speak with them."

After folding her hands in her lap, she added, "The boys were pictures in his wallet he'd show off. My purpose," she glanced at a photo on the fireplace hearth, "he'd have a dress sent to the penthouse for an appointed dinner engagement. He'd even hire a babysitter. Most of the time, he'd send a taxi. I'd meet him there and enter on his arm."

"A trophy wife."

Katherine nodded. "Exactly. After a baby was born, and please note, I had four, I was given a month to lose the weight. George got upset because after Jeremy I retained about ten pounds, and do to this day."

Gabriel leaned forward. "Go ahead and slap me, but I think you look really good."

"I'm not going to slap you." Katherine tilted her head. "Actually it felt nice. I haven't been complimented for a very long time. Thank you."

"You deserve it." Gabriel touched her hand. "Why'd you stay?"

"Nobody would believe me. I had all the money I needed and a gorgeous furnished place to live. He called once a week."

"To check on you and the boys?"

"No, to tell me what city he was in and how much fun he was having."

"I see." Gabriel chuckled. "He had an arrogance problem. I guess athletes aren't the only ones with that issue."

"You're right. Enough about me." She turned her head as a large gust of wind slammed against the window. "It sounds like a storm's brewing."

Gabriel stood. "Reggie and I'd better head home."

Katherine checked her dinging phone. "My weather app shows a large dark red band on top of us. It's supposed to have high winds and golf ball size hail." She walked to the window. "I wish I had the boxes out of the garage so I could use it."

He joined her. "I'll take care of that tomorrow."

"You don't need to." Another gust of wind hit the window. "I think you missed your opportunity. You'd better wait it out."

"I hope it doesn't settle in for the night. The neighbors will really gossip."

"I hadn't thought of that. Maybe..."

Katherine jumped into Gabriel's arms as loud clash of thunder echoed overhead followed by a crash. The lights flickered twice and went out.

His arms surrounded her. "You all right?"

She backed away. "I'm sorry."

Before Gabriel could comment, another clash of thunder sounded and she, again, leaned into his arms.

"I'm guessing lightning hit a transformer. You may be without electricity for a while. Do you have flashlights or candles?"

"I'm sorry, again. I have both, but I'm not sure where." With a gulp, she backed from him. "Jeremy's afraid of storms. I need to check on him."

Gabriel used his cell phone for light and led her to the couch. "Wait here. I'll check on him and the other boys. Then we'll search for flashlights." He used an afghan and covered her. "You look like you could use this."

When Gabriel returned, he sat beside her. "Jeremy slept through everything. The football game must've worn him out."

"You're probably right. Storms make him nervous."

He slipped his arm around her. "I have a feeling they make his mom nervous, too."

"Maybe slightly."

He chuckled. "Slightly?"

"Okay, more than slightly." She released a deep breath. "Sorry about my reaction."

"You mean jumping into my arms? Twice?"

"Yes, that." Katherine stood. "Let's look for flashlights."

He stood. "I haven't seen Daisy."

"She's hiding. Storms make her nervous too."

"Of course." Gabriel took Katherine's hand. "I don't want you getting lost. Where should we look first?"

"Our moms unpacked the kitchen. I'm guessing they'd put them in a kitchen utility drawer."

"Sounds like a mom thing."

A loud clap of thunder sounded and Katherine inhaled deeply.

Gabriel touched her arm. "Breathe. I'm here. I won't let anything happen."

Katherine moved closer and whispered, "I know that." She leaned her head onto his chest.

His arms circled her. After her breathing returned to normal, he pointed to a drawer to his left. "You check that one and I'll check here."

This continued until Katherine opened a drawer with two flashlights and packs of batteries. "I found them." She turned on one.

Gabriel held up candles. "And I found these. What do you want to do?"

"Go to bed."

Laughing Gabriel said, "If it's what you want, but I'm pretty sure rumors would fly."

She slapped at his arm. "That's not at all what I meant."

"I know. Teasing, but I think I can even see you blushing by flashlight." Gabriel stood quiet. "I think the storm has slowed. I'd better leave."

Katherine walked him to the door. "I'm sorry about..."

Gabriel took her hand and caressed it. "Don't worry about it. I'm glad I could help." He opened the door. "Come on, Reggie." Before he left, he added, "I'll see you in the morning for our run."

"So now it's 'our' run."

"Yep. I told you I wouldn't let anything happen. Good night."



CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Frank Collins math teacher

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Sandy Frost Rodney Frost's wife

Sam Auto repair shop owner

Bill Brooks Assistant football coach, Gabriel's friend, and Angie's husband.

Author Notes Thank you google images for the photo of the lightning. I also want to thank everybody for the wonderful reviews. This novel is not actually about football, but is part of the background. High School football is a national past-time in Texas. This post is a little under 1000 words. Again, I made changes as I posted. I hope it works. I
Thank you for having patience with me. I


Chapter 24
Football Chapter 12 part 1

By barbara.wilkey

ENDING OF PREVIOUS POST:

A loud clap of thunder sounded and Katherine inhaled deeply.

Gabriel touched her arm. "Breathe. I'm here. I won't let anything happen."

Katherine moved closer and whispered, "I know that." She leaned her head onto his chest.

His arms circled her. After her breathing returned to normal, he pointed to a drawer to his left. "You check that one and I'll check here."

This continued until Katherine opened a drawer with two flashlights and packs of batteries. "I found them." She turned on one.

Gabriel held up candles. "And I found these. What do you want to do?"

"Go to bed."

Laughing Gabriel said, "If it's what you want, but I'm pretty sure rumors would fly."

She slapped at his arm. "That's not at all what I meant."

"I know. Teasing, but I think I can even see you blushing by flashlight." Gabriel stood quiet. "I think the storm has slowed. I'd better leave."

Katherine walked him to the door. "I'm sorry about..."

Gabriel took her hand and caressed it. "Don't worry about it. I'm glad I could help." He opened the door. "Come on, Reggie." Before he left, he added, "I'll see you in the morning for our run."

"So now it's 'our' run."

"Yep. I told you I wouldn't let anything happen. Good night."

TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 12 part 1

Katherine stretched inside and then walked out when Gabriel and Reggie came into view.

Gabriel was the first to speak. "Good morning, where's your jogging partner?"

"Daisy and Jeremy had a rough night. They're sound asleep, hugging each other."

As they talked, Reggie turned and growled. Gabriel stared in that direction. "Whatever it is; is still there." After a brief pause, he asked, "Did Mom have a rough night too?" he teased. "That second round was worse than the first."

"Let's put it this way, both Jeremy and Daisy ended up in my bed."

"Did you get any sleep?"

"Not a lot." She set her watch. "Our electricity's still off and my phone needs charging. It's going to be a difficult day." She stretched her arms above her head. "Let's get started."

"Yes Ma'am."

As they began, again Reggie growled. Gabriel clenched his jaw. "I've had enough." He moved closer to Katherine and continued the jog.

When her alarm went off, they headed home.

At the sidewalk leading to her steps, Gabriel said, "The district provides lunch today. Will Jordan need lunch?"

"No, Mom's picking him up."

Gabriel paused. "I have a little bit of free time. I'll bring him home and have him help load the boxes."

"Are you sure?"

He nodded. "Yes, I have a few things in the locker room that need to be taken to the landfill. Don't forget to tell Ms. Sarah. I'll wait until you get inside before I leave. See you at school."

"Bye, until later." She paused as Reggie growled.

As Katherine closed the door, she watched Gabriel make a call. I wonder who he called.

*****
When Sarah arrived, Katherine relayed the message that Gabriel would bring Jordan home. As she got inside her SUV, she paused. Since Gabriel's parents won't be supplying lunch, should I get him coffee. He didn't say. I will anyway. I don't think there's such a thing as too much coffee with him.

Katherine stopped by the office and left Gabriel's coffee and breakfast. After he was called, she waited a few minutes. When he didn't show, she went to her room. I need to make a math word of the day bulletin board.

As she completed it, Angie stopped. "What's this?"

"I thought I'd do a math word of the day competition. The kids write down the definition and the first person who gets it correct gets a free homework pass. They'll have to have their name, the correct definition, date and time they turned it in. The basket's right inside the door. I thought I'd do it all year. How hard should the first word be?"


"Medium hard. What are you thinking?"

"Aggregate, maybe?" She scanned the hallway. "You haven't seen Coach this morning have you?"

"Not really. Is he missing?"

Katherine smiled. "No, but it's unusual he hasn't been under foot. So I guess, yes, he's missing."

Angie took out her phone. "You want me to check with Bill?"

"Heavens no! We have a faculty meeting in a little while. I'm sure he'll be there. Don't you dare say anything."

"So you don't want me to tell anybody you were concerned because you didn't see a certain hunky coach, right?"

"That's not at all what I said. You're almost as impossible as he is." Katherine stood back and stared at the bulletin board. "Think it looks okay? Or should I ask will kids participate?"

"For a free homework pass, I think they will. Is it only for your classes or can anyone participate?"

"I was thinking mine, but if Mr. Edwards agrees it can be open to the school. I hadn't thought about it."

"Put your things away, let's go to the cafeteria."

*****
As they sat and talked, Angie touched Katherine's hand. "Don't be so obvious. Others will notice. He'll show up."

After the meeting started, Gabriel walked in. He held up the two coffees, the sack, and mouthed, "Thank you," to Katherine.

With pink tinged cheeks, she nodded acknowledgement. He shook his head and grinned.

Mr. Edwards glanced in her direction. "Mrs. Riley, would you come up, please?"

Her hand flew to her chest. "Me?"

He nodded. "Yes. I noticed something on your hallway bulletin board and thought the entire school could benefit. I'd like you to explain it."

At the podium she faced the principal. "Do you mean my math vocabulary board?"

"Yes. I thought it was a great idea. We'll see if it's something the entire school wants to participate in."

Katherine explained the idea and the free homework passes. It was decided the school would participate and she would be in charge of the words and the passes.

As she sat, she noticed Gabriel wink at her.

The meeting continued and ended just before lunch so the caterers could set up.

Gabriel walked up to Katherine. "Something came up. I had to call Ms. Sarah to pick up Jordan. When I bring Jordan home from afternoon practice, I'll take care of the boxes."

"You don't need to."

"I told you I would and I keep my promises."

"You never promised."

He turned his head when he heard Mr. Edwards call his name. "I'd better see what he wants." He faced her. "Thanks for breakfast. I needed it. See you later."

Katherine watched the two men walk toward the office.




CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Frank Collins math teacher

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Sandy Frost Rodney Frost's wife

Sam Auto repair shop owner

Bill Brooks Assistant football coach, Gabriel's friend, and Angie's husband.

Author Notes Thank you google images for the photo of math bulletin board. I also want to thank everybody for the wonderful reviews. This novel is not actually about football, but is part of the background. High football is a national pastime in Texas. This post is a little over 900 words. Thank you for having patience with me.


Chapter 25
Football Chapter 12 part 2

By barbara.wilkey

ENDING OF PREVIOUS POST:

The meeting continued and ended just before lunch so the caterers could set up.

Gabriel walked up to Katherine. "Something came up. I had to call Ms. Sarah to pick up Jordan. When I bring Jordan home from afternoon practice, I'll take care of the boxes."

"You don't need to."

"I told you I would and I keep my promises."

"You never promised."

He turned his head when he heard Mr. Edwards call his name. "I'd better see what he wants." He faced her. "Thanks for breakfast. I needed it. See you later."

Katherine watched the two men walk toward the office.

TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 12 part 2 day

After a few minutes, Katherine was called to the office. When she opened the door, Nancy, the principal's secretary, motioned her directly to Mr. Edward's office.

When she knocked; Gabriel opened and then closed the door. Her eyes met Mr. Edwards. "Have I done something wrong?"

"No. Please have a seat." He faced Gabriel. "Gabe, share what you discovered after your run this morning."

"I contacted a few friends and discovered Frost hired a P.I. to prove we're having an affair. I'm guessing the dogs heard the click of the camera."

Katherine's eyes widened. "But we're not having any type of relationship."

Gabriel touched her hand. "I know."

Mr. Edwards leaned forward. "Gabe already explained the early morning jogging and helping you move. I see nothing inappropriate with either of them. It's obvious from what he explained that he jogs from the school to your house, meets up with you, and then returns to the school. I agree your early jogs are dangerous, even with your dog."

Paul released a deep breath. "However, I've noticed a few winks and smiles passing between you. If I've noticed, others have too. I believe there may not be a relationship right now, but I feel there's one starting."

"And my previous reputation..." interrupted Gabriel. He hesitated. "I wouldn't do anything to hurt Katherine. You should know that."

"I do. I know you have the upmost respect for her. It's obvious." Mr. Edwards tapped his desk.

While waiting for Mr. Edwards to continue, Katherine said, "Gabriel, I don't understand why you didn't come to me. You went to Mr. Edwards first. I think I should've been the first to know. This affects me."

"I can address that," interrupted Mr. Edwards. "I need to be in the loop. If photos end up in the community or with the school board, I need to be aware so I can answer their questions. I don't want you judged by public opinion." He clasped his hands together. "Be careful. Don't give this P.I. any ammunition." After a pause, he continued, "I have a feeling there's more to this than we know." His eyes met Katherine's. "Any questions?"

"I understand you need to be in the loop, but I still should've been informed first." After a pause, she said, "I'm sitting here shocked. I'm not sure why anybody would be interested in my boring life. I'm not interested in starting a relationship with Gabriel or any man. My only concerns are my boys and my job. Unfortunately in that order."

Mr. Edwards grinned. "Mrs. Riley, don't worry about your priorities. We're talking as friends," he faced Gabriel, "What's eating you? We need open communication to stay ahead of this. We've been friends too long, so out with it."

"I don't even know how to verbalize what I'm thinking, no feeling."

Turning around in his chair, Mr. Edwards reached for a photo of Gabriel as a professional football player and then turned back around. "I bet I can. You're beating yourself up for behavior you exhibited during these years, am I right?" After Gabriel nodded, he continued, "You need to forgive yourself. That's not who you are or were back then."

"I'm afraid that behavior has come back to haunt me and now Katherine. She's being judged because of it." Gabriel touched her hand. "I'm sorry."

Katherine laid her other hand on top of his. "I told you yesterday, I'm not concerned about what you did."

"Maybe you should so you know what you're up against. Frost's playing dirty."

"I don't feel I need to. I have a general idea of what pro players of any sport do. They have parties with plenty of alcohol, drugs, and have sex with different women. Am I close?"

Mr. Edwards grinned. "I'd say she nailed it."

"May I continue?" After both men nodded, she added, "Do you still have wild parties?"

"Once in a while, I'll have a beer. That's all."

"So the answer is no. We've not even shared a kiss, of any kind. How many women have you dated in the last month or two?"

Gabriel studied his feet. "This is hard to admit but my dating life is nonexistent."

"Sorry to damage your macho image, but the way I see it there's no reason to worry about the past. Besides we're not in a relationship, other than friendship. So we're good."

Mr. Edwards glanced at his ringing phone. "I need to answer this. Why don't you two get lunch." He paused. "But before you leave, Gabe invited me to help you move. I already had a family commitment or I would've helped. And Katherine, I need to ask a question before you leave today." He nodded toward Gabriel.

Katherine faced him. "Do you know what that's about?"

"Maybe, but I'm not at liberty to say." He grinned. "It's above my pay-grade. I'm hungry."



CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Frank Collins math teacher

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Sandy Frost Rodney Frost's wife

Sam Auto repair shop owner

Bill Brooks Assistant football coach, Gabriel's friend, and Angie's husband.

Author Notes Thank you google images for the photo of women partying. I also want to thank everybody for the wonderful reviews. This novel is not actually about football, but is part of the background. High football is a national pastime in Texas. This post is a little over 800 words. Thank you for having patience with me.


Chapter 26
Football Chapter 12 part 3

By barbara.wilkey

ENDING OF PREVIOUS POST:

"Sorry to damage your macho image, but the way I see it there's no reason to worry about the past. Besides we're not in a relationship, other than friendship. So we're good."

Mr. Edwards glanced at his ringing phone. "I need to answer this. Why don't you two get lunch." He paused. "But before you leave, Gabe invited me to help you move. I already had a family commitment or I would've helped. And Katherine, I need to ask a question before you leave today." He nodded toward Gabriel.

Katherine faced him. "Do you know what that's about?"

"Maybe, but I'm not at liberty to say." He grinned. "It's above my pay-grade. I'm hungry."


TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 12 part 3

That afternoon when Katherine arrived home, she opened the front door. "Mom, did you talk to Mr. Edwards?"

Sarah walked toward her daughter. "No. Why?"

"He asked me to coach the girls' cross country team, and the other day you mentioned something about it."

"I've been too busy with your boys to visit with Paul." She smiled. "How'd you answer? You know if you did, you'd be required to spend more time with Gabriel?"

"Mom! There's nothing between Gabriel and me. I'm recently widowed. I'm nowhere close to being ready for any relationship. I'm still trying to get my life together."

Her mom swiped her with a dish towel. "You didn't really have a marriage. You deserve a man who'd be a real husband and father."

"And a man whose first commitment is to football would be that man? I don't think so."

"Just remember, this is the beginning of football season and where has he been these past few days?" Sarah hesitated for effect. "He's been helping you."

"He's a jock. I don't date or even want to be around jocks."

Sarah laughed. "Yeah and where did marrying a nerd get you? The same place some jocks would've gotten you. Jocks don't have the patent on being horrible husbands."

"I'm going to get Joshua from football. I'll be back shortly." Katherine left.

*****
About an hour later, Gabriel called and reminded Katherine that he'd bring Jordan home so he could load up the boxes.

When they arrived, Gabriel told Jordan to go inside and ask Joshua to meet him in the garage.

Joshua entered. "Coach, Jordan said you wanted my help."

"Sort of. I wanted to talk with you, alone, and figured we could do this at the same time." Gabriel tossed a few folded boxes into the bed of his pick-up. "Coach Carroll stopped by my office this morning. Any idea why?"

Hanging his head, Joshua said, "I'm not sure. Why?"

"By your body language I'd say you have a pretty good idea." He threw a few more boxes in the bed. "It'll be easier if you come clean."

"A group of us were looking at girlie magazines. They weren't mine. Another kid brought them. They were his big brother's. We got caught."

"Since the magazines weren't yours, it makes it okay?"

"I guess not. Coach wasn't too happy. Are you going to tell Mom?"

"What'd you think your mom would do?"

"Kill me."

Gabriel grinned. "I doubt that, she loves you. But she wouldn't be happy. You'd get a long lecture and maybe grounded for a month."

"Probably for life."

"Could be. Do you think it's okay to degrade women by gawking and probably making rude comments and gestures?"

"These girls get paid for it."

"Many girls do it because it's the only way they can afford college, some are run-a-ways and have to support themselves, and some are tricked into it with a promise of acting careers. They do it for many different reasons."

"I didn't think of it that way. Some of the guys said you used to hang around with models and had a different one every night."

Gabriel made a fist before he inhaled a deep breath. "That's right. I made a lot of mistakes while playing pro-ball. One morning I woke up and realized I didn't like the man I'd become. I've worked hard to change that. I try to treat women with the respect they deserve."

He tossed a few more boxes on the pile. "How do I treat your mom?"

"With respect. Does Mom know about your past?"

"She doesn't know the details, but she knows. I've told her since that part of my life wasn't a good role model I'd stay away." Joshua's eyes widened, but Gabriel continued, "She said she's willing to give me a second chance." A couple more boxes went on the pile. "How'd you feel if I disrespected your mom?"

"Horrible. I like you. I'm glad she lets you hang around."

Chuckling, Gabriel continued, "Me too."

Adding boxes to the pile, Joshua said, "Mom smiles around you. She didn't use to smile."

Swallowing, Gabriel asked, "Did you bring any magazines home?"

Joshua nodded. "One."

"After we finish, give it to me, and I'll destroy it. What kind of example would it set if Jeremy found it?"

Joshua frowned. "Horrible."

"Here's the deal. Right now this is between us. If it happens again, your mom will be told. Understood?"

"Yes. It won't happen again. I promise."

After the boxes were loaded, Gabriel and Joshua went inside. Gabriel nodded for Joshua to get the magazine.

Katherine walked into the room. While Joshua was upstairs, she said, "I can tell something's up. What is it?"

Gabriel's eyes met hers. "It's a guy thing. I hope you trust me enough to believe I've handled it."

Inhaling a deep breath, she released it. "Okay." She turned toward the kitchen. "We're having left overs. Want to stay for dinner? There's more than enough."

"I don't think so. Lately, I've eaten here more than I've eaten at home. The neighbors might talk."

"At least let me make a plate. Please?"

"That'll be fine."

While Katherine fixed his dinner, Joshua brought down the magazine. Gabriel shoved it inside a sports-bag. "I'll destroy it at my place."




CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Frank Collins math teacher

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Sandy Frost Rodney Frost's wife

Sam Auto repair shop owner

Bill Brooks Assistant football coach, Gabriel's friend, and Angie's husband.

Author Notes Thank you google images for the photo of Playboy Magazine. I also want to thank everybody for the wonderful reviews. This novel is not actually about football, but is part of the background. High football is a national pastime in Texas. This post is a little under 900 words. Thank you for having patience with me.


Chapter 27
Football Chapter 13 part 1

By barbara.wilkey

ENDING OF PREVIOUS POST:

After the boxes were loaded, Gabriel and Joshua went inside. Gabriel nodded for Joshua to get the magazine.

Katherine walked into the room. While Joshua was upstairs, she said, "I can tell something's up. What is it?"

Gabriel's eyes met hers. "It's a guy thing. I hope you trust me enough to believe I've handled it."

Inhaling a deep breath, she released it. "Okay." She turned toward the kitchen. "We're having left overs. Want to stay for dinner? There's more than enough."

"I don't think so. Lately, I've eaten here more than I've eaten at home. The neighbors might talk."

"At least let me make a plate. Please?"

"That'll be fine."

While Katherine fixed his dinner, Joshua brought down the magazine. Gabriel shoved it inside a sports-bag. "I'll destroy it at my place."

TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 13 part 1 day 11

As predawn lit the Eastern sky, Katherine opened the front door and stood on the porch. Daisy waited beside her as she began stretching. "I wonder if we're being watched. Of course we are." Smiling she added, "Here comes our running partners."

Daisy wagged her tail.

"I see you have a crush on Reggie."

As Gabriel and Reggie came closer, Katherine said, "I think Daisy has a thing for Reggie."

"Good, I think this guy has a thing for that pretty lady."

The dogs turned and growled.

Gabriel faced that direction. "I guess our friend's here too."

"Shouldn't we do something?"

"No. Paul and I checked the school cameras. We can prove I park my truck early in the morning and then begin my run. It's time stamped, so we can prove, that's where I started. I'm sure it's well documented I'm not spending my nights here."

"I hope so." Before Katherine set her watch, she said, "I doubt Mr. Frost can afford a P.I. I'm wondering how he's paying for it."

"I'm betting somebody, for some reason is encouraging him, but I have no clue who or why. How about you?"

"Me either. I lead a very boring life. I don't know why anybody would be interested in me." After a pause, Katherine said, "Let's get started."

As they began, Gabriel asked, "Have you decided if you're accepting the coaching job?"

"Not sure. I have no idea how to coach. I've never had any training."

"Right here, beside you is the best coach who ever walked the Earth," teased Gabriel.

"What could possibly go wrong?" She laughed.

"Honestly, all of us are here to help. We have your back. I doubt many girls will sign up the first year. It'll be a rebuilding year."

"I'm thinking about it. I'll let Mr. Edwards know when I get to school. Deal?"

He grinned. "Deal."

*****
After Katherine arrived at school, she stopped by the office and dropped off Gabriel's order and asked to speak with Mr. Edwards.

As she waited for the principal, Gabriel came in and picked up the coffees and breakfast. "You didn't need to do this. Our agreement was only till school started."

"I wasn't sure if you'd have time to stop and get it. I stop anyway. It's easy to get additional coffees."

"Since you put it that way..." He hesitated. "I'll run by the coffee shop later today and put money in my account. I don't want you paying for it. It'll get expensive."

"But..."

He started to hand back the coffees. "It's the only way I'll accept these."

"You're used to getting your way, aren't you?"

"It's a hazard of being an only child. We
agree?"

Mr. Edwards walked from his office, said hi to Gabriel and then asked, "Mrs. Riley, were you waiting for me?"

"Yes, Sir." She walked toward his office but stopped. "You get your way for now, but don't get used to it. By the way, you're incorrigible." She continued into the office.

Gabriel sipped his coffee. "Nancy, what's going on?"

Her eyes widened. "I'm shocked there's something going on in this building you don't know about. But to be honest, I don't know either. Mrs. Riley brought in your coffee and asked to speak with Mr. Edwards."

Nodding, Gabriel said, "I wonder if she's accepting the coaching job." He took a seat. "I think I'll wait. I'd like to know the answer."

Before she came out, one of the other secretaries called, "Coach, you're needed in the locker room."

He glanced at Mr. Edwards' door. "I guess I'll find out later." He left.

*****
The bell rang at exactly 8:35, and Katherine welcomed her homeroom class. As morning announcements began, Mr. Green hurried into the room. "Mrs. Riley, you're needed in the office. I'll cover your class. It shouldn't take long."

Katherine rushed to the office as Mr. Edwards covered the telephone. "You need to make the announcement about the girls' cross country team."

"What?" He handed her a paper and the phone. She read, "Good Morning, Silver Cove Bears. This is Mrs. Riley. I'll be coaching girls' cross country. I know it's late, but here's the information. Tomorrow, I'll need the names of interested girls. Please drop by my room, 103. We need a minimum of ten to have a team. If we have enough for a team, Wednesday evening, Coach Hudson will take the number of interested girls to the school board meeting. Other girls can still join. Thursday evening starting at 5:00 free physicals will be given at school. You can use your own doctor if you prefer, but you cannot begin practice without a physical. Also a signed permission slip will need to be turned in before the physical. You can get the permission slips by dropping by my classroom, room 103, or the office. I'm sure Coach Hudson will have permission slips. If ten or more girls sign up, the first practice will be Monday after school at 4:00. Come to the girls' locker room ready to run. Thank you."

Katherine handed the phone to Mr. Edwards. "Just a minute, Mrs. Riley. Students, she has one more announcement. Mrs. Riley, please tell the students about your math vocabulary word of the day and the free homework pass."

After Katherine explained the rules for the math word, she handed the telephone back to Mr. Edwards. "Can I get to class?"

He nodded. "You did great." He handed her a stack of permission slips. "You're going to need these."

At the office door, Gabriel opened it. "I heard you accepted the coaching job." He glanced at her hand. "Where'd you get permission slips?" He grinned. "Since you said I'd also have them, I'd better make sure I have some. It'll be nice working with you."

Katherine glanced toward her room. "Mr. Green's watching my class. I need to hurry."

"Catch up with you later." He watched her walk away. "You did a good job over the intercom."

She continued toward her classroom.






CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Frank Collins math teacher

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Sandy Frost Rodney Frost's wife

Sam Auto repair shop owner

Bill Brooks Assistant football coach, Gabriel's friend, and Angie's husband.

Author Notes Thank you google images for the photo of a girls' cross country meet. I also want to thank everybody for the wonderful reviews. This novel is not actually about football, but is part of the background. High football is a national pastime in Texas. This post is a little over 1000 words. Thank you for having patience with me.


Chapter 28
Football Chapter 13 part 2

By barbara.wilkey

ENDING OF PREVIOUS POST:

At the office door, Gabriel opened it. "I heard you accepted the coaching job." He glanced at her hand. "Where'd you get permission slips?" He grinned. "Since you said I also have them, I'd better make sure I have some. It'll be nice working with you."

Katherine glanced toward her room. "Mr. Green's watching my class. I need to hurry."

"Catch up with you later." He watched her walk away. "You did a good job over the intercom."

She continued toward her classroom.

TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 13 part 2

When Katherine and Daisy stepped out the front door for their morning jog, Gabriel and Reggie were waiting. She smiled when she saw Gabriel doing jumping jacks. "Are you posing for the camera?"

"We got here a little early and got tired of running in place."

Katherine glanced at her watch. "I'm four minutes early. I'm not late. You could've gone on."

"I don't want you running in the dark, plus I was anxious to find out how you're feeling about coaching?"

"A little nervous, but okay." She set her watch. "Let's get going. I have a busy day." She hesitated. "Joshua has football games Thursdays at 4:30. If I accept, I'll miss them. I'll need to figure that out."

"Dad announces the games. Why don't I ask him to video the game and you can watch them later?"

"Mom and the younger boys could represent the family, and I could still see them. Do you think your dad would mind?"

"I know he'd like to help."

As they jogged, both dogs faced the same direction and growled.

Gabriel turned his head. "I guess our buddy's keeping track."

"I'd feel better if he gave up."

"Me too." He paused. "To change the subject, how'd your first day go?"

"I'm afraid if I talk about it, I might jinx it. It went surprisingly well. It couldn't have gone any better." Katherine faced Gabriel. "How'd your first day in the classroom go? You didn't have time to prep or set up the room."

"It went well. We did calisthenics the entire period," he teased.

"I know better, but you just found out Monday and then agreed to teach both classes. How does one prepare?"

Gabriel chuckled. "You don't. You just go with it. History was always my favorite subject, so it won't be a problem. If it were math or science, I'd have to prep."

"Don't you need to take a test to show competency? I did. They didn't just accept my degree."

"This isn't the first time. My first year here, I took all the history competencies. I just haven't needed them for..." he paused to think, "maybe two years." He grinned. "I'm glad you showed up. I'm not sure I could pass the math competencies."

Katherine's timer went off. "Time to start back." As they did, she continued, "I feel that way about the English. I doubt I could pass them. I enjoy reading, but when it comes to the classics, I find them pretty boring."

"So if I quote Shakespeare, you'd be lost?"

Her eyes widened. "You quote Shakespeare?"

"No, I was just asking." He chuckled. "Do I look like somebody who's read any of the classics?"

"Not really."

"Good. I was afraid I needed to up my workout."

"Your workout keeps you in perfect condition." Katherine stopped in her tracks. "That's not what I meant."

He touched her arm. "I know what you meant. Don't worry about it."

Standing on the sidewalk, Katherine glanced at her door. "I'll see you at school sometime today."

"You will. Don't forget I need the number and names of cross country girls for the school board meeting tonight. It starts at six-thirty." He teased, "Glad you think my workout routine keeps me looking good."

As she ran to her front door, she called, "You're incorrigible."

"I know."

*****
At school, Katherine dropped off Gabriel's coffee in the office and headed toward her classroom. She stood at the door and scanned the room. I'd say I'm as ready as I'll ever be. I hope today goes as well as yesterday.

Three girls came to her. The taller one asked, "You're Mrs. Riley, right?" After she indicated she was, the girl continued, "We're interested in girls' cross country. Can we sign up?"

"Sure, follow me and I'll get your names and give you the paper to bring back tomorrow night for the physical."

About the time they finished, students entered the room, and class began.

During lunch, Katherine sent out an all-school email reminding staff members she needed the names of girls wanting to participate in cross country by the end of the business day.

*****
After the final bell, girls came to her classroom wanting the paperwork and more information about cross country. It was after five-thirty before the girls left. Katherine had eleven girls interested.

She opened the computer, checked her emails, and discovered four more were interested. I'm wondering if that allows me a helper. Fifteen teenage girls are a lot. Should I speak with Gabriel or Mr. Edwards? She opened a new document and started typing. "I'd better get this list together." She began typing.

After Katherine finished, she checked the time. It's six o'clock. I'd better hurry. Gabriel's probably still at practice. I'll leave it on his desk. She gathered her things and headed toward the locker rooms. I'm sure his office is in that area. Surely it'll be labeled.

She entered the locker room section of the school and glanced around. "Why isn't the Athletic Director's office labeled?" She opened a door and walked in. "Maybe it's in here."

As she stood inside, Gabriel walked in wearing a towel and using another one to dry his hair. "Kate, what are you doing in the male locker room?"

She turned around so her back was to him. "Looking for you."

"You found me."

She held up the paper. "I have the list of girls interested in cross country."

"Good. The meeting's in less than thirty minutes. Are you going to give it to me or hold it?"

"You're not dressed."

"I know. I thought I'd better shower before the meeting, and then you showed up." He chuckled. "I didn't think it was possible but even your arms are blushing."

She set the paper on the floor. "Here's the list." She ran out the door.

Mr. Edwards passed her in the hall. "Mrs. Riley, are you all right?"

"No!"

*****
He opened the door and walked in. "Gabe, what did you do to Mrs. Riley? She ran out of here like..." He closed his eyes. "You didn't."

"I didn't do anything but walk out of the shower. I guess nobody told her she wasn't allowed in the male locker room. I wasn't expecting her or any female. I'm just trying to get ready for the meeting. At your feet is the list she brought. That's as close as she came."


CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Frank Collins math teacher

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Sandy Frost Rodney Frost's wife

Sam Auto repair shop owner

Bill Brooks Assistant football coach, Gabriel's friend, and Angie's husband.

Author Notes Thank you google images for the photo of a man wearing a towel. I also want to thank everybody for the helpful reviews. This novel is not actually about football, but is part of the background. High football is a national pastime in Texas. This post is a little over 1000 words. Thank you for having patience with me.


Chapter 29
Football Chapter 14 part 1

By barbara.wilkey

ENDING OF PREVIOUS POST:

As she stood inside, Gabriel walked in wearing a towel and using another one to dry his hair. "Kate, what are you doing in the male locker room?"

She turned around so her back was to him. "Looking for you."

"You found me."

She held up the paper. "I have the list of girls interested in cross country."

"Good. The meeting's in less than thirty minutes. Are you going to give it to me or hold it?"

"You're not dressed."

"I know. I thought I'd better shower before the meeting, and then you showed up." He chuckled. "I didn't think it was possible but even your arms are blushing."

She set the paper on the floor. "Here's the list." She ran out the door.

Mr. Edwards passed her in the hall. "Mrs. Riley, are you all right?"

"No!"

*****
He opened the door and walked in. "Gabe, what did you do to Mrs. Riley? She ran out of here like..." He closed his eyes. "You didn't."

"I didn't do anything but walk out of the shower. I guess nobody told her she wasn't allowed in the male locker room. I wasn't expecting her or any female. I'm just trying to get ready for the meeting. At your feet is the list she brought. That's as close as she came."


TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 14 part 1 day 13

Early Thursday morning, Gabriel waited in front of Katherine's house. After fifteen minutes, he petted Reggie's head. "She's not coming. I'm actually innocent this time. Let's go." He continued his run.

At school he waited in the office, hoping to talk with Katherine. When she didn't show, he checked her schedule, and saw her planning period started at two o'clock.

As Gabriel started to leave, Bill walked up. "Why you hanging around the office?"

"I was hoping to talk with Katherine."

"After what happened yesterday, it might be a while before that happens. She was pretty shaken."

"You heard about it?"

"She's friends with Angie and called last night. You really messed up this time." Bill scanned the area. "Maybe we should go someplace more private." After they went in Gabriel's classroom and locked the door, Bill continued, "She's not sure she can face you."

"I didn't do anything."

"Except walk out of the shower wearing a towel."

"Exactly. She was in the male locker room. I wasn't expecting anybody, especially her."

"She didn't know where your office was."

"Why's she upset? I'm the one who was compromised. She was married and had children with the man. She's the mother of four boys. She's seen half naked males before. It doesn't make sense. This is a 'have an embarrassing moment and then laugh it off.' It's no big deal."

Bill unlocked the door. "I've already said too much. You need to talk with Katherine."

"That's what I'm trying to do. I also need coffee."

Both men left the room.

As Gabriel passed Mr. Edwards in the hallway, he said, "I'm getting coffee."

"She's still not talking to you?"

"Nope." He left the building.

*****
As Katherine's fourth period pre-calculus class filed out, Gabriel entered. "Mrs. Riley, we need to talk."

Studying the top of her desk, she said, "I have nothing to say."

After locking the door, he walked to her desk. "I don't want somebody walking in and overhearing something that's none of their business." He set a paper on her desk. "Here's a map of the school. Highlighted in yellow is my office. Now, you know where it is. The male locker room is off-limits to females."

She fingered the map. "So you're saying this is my fault."

"Yes." He paused. "I had to go to the meeting and didn't think I should show-up all sweaty from practice. It was 105 degrees outside. I didn't have time to go home and shower. We have a perfectly good shower system in the locker room. How was I supposed to know you were going to walk in an entirely male area?"

Katherine still refused eye contact. "Because you knew I had to give you the number of girls who signed up. It would stand to reason I'd bring them to you. Any reasonable person would come to that conclusion."

"In the male locker room?"

She was silent for a few moments and then attempted to walk around him. "I need to be somewhere."

Gabriel moved in front of her. "You're not going anywhere until this is solved. We work together. We'll need to communicate." When her blue eyes met his, he continued, "I've come to enjoy our friendship." In almost a whisper, he asked, "Why'd this incident bother you so much?" When she didn't answer, he continued, "This is a 'we both get a little embarrassed and laugh it off situation'. I'm confused."

Katherine released a deep breath. "I'm not sure."

Gabriel hesitated. "When we're finished with the physicals, I'm coming by, we're going to talk." He leaned over and gave her a brief hug. "I care about you."

*****
That evening, Angie walked by Katherine's SUV in the parking lot and knocked on her window. "Are you getting out? I thought you were helping with the physicals."

"I am, but after it's over Gabriel wants to talk about yesterday."

"What are you going to say?"

"I have no idea. He has six pack abs. I can't tell him he's the sexiest man I've ever seen and how it made me feel. His ego's already too big."

"You'd better figure it out. He doesn't give up."

"I know."

As the ladies entered the gymnasium, Gabriel walked to them. He handed Angie a map. "Can you direct traffic like you did last year? Here's a list of areas the kids go for their physicals."

He bit his lower lip. "Kat..., Mrs. Riley, would you mind managing the girls' cross country table? You'll collect their signed physical permission slips and remind them practice starts after school Monday. The first meet is next Saturday morning starting at eight o'clock. You'll only have a week to practice. Sorry, about that. It's the best I could do on short notice."

"Gabriel, I mean Coach."

"We'll talk later." He walked away.

When the last student followed the line for physicals, Katherine arranged papers. I wonder what the best hill would be to practice running up and down. I'll have to ask around.

She noticed Gabriel talking with her mom and took a deep breath.
He's going to expect answers. I have none.

Jordan walked up. "Mom, how soon can you leave?"

She glanced around. "I think as soon as I give Coach these papers."

He took the papers. "Pack-up. I'll give them to him."

After Jordan handed Coach the stack of papers, Gabriel glance at Katherine and nodded.

*****
When Katherine and Jordan arrived home, she had the boys follow their nighttime routine. I wonder how much time I have before Gabriel shows up.

She answered her ringing phone. "Hi Angie. He's not here, yet." She listened. "I have no idea what I'm going to say." Again, she listened. "I'm positive the truth is out of the question. I'm not going to tell him that I find him incredibly attractive. His ego barely fits on the football field as it is." After listening, she said, "Just because I find him attractive doesn't mean I have feelings for him." She was silent. "There are headlights outside. Wish me luck."


CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Frank Collins math teacher

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Sandy Frost Rodney Frost's wife

Sam Auto repair shop owner

Bill Brooks Assistant football coach, Gabriel's friend, and Angie's husband.

Author Notes Thank you google images for the photo of a frustrated woman. I also want to thank everybody for the helpful reviews. This novel is not actually about football, but is part of the background. High football is a national pastime in Texas. This post is a little over 1000 words. Thank you for having patience with me.


Chapter 30
Football Chapter 14 part 2

By barbara.wilkey

ENDING OF PREVIOUS POST:

When Katherine and Jordan arrived home, she had the boys follow their nighttime routine. I wonder how much time I have before Gabriel shows up.

She answered her ringing phone. "Hi Angie. He's not here, yet." She listened. "I have no idea what I'm going to say." Again, she listened. "I'm positive the truth is out of the question. I'm not going to tell him that I find him incredibly attractive. His ego barely fits on the football field as it is." After listening, she said, "Just because I find him attractive doesn't mean I have feelings for him." She was silent. "There are headlights outside. Wish me luck."

TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 14 part 2

After Katherine answered the door, she knelt, greeted Reggie, and adjusted his bib. "Hi buddy, I didn't notice you in the gym. I'm sure you were there."

"He stayed in my office and slept." Gabriel hesitated. "Hello."

"Hello."

"Are you going to invite me in or are we having this discussion in the doorway?"

She moved aside. "Sorry, please come in." She pointed to a chair. "Have a seat. Can I get you anything? Maybe a drink?"

"I'm fine."

Katherine walked toward the kitchen. "I think I'll get some water." She returned with a pitcher, two glasses with ice, and sat a distance away. "In case you change your mind."

Gabriel stared at her. "Thank you." After a few silent moments, he asked, "Are the boys upstairs?"

"Jeremy and Joel are in bed. Jordan and Joshua are in their rooms. Daisy's in bed with Jeremy."

"I'm glad everybody's accounted for." Gabriel continued to study her. "Please explain why an incident where two adults should've had a slight embarrassment and then laughed at it has turned into a situation where you won't talk or even look at me? Help me understand."

"I told you I don't have an answer. That hasn't changed."

He reached for the pitcher, poured a glass of water, and handed it to her. "The drink you needed."

Katherine swallowed. "Thank you." She stood. "Maybe some..."

Gabriel got up and took her hand. "You don't need anything else." He motioned her to sit beside him. After she did, he continued, "You're a nervous wreck. Why?"

When she remained silent and tears threatened to spill from her eyes, he said, "Katherine, in Paul's office you said you knew I wouldn't do anything to hurt you, what has changed?"

"Nothing."

"Then why won't you trust me enough to talk to me?"

Katherine got up, walked to the fireplace, and touched a photograph of her family. "I got married at seventeen. I immediately got pregnant with Jordan. I was a mother before my eighteenth birthday. Before Jordan was two, Joshua was born, fifteen months later, Joel. Four years later Jeremy."

Gabriel stood beside her. "What are you saying?"

"By the time I was twenty-four, I had four young children."

"That had to be difficult, especially with the added stress of George being gone."

She wiped a tear rolling down her cheek. "Don't get me wrong. I love my boys and nothing could make me happier than to be their mother."

Gabriel turned her and put his arms around her. "I know. It's obvious watching you with them."

As she cuddled into his chest, the tears flowed. "I'm sorry. I don't know why...."

"Whatever you're trying to say is safe with me," interrupted Gabriel.

She nodded and then backed away. "George was not affectionate." She used both palms and wiped her cheeks. "The first time I was ever with a man was on my wedding night. That's when I got pregnant with Jordan."

Silence continued, until she released a deep breath. "I was married for sixteen years. You're not going to believe this, but I've only had sex five times. I've never really seen an adult male partly dressed." Before Gabriel could speak she added, "I've never been in an adult relationship and you're incredibly..."

"Don't say anymore. I get where you're going," he interrupted as he took her in his arms and held tightly. "Thank you for sharing. I'm sorry I pressed the issue."

Katherine remained in Gabriel's arms, until her confidence returned.

When she backed away, he asked, "You okay?"

She nodded. "I think so." She walked to the couch. "Let's sit." She took a long drink of water. "I bet when you asked you never expected all of this, did you?"

"Not in my wildest dreams." Gabriel cupped her hand as his eyes met hers. "Thank you for trusting me. I promise it's safe with me." He scooted closer and hugged her. "I was serious this afternoon when I said I care."

"I know."

From the top of the stairs, Joshua called, "Mom?" After both Gabriel and Katherine jumped up, he asked, "Is everything all right?"

"Of course. What do you need?" asked Katherine.

"The first football game's tomorrow. You're planning on going, aren't you?"

Gabriel teased, "I'm planning on her being there."

Katherine shook her head, "You're incorrigible." She laughed at his grin. "Yes, Mr. Edwards asked me to supervise section C. He said you guys could come and sit with me." She eyed Gabriel. "You had something to do with that, didn't you?"

"I figured you'd be there anyway, so why not put you to work." When she frowned, he stood. "I think I've worn out my welcome. Come Reggie, it's time to go."

Katherine walked him to the door. As he put his hand on the doorknob, he turned. "We good?"

"Yes. I'll see you early in the morning. Good night."

"Are you going to sleep all right?"

"Better than I did last night."

"Good."




CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Frank Collins math teacher

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Sandy Frost Rodney Frost's wife

Sam Auto repair shop owner

Bill Brooks Assistant football coach, Gabriel's friend, and Angie's husband.

Author Notes Thank you google images for the photo of a couple having a discussion. I also want to thank everybody for the helpful reviews. This novel is not actually about football, but is part of the background. High football is a national pastime in Texas. This post is a little over 800 words. Thank you for having patience with me.


Chapter 31
Football Chapter 15 part 1

By barbara.wilkey

ENDING OF PREVIOUS POST:

From the top of the stairs, Joshua called, "Mom?" After both Gabriel and Katherine jumped up, he asked, "Is everything all right?"

"Of course. What do you need?" asked Katherine.

"The first football game's tomorrow. You're planning on going, aren't you?"

Gabriel teased, "I'm planning on her being there."

Katherine shook her head, "You're incorrigible." She laughed at his grin. "Yes, Mr. Edwards asked me to supervise section C. He said you guys could come and sit with me." She eyed Gabriel. "You had something to do with that, didn't you?"

"I figured you'd be there anyway, so why not put you to work." When she frowned, he stood. "I think I've worn out my welcome. Come Reggie, it's time to go."

Katherine walked him to the door. As he put his hand on the doorknob, he turned. "We good?"

"Yes. I'll see you early in the morning. Good night."

"Are you going to sleep all right?"

"Better than I did last night."

"Good."

TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 15 part 1

Friday morning, Gabriel was early. I hope Kate show's up. I hope she's not worried about what she shared. He grinned and petted Reggie. "Good, here she comes." When Daisy ran out to meet Reggie, he petted her. "I see you're glad to see Reggie." He watched Katherine walk toward him. "Good morning."

Both heads turned as the dogs faced the same direction and growled.

"Good morning. I wonder when he's going to get bored following our jogging routine." As they jogged, Katherine asked, "Where's the best jogging hill?"

"I like the one off First Street. It's a nice steep hill and only about five blocks from school. Why?"

"I want my girls to jog it for conditioning."

Gabriel chuckled. "Ouch. You sure? My players run it. Are you sure you want girls to?"

"Are you saying my girls can't do it?"

Holding up both hands chest high, he said, "I'd never say that. What time are you looking at? I don't think it'd be a good idea to have them there the same time as my guys."

"True. You do homework from four to five o'clock, correct?" When he nodded, she continued, "Okay, we'll run the hill first. We'll be finished before your guys start. You're holding the guys until eight o'clock. That's a long time."

"I know. It's too hot with the pads. We do the major work after it cools down. That's why we finish homework before. The guys don't have to worry about it after practice."

"Ready for tonight's game?"

"We'll find out, but I think so."

They turned around as Katherine's timer went off. "I have another question. Are all our meets Saturday mornings?"

"I have the schedule in my office. I'll get it to you today. I was able to schedule all but one on Saturdays. It's a home meet and is on the Thursday before Homecoming. I thought it would be easier for you, well for Jeremy, to have them on Saturdays. There are seven in all. I'll have my secretary add it to the athletic site."

"You're probably right. It'd make for a long day for him. You have a secretary? Wow," she teased.

They stood in front of Katherine's house.

"I guess I'd better get back to school. I'll see you there."

"Okay." Katherine started up the sidewalk to her door. "Gabriel, one more thing. With fifteen girls, I was wondering if I could get some help."

He jogged down the sidewalk. "Already, taken care of. Angie will be your assistant."

"Thank you, for everything and I mean everything."

He turned and waved.

*****
When Gabriel stepped out of the school's main office with two coffees and a sack, Bill walked up to him. "I see you and Katherine have mended fences. Do you know why it bothered her so much?"

"We did, and I do. I won't talk about it." Gabriel started to walk away.

"That bad?"

He turned and faced his buddy. "Yep." He continued to his office.

*****
At exactly three o'clock, Mr. Edwards quieted the playing band and the students as he welcomed the students to the first pep rally. He then introduced Coach Hudson.

Gabriel walked up to the microphone. "Welcome to our 2020 -- 2021 school year. Most of you know me as the football coach, but I'm also the athletic director. I want to share everything Silver Cove High School has to offer for this fall semester. First, freshman, Junior/Varsity, and Varsity Football." He raised his hands above his head, clapped, and cheered. "But I'm not at all prejudiced. As you already know our first varsity game's tonight and we're hosting Stony Point. It's a non-conference game. In case you don't play football, we also offer tennis, volleyball, cross country, bowling, softball, baseball, basketball, wrestling, track, and golf. This year for the first time in three years we're offering girls cross country."

He winked at Katherine as he waited for the cheering to quiet. "In case you're not into sports, I want to remind you that at Silver Cove High School, we offer something for everybody from academics to the arts and more. There's band, vocal music, art club, chess club, FFA, FTA, school newspaper, year book, theater, math club, science club, computer lab, gaming club, and more. If you can't find something to do, then you're not looking very hard. Every student should be busy with something. If you're interested in something and you can't find it come see me, and we'll see about starting it."

Coach motioned for the other coaches to stand and then changed his mind. "Before I introduce my coaching staff, I want to introduce everybody who helps make this school great. Faculty, if you sponsor anything besides the course you were hired to teach, join me." He waited until three-fourths of the staff joined him. "I wanted to do this because I wanted the students to realize how much the teachers care. Like I said if you can't find some way to get involved, you're not looking very hard. We're a very busy school and it should be that way."

The band played while the staff members returned to their seats. Gabriel nodded. "Now, for the coaching staff. You can't have a winning team without winning coaches. So I'll introduce my help." Once he finished, the varsity football players came to the front and one-by-one announced the position they played. Afterward the band director, the band, and finally the cheerleading coach and the cheerleaders were named. He turned the pep rally over to them.

*****
As Katherine headed home, Gabriel caught up with her and handed her a T-shirt. "I didn't think you had a school T-shirt. You'll need to wear this tonight." He scratched his chin. "I didn't know the size. It's probably too big. I figured it was better than possibly being too small."

Katherine held it up and smiled. "It may be a little large, but you're right too tight wouldn't be good." She paused. "You don't let the boys leave the school before the games, do you?"

"No. I think its better they remain at school. There's no possibility of them getting into trouble. Matter-of-fact, I need to get back."

"Okay, what time should I be here?"

"Probably around six."

"I'll be there. Are jeans okay?"

"Of course. See you then." Gabriel walked away.





CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Frank Collins math teacher

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Sandy Frost Rodney Frost's wife

Sam Auto repair shop owner

Bill Brooks Assistant football coach, Gabriel's friend, and Angie's husband.

Author Notes Thank you google images for the photo of a high school pep rally. I also want to thank everybody for the helpful reviews. This novel is not actually about football, but is part of the background. High football is a national pastime in Texas. This post is a little over 1000 words. I removed and entire paragraph, so I hope something isn't lacking. Thank you for having patience with me.


Chapter 32
Football Chapter 15 part 2

By barbara.wilkey

ENDING OF PREVIOUS POST:

The band played while the staff members returned to their seats. Gabriel nodded. "Now, for the coaching staff. You can't have a winning team without winning coaches. So I'll introduce my help." Once he finished, the varsity football players came to the front and one-by-one announced the position they played. Afterward the band director, the band, and finally the cheerleading coach and the cheerleaders were named. He turned the pep rally over to them.

*****
As Katherine headed home, Gabriel caught up with her and handed her a T-shirt. "I didn't think you had a school T-shirt. You'll need to wear this tonight." He scratched his chin. "I didn't know the size. It's probably too big. I figured it was better than possibly being too small."

Katherine held it up and smiled. "It may be a little large, but you're right too tight wouldn't be good." She paused. "You don't let the boys leave the school before the games, do you?"

"No. I think its better they remain at school. There's no possibility of them getting into trouble. Matter-of-fact, I need to get back."

"Okay, what time should I be here?"

"Probably around six."

"I'll be there. Are jeans okay?"

"Of course. See you then." Gabriel walked away.

TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 15 part 2

A few minutes before six o'clock, Katherine and three of her boys arrived at the football stadium. She stood in the parking lot and stared.

Joshua touched her arm. "Mom, are you okay?"

"Yes, this field is named after your grandpa, Bob Beck Field. I never expected to attend a football game here, let alone working during one."

"Why? I don't understand."

"When I grew up, football ruled my life. I practically grew up on a football field. I swore I'd never have anything to do with football. Then you guys came along and all love football, so here I am."

"Don't forget Coach Hudson."

Why would Gabriel have anything to do with it? Katherine took Jeremy's hand. "Let's go."

She had the boys sit on the second row of section C. It wasn't long before the team ran out single file and started warming up.

Gabriel spotted her and nodded in her direction.

After she smiled back, she watched him walk to the other half of the field. Dad used to do that. He always wanted to check-out the opponent.

On the way to his team's sideline, Gabriel stopped in front of the stands where Katherine and the boys sat.

She leaned over the railing. "Can I help you?"

He grinned. "I thought I'd better warn you. I can get animated during the game."

"Oh really?" she teased. "I figured you did. I've heard rumors about your need to win."

His eyebrows rose. "Huh, I wonder how those started."

Jeremy tapped his mom's arm. "Is it time to eat? I'm hungry."

Katherine glanced at her watch. "I think so. Just give me a minute." Her eyes met Gabriel's. "I have a feeling they're more than rumors."

Gabriel grinned. "You could be right." He reached up and touched Jeremy's hand and then pointed to his right. "At the Quarterback Club's concession stand they have the best Frito Pie and your grandma works there. You might want to go, if your mom will let you. The one on this end is closer."

"Mom, can I go please. I'll take Joshua with me."

"But will you listen to and stay with him?"

"I will. I promise. Really I do."

"I guess, but if you mess up, you won't be going back. Do you understand?"

"Yes, yes."

"Okay. Just give me a minute." Her attention went back to Gabriel. "You started something. You know that, don't you?"

He nodded. "I know. How much trouble can he get into?"

"I'll let you know later." Katherine hesitated. "Good luck tonight."

He lifted his cap, ran his hand through his short hair, replaced the cap, and glanced toward the other team. "We got this." He noticed the coaches sent the team toward the locker room. "It's time for me to do my thing." Jogging, he followed the team.

*****
The opposing band played as the visiting team ran single file onto the football field. After they finished, Silver Cove High School's fight song began as the team rammed through a large football helmet with smoke blowing from it. Coach Hudson led the way.

Then Harold, the announcer said, "This is Texas High School Football, and in this state we sing The Star Spangled Banner loud and proud."

Harold still announces the games. I guess things don't change.
Katherine turned toward the boys and reminded them to set their food down and stand.

Jeremy shoved another bite of Frito Pie into his mouth. "Coach was right. This is really good."

She put her finger to her lips. "Shh."

After the band finished, Katherine walked back-and-forth in section C. Angie was at section B and walked to her. "Just wanted to let you know that Gabriel struggles controlling his temper during games."

Katherine nodded. "He warned me that he gets animated."

Angie laughed. "That's a polite way of saying it."

"I'm used to it. Dad used to get animated. If he had a bad game, I stayed in my room the following day."

"So you understand." She noticed a group of students standing in the aisle. "I'd better get back."

The time clock started at kick off.

Four minutes into the first quarter, Silver Cove scored and got the extra point. It was zero-to-seven.

At the end of the first quarter, the other team got a field goal. It was now three-to-seven.

Immediately at the beginning of the second quarter, the quarterback threw a pass to Jordan. He was tackled and a yellow flag thrown.

Katherine jumped up and put her fist in front of her mouth and jerked down, yelling, "Facemask!"

Bill tapped Gabriel and pointed. "She knows the game."

Gabriel laughed. "Why wouldn't she? Coach Beck was her dad. She could probably coach better than me." He huddled the team.

The last minute before half-time, the quarterback passed to Jordan again. This time he ran the ball in for a touchdown.

Katherine jumped up-and-down and cheered.

As the team huddled, Gabriel glanced at Katherine and grinned.

The boys took the field for the extra point. Gabriel nodded at the quarterback, who then called cadence. They went for a two-point conversion and made it.

Harold screamed. "Wow! And in the first game! Coach Hudson must be confident in these boys. What was he thinking? What other tricks does he have up his sleeve this year? It's going to be a fun year."

The fans in the stadium jumped up-and-down while they cheered.

The score at half-time was three-to-fifteen.

Katherine sighed. "What was he thinking?"

Joshua took a drink of his soda. "Mom, did you see that?"

"Maybe he wanted to try it before conference play starts."

The final score was nine-to-twenty-nine.






CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Frank Collins math teacher

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Sandy Frost Rodney Frost's wife

Sam Auto repair shop owner

Bill Brooks Assistant football coach, Gabriel's friend, and Angie's husband.

Harold Hudson Gabriel's dad and football announcer.

Author Notes Thank you google images for the photo of a football teams running onto the field before a game. I also want to thank everybody for the helpful reviews. This novel is not actually about football, but is part of the background. High football is a national pastime in Texas. This post is a little under a 1000 words. I removed and entire paragraph, so I hope something isn't lacking. Thank you for having patience with me.


Chapter 33
Football Chapter 16 part 1

By barbara.wilkey

ENDING OF PREVIOUS POST:

As the team huddled, Gabriel glanced at Katherine and grinned.

The boys took the field for the extra point. Gabriel nodded at the quarterback, who then called cadence. They went for a two-point conversion and made it.

Harold screamed. "Wow! And in the first game! Coach Hudson must be confident in these boys. What was he thinking? What other tricks does he have up his sleeve this year? It's going to be a fun year."

The fans in the stadium jumped up-and-down while they cheered.

The score at half-time was three-to-fifteen.

Katherine sighed. "What was he thinking?"

Joshua took a drink of his soda. "Mom, did you see that?"

"Maybe he wanted to try it before conference play starts."

The final score was nine-to-twenty-nine.

TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 16 part 1

As Katherine opened the front door and saw Gabriel and Reggie, she called, "I was wondering if you'd come by this morning."

Gabriel studied his feet. "Can I be honest?" When she nodded, he continued, "I couldn't find an excuse to come by this weekend."

Her cheeks tinged pink. "You don't need one. You're welcome anytime." She hesitated. "The boys missed you."

"I missed the boys."

Katherine set her watch. "I guess we'd better get started."

As they jogged, Gabriel asked, "You ready for your first cross country practice?"

"I think so. I'll find out for sure during practice. I thought we'd warm up with exercises and then run the hill. Warm up and cool down are important. I want to emphasize that. All I remember from my cross country days is running."

"That's pretty much what you do."

Katherine turned to face him. "I do have a question." She waited until he acknowledged her before she continued, "What were you thinking going for two during the first-half of the first game?"

Gabriel laughed. "I wanted to see how much about the game you understood."

"So it had nothing to do with showing off? It had to do with me." She hesitated. "So you were testing my knowledge?"

He grabbed his chest. "Now you hurt me to the core."

"Oh please." She shook her head. "I never thought you'd be into drama." Waiting a few seconds, she searched his eyes. "If it had to do with me, you would've had an excuse to come by this weekend."

"You're right. The truth is I wanted the other conference coaches to think about it, to put them on edge. I know they're talking about it. It was a bold move, but I have confidence in my team. They're a good bunch of kids."

Katherine's timer went off.

As they switched directions, Gabriel gulped. "I have a confession." After a pause, he continued, "I didn't come by because I was worried you'd be self-conscious about what we discussed the other night."

She stopped in her tracks. "I don't understand why, but for some reason I'm relieved I told you."

"I'm glad."

Silence continued until they arrived at her home.

Katherine started walking up the sidewalk to her front porch. "Any suggestions for your breakfast? I'm running out of ideas."

"Nope, you've made perfect choices so far. I like the surprise element." He started jogging toward the school. "You hear that, Reggie, she's glad she confided in me? She trusts me. That's a good thing."

*****
After school, Katherine changed into workout clothes and waited outside the girls' locker room.

Gabriel came up behind her and slightly tugged her pony tail. "I'm glad you got the right locker room," he teased.

She turned. "Ha, ha. You're just a barrel of laughs."

"I thought so." His eyes met hers. "Seriously, if anything at all comes up, text or call. Even if you just have a question. I mean it."

She nodded. "I will."

"You'd better."

Gabriel called to Reggie, "Come on, slow poke." He shook his head. "He's the epitome of lazy."

Out of his office meandered Reggie with a yawn and a stretch. He paused by Katherine to get petted.

She knelt and rubbed his large head. "He's precious."

"I'll go with my best bud, but not sure precious fits." Gabriel started to leave. "Catch up with you later." When she agreed, he continued, "So you don't have to make an extra trip back, I've got Jordan."

"Thank you. It's going to take a few days to make this schedule work. Mom has the younger boys. I think my timing will be good to pick up Joshua, at least I hope so. Then I'll start dinner." She smiled as the first three girls came out of the locker room. "I need to get busy. I don't have an extensive coaching staff."

"Where's Angie?"

"Still changing. She had a late student."

Four more giggling girls joined the group.

Gabriel called over his shoulder, "Have fun."

Katherine walked to the door of the locker room. "Come on! We're waiting. It doesn't take that long to change."

After all fifteen girls were ready; Katherine introduced herself and Angie, and then had each girl introduce herself. Angie took attendance.

Katherine started, "The two most important parts of cross country are the warm up and the cool downs. If you don't do them properly or rush them, you'll injure yourself. In a few minutes, we'll start. Our first meet is Saturday morning at eight o'clock. I'll want you here at seven."

Sandy raised her hand. "Mrs. Riley, didn't you run cross country?"

"I did. That brings me to my next point. Practices need to be so hard that the meet's easy. We'll run five kilometres each meet. They'll actually be fun. So let's go outside and begin our warm-up."

Judy asked, "How far is five kilometres?"

"Three point one miles."

When everyone stood on the grass, Katherine, continued, "Okay, from now on, we'll meet here at..." she glanced at her watch, "at three-forty-five. That gives you twenty minutes to get in here and get changed. If you can't make it on time and can't give me a good reason, then you can run extra laps. Understood?" The girls nodded. "Good. My hope is you get home in time to have dinner, complete homework, and get to bed on time. Maybe even have time for fun."

Katherine described the warm-up exercise as she modeled it. Angie followed her and they both watched and paused to help any girls who struggled.

After thirty minutes of warm up, they jogged toward the hill off First Street. When they arrived, the girls complained about how steep and long it was.

Katherine smiled. "I told you practice would be difficult. Yes, it's steep. We're going to run up and down it three times. Some of you won't make it, and that's okay. It's your first attempt. Do your best. That's all I ask. Mrs. Brooks and I'll run with you." She released a deep breath. "We may not make it, but that's okay."

Rhonda asked, "You're not going to sit and watch. You're actually going to run?"

"Why would we watch and let you have all the fun?" Katherine started up the hill. "Let's do this. I find it's easier if we follow the cadence of a song. One of my favorites is 'This is My Fight Song.' Sing along if you know it. We're going to fight this hill and win."

Katherine sang. Angie only knew the chorus but soon caught on to the rest. The girls quickly learned the chorus.

The first trip up the hill, Katherine and Angie made it, all but two girls made it without walking the last few feet. The second trip up, seven girls had to walk partway. The third trip, Katherine barely made it, Angie had to walk at the end and all but two girls had to walk.

As they jogged back to school, they met the football team. Gabriel jogged in place beside Katherine, and asked, "Well?"

Jogging in place, she said, "We did okay. I'm proud of the girls. All but two dropped out on the third try. Not bad."

He nodded. "Walk it out."

"I know. I'm not an amateur."

"Sorry. Occupational hazard. I've watched you jog."

*****
When Gabriel and Jordan arrived at the house, Katherine and the boys were setting the table. Jeremy ran up and hugged Gabriel's thighs. "I've missed you and Reggie so much. I'm glad you came. Are you eating dinner with us?"

Gabriel eyed Katherine. "I'd better go. I just wanted to say hi."

Katherine put her hand on the extra chair. "I think this chair and place setting has your name on it."

"Oh really?" His eyebrows rose.

"Really."

After dinner, Katherine and Gabriel cleaned the dishes, while Jeremy took his bath and the rest of the boys finished homework.

Folding a dishtowel, Katherine said, "I'm sorry about Jeremy. He really enjoys having you around."

"Don't worry about it. I enjoy being around."

"I'm glad you feel that way." She paused. "How many times do your boys run the hill?"

"Five, but that being said, the linemen never make it five." Gabriel laughed. "I'm not sure some of them make it three. I'm surprised you tried three times on the first attempt."

"Had no choice. Our first meet's Saturday. I don't want the girls to be embarrassed." Her eyes searched his brown eyes. "In case you're wondering. I made it three times. Angie almost did."

"I wasn't wondering. I knew you would. Angie runs with Bill every day. That's why I asked her to help. I knew she was a runner." He avoided her eyes. "To be honest the first time we met I noticed your form. I could tell you were a runner."

Before Katherine could comment, Jeremy called, "Mom, story time."

Gabriel nodded. "You'd better get to that story." He watched her walk up the stairs. As much as I enjoy being around her, I can't have dinner here every night. That P.I. is out there taking pictures. Until she works out her schedule, I'll have Bill bring Jordan home.




Thank you Rachel Platten for 'My Fight Song'. A friend and I used to actually jog to this back in my jogging days,










CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Frank Collins math teacher

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Sandy Frost Rodney Frost's wife

Sam Auto repair shop owner

Bill Brooks Assistant football coach, Gabriel's friend, and Angie's husband.

Harold Hudson Gabriel's dad and football announcer.

Author Notes Thank you google images for the photo of a running hill. I also want to thank everybody for the helpful reviews. This novel is not actually about football, but is part of the background. High football is a national pastime in Texas. This post is a little under a 1600 words. Sorry about the length. The place I felt I could break it up caused too short of a post. Thank you for having patience with me.


Chapter 34
Football Chapter 17 part 1

By barbara.wilkey

ENDING OF PREVIOUS POST:


After dinner, Katherine and Gabriel cleaned the dishes, while Jeremy took his bath and the rest of the boys finished homework.

Folding a dishtowel, Katherine said, "I'm sorry about Jeremy. He really enjoys having you around."

"Don't worry about it. I enjoy being around."

"I'm glad you feel that way." She paused. "How many times do your boys run the hill?"

"Five, but that being said, the linemen never make it five." Gabriel laughed. "I'm not sure some of them make it three. I'm surprised you tried three times on the first attempt."

"Had no choice. Our first meet's Saturday. I don't want the girls to be embarrassed." Her eyes searched his brown eyes. "In case you're wondering. I made it three times. Angie almost did."

"I wasn't wondering. I knew you would. Angie runs with Bill every day. That's why I asked her to help. I knew she was a runner." He avoided her eyes. "To be honest the first time we met I noticed your form. I could tell you were a runner."

Before Katherine could comment, Jeremy called, "Mom, story time."

Gabriel nodded. "You'd better get to that story." He watched her walk up the stairs. As much as I enjoy being around her, I can't have dinner here every night. That P.I. is out there taking pictures. Until she works out her schedule, I'll have Bill bring Jordan home.

TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 17 part 1


Katherine peeked out the window. When she didn't see Gabriel, she did her stretches inside. It's already Wednesday. Every day's pretty much the same. I jog, teach math, coach cross country, come home feed the kids, go to bed and start all over the following day. I think I need to get a life. The only thing that changed is Bill brought Jordan home last night, instead of Gabriel. What's wrong with me? I missed him. That can't happen.

When she opened the door, Gabriel and Reggie still weren't waiting. I wonder if something's wrong. I'll wait a few more minutes. If he doesn't show, we'll start. She petted Daisy's head.

As she did one last stretch, she noticed a figure turn the corner and smiled. "I started to worry."

"You were actually concerned?"

He got closer, and she asked, "Are you okay? What's wrong?"

"I'm fine. I didn't sleep very well last night."

"Anything wrong?"

"Want to run or want to talk?" Gabriel motioned toward her watch. "Set the timer. Maybe a good run will help."

Katherine set the timer. "Okay." She chewed on her lower lip. "It seemed strange Bill bringing Jordan home."

Gabriel stopped. "That's sort of what kept me up last night. It bothered me that I didn't come by." He faced her. "The reason I didn't;" he released a deep breath, "I was afraid if I kept coming around it'd look bad. I never want to do anything that would reflect poorly on you." Katherine started to speak, but he held up his hand. "Let me finish." He hesitated. "Then I got angry for allowing Frost to dictate my actions."

"Thank you for being concerned. First, you only come by during normal hours. You never stay past nine or the latest nine-thirty. During this time we are out in public. Everybody can see what we're doing, we're jogging. We've never done anything that could be considered even slightly immoral."

"I know, but with my past I worried."

"Please stop. One question, do you feel we've done anything wrong or should be ashamed of?" She paused. "I don't."

"You're right. Thank you for putting things into perspective."

The timer went off. "Glad I could help."

As they turned around, Gabriel said, "Your race's Saturday morning. Are you going to run the hill all week?"

"You're questioning my coaching skills." He started to respond, but she continued, "I know what I'm doing. The short answer to your question is no. Do you want the long answer?" When he nodded, she added, "Since today is Wednesday, I thought we'd run up the hill one and a half times, and then come back. At the school, maybe run some knee highs and butt kicks. Then slowly jog the track. You don't use the track, do you?"

"No. What do you have planned for Thursday?"

"We'll go once up the hill and then maybe skipping and controlled sprints. Again, slowly jog the track. I'm thinking bringing them together Friday just to stretch after school. Nothing else."

"Sounds good."

"So you approve of my coaching skills?"

Gabriel chuckled. "I'll reserve my opinion until after Saturday's meet." He glanced toward her house. "We're back. Thank you for putting things in perspective."

"No problem. Glad I could help. If you stopped coming by, the boys would miss you." Katherine walked up the sidewalk to her house and said under her breath, "And so would I."

"I heard that."

"You must be hearing things. I didn't say anything." She ran up the steps and into the house.

"I'd miss you too." He turned. "Come on, Reggie. We need to get back to school."


HAPPY MOTHER'S DAY TO ALL THE MOMS OUT THERE!!!


CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Frank Collins math teacher

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Sandy Frost Rodney Frost's wife

Sam Auto repair shop owner

Bill Brooks Assistant football coach, Gabriel's friend, and Angie's husband.

Harold Hudson Gabriel's dad and football announcer.

Author Notes Thank you google images for the photo of a couple jogging. I also want to thank everybody for the helpful reviews. This novel is not actually about football, but is part of the background. High football is a national pastime in Texas. This post is a little over a 600 words. Thank you for having patience with me.


Chapter 35
Football Chapter 17 part 2

By barbara.wilkey

ENDING OF PREVIOUS POST:

Gabriel chuckled. "I'll reserve my opinion until after Saturday's meet." He glanced toward her house. "We're back. Thank you for putting things in perspective."

"No problem. Glad I could help. If you stopped coming by, the boys would miss you." Katherine walked up the sidewalk to her house and said under her breath, "And so would I."

"I heard that."

"You must be hearing things. I didn't say anything." She ran up the steps and into the house.

"I'd miss you too." He turned. "Come on, Reggie. We need to get back to school."

TODAY'S POST: Gabriel and Katherine only met 19 days ago.

Chapter 17 part 2


As Katherine waited outside for the girls, Gabriel came over and asked, "How's your day?"

"It's been good, but I'm pretty sure you didn't come by to see how my day was."

"Maybe I just wanted to say hi, is that a crime?"

"Only in forty-five states," teased Katherine.

Gabriel grinned. "I'm pretty sure Texas is one of the five it's not."

They watched the girls walk out in groups of three or four.

Katherine tapped her watch. "Two more minutes or a few will be running extra laps."

Grinning, Gabriel walked away. "Slave driver."

"Aren't you the one who said a winning team is a well-disciplined team?"

Chuckling, he walked away and added, "Lies, all lies."

*****
After the girls finished practice and were showering and changing, Sandy asked, "Coach Riley, can I speak to you?"

"Of course, come over here with me."

"I thought it was strange that Rhonda was wearing long sleeves in a hundred degree weather. While she was showering, I noticed bruises all over her arms and legs."

Katherine closed her eyes. When she opened them she said, "Thank you. I'll handle it." She texted Gabriel. Something has come up. I need you ASAP in your office.

As they waited for the girls to finish dressing and for their parents, Katherine asked, "Angie, can you wait for the parents? I need to speak to Rhonda. Have her parents meet me in Gabriel's office."

When Rhonda was ready to leave, Katherine guided her to the office. Rhonda questioned, "Why we in Coach's office? I haven't done anything wrong."

Katherine motioned her to a chair. "I know you haven't, please have a seat. I'm wondering why you're wearing long sleeves when it's stifling hot."

Rhonda avoided eye contact and folded her arms across her chest. "I'm cold."

"Okay."

Katherine glanced up when Angie escorted Rhonda's parents inside and said, "Coach Riley, Mr. and Mrs. Morgan. I'm needed outside."

Motioning to chairs, Katherine said, "Please have a seat. We're waiting for Coach Hudson."

Mr. Morgan asked, "Why we here? Has Rhonda done something?"

"No, she hasn't. I'm concerned about something." Katherine checked the hall. "While we're waiting, I'll start." Her eyes met Rhonda's. "Please raise your sleeves."

Rhonda put her right hand on her left wrist and shook her head.

Leaning forward, Mr. Morgan asked, "Why you want her to do that? Are you checking for needle marks? She's not a druggy."

"I know." Katherine hesitated. "Rhonda has numerous bruises on her arms and legs."

Mr. Morgan jumped up. "I've never laid hand on her." He glanced at his wife. "Neither has her mom."

"Coach Riley isn't blaming you of anything." Gabriel walked in and offered his hand. "Hello, I'm Coach Hudson, the Athletic Director." He nodded to Katherine. "Please have a seat, and we'll continue."

After Mr. Morgan sat, Katherine continued, "Sir, I'm not accusing you of abusing your daughter. All I'm doing is stating a fact that Rhonda's covered with bruises. As a parent myself, I'd want to know. I'm sure you'd like to know what caused them."

Mrs. Morgan stared at her daughter. "Rhonda, raise your sleeves."

Tears rolled down Rhonda's cheeks, and she shook her head. "Mom, please, no." Both parents stared at her, as she slowly shoved up her sleeves, revealing both arms covered with bruises.

Katherine swallowed. "We won't ask you to remove your slacks." She glanced at each parent. "When you get home, you'll probably want to check her legs. They're bruised too."

Gabriel set his jaw. "What happened?"

Katherine knelt before the crying girl and cupped both her hands. "We want to help." She hesitated. "I want to help. I can't help unless you tell me what happened. We all want to help."

She reached up and hugged the crying child. Rhonda slid from her.

Drawing her closer into an embrace, Katherine almost whispered, "We can't help unless you talk. Nobody has a right to hurt you."

Mr. and Mrs. Morgan held hands as tears fell freely down their cheeks. Mrs. Morgan pleaded, "Please tell us what happened. Who did this?"

Rhonda whispered, "Kenny."

Katherine faced the parents. "Who's that?"

Mr. Morgan clutched his fists. "Her boy friend."

Gabriel moved closer. "Kenny Clark?" After both parents nodded, he continued, "I know him. I'll handle it." He answered Katherine's wide eyes. "I got this."

Mr. Morgan stood. "Thank you. Rhonda, we need to go home and have a serious talk."

Mrs. Morgan reached for her husband's hand. "Walter, calm down."

"Don't tell me to calm down when this scumbag's been abusing my daughter."

Gabriel's eyes met Mr. Morgan. "I said I'll handle it. He won't go near your daughter again. It's my promise to you. Now take your daughter home and tend to her bruises."

As Gabriel and Katherine watched the Morgans leave, Katherine answered her phone. "Thank you, Mom." When Gabriel turned toward her, she said, "When I wasn't at the school, Joshua figured I got held up and called Mom." After releasing a big sigh, she continued, "I can't take care of everything. There's not enough of me."

"That's why you have your mom and me. We'll pick up the slack."

She touched his arm. "Thank you. I really do appreciate it."

He turned toward the door. "You need to get home. I'll bring Jordan home. I'll have a talk with Paul and bring him up to date and then speak with Kenny. That boy needs some attitude adjustment."

"Be careful. I don't want to visit you in prison."

He chuckled. "You'd actually visit me in jail?"

She turned to leave. "I'm needed at home."

*****
When Katherine walked into the dining room, she stopped and her eyes opened wide. "You're here? I didn't hear the door."

Jordan tilted his head. "Mom, where did you expect me to be?"

Gabriel chuckled. "She didn't expect me. She thought I'd be in jail."

Turning toward Gabriel, Jordan asked, "Coach?"

Katherine frowned. "It's a private joke. Don't worry about it. Your brothers are upstairs finishing homework, please get them." When she was sure Jordan was out of hearing range, she asked, "Did Kenny admit it?"

"Naw, and after meeting his parents, I have a feeling he's re-enacting what he's been watching since he was born. Paul is taking it up the channels."

"That's the problem with abuse. It's often learned behavior and flows from generation to generation."

"Monday Kenny starts on the football team. Since he likes to hurt people..." He quieted as the boys came downstairs and then headed toward the front door.

Walking up to Gabriel, Katherine asked, "Where are you and Reggie going? Aren't you staying for dinner?"

He grinned. "I wasn't invited."

She took hold of his wrist and guided him toward the table. "Come on. You have your own seat at our table. You have a permanent invitation. Reggie has his own bowl right next to Daisy's. He's already wearing his bib."

His eyes twinkled as they met hers. "You know this could be misinterpreted, don't you?"

*****
After dinner, Gabriel said, "Jeremy, take your bath, after you're done let your mom know so she can read your story. You other three help me with the dishes. Katherine, sit and prop up your feet."

Katherine's eyebrows rose. "You're awfully bossy, aren't you?"

Gabriel chuckled. "Since I have a permanent seat at the table, I figured I could." He took her hand and led her to the couch. "Have a seat. Seriously, I got this. You need a break. Let me do it for you."

After the younger boys were in bed and the older ones were upstairs, Gabriel and Katherine sat on the couch and she asked, "How did you convince Kenny to join the football team?"

"I told him it was either that or I'd call the police. Since it's against the law to assault anyone, and that includes girlfriends."

"How's that going to stop him?"

"I don't only coach football. I try to teach boys to grow up to be respectable young men. When it gets closer to Homecoming we'll discuss how to treat these young ladies." He hesitated. "Thank you for what you did for Rhonda. You handled it really well, good job."

"I honestly didn't know what to do. I just knew I needed to do something and it sort of fell into place."

"You have good instincts."

"Thank you for showing up when you did. Mr. Morgan was getting upset. Your presence calmed him."

Gabriel patted her hand. "I need to leave."

Katherine walked him to the door. "Good night."

"See you in the morning."

She shut and locked the door. "He's a great guy, but..."



CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Frank Collins math teacher

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Sandy Frost Rodney Frost's wife

Sam Auto repair shop owner

Bill Brooks Assistant football coach, Gabriel's friend, and Angie's husband.

Harold Hudson Gabriel's dad and football announcer.

Sandy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Rhonda Morgan Teenage girl on cross country team, and victim of
dating violence.

Mr. and Mrs. Morgan Rhonda's parents.

Kenny Clark Teenager - Rhonda's boyfriend and abuser.

Author Notes Thank you google images for the photo of a teenage dating violence. It's very real and not discussed nearly enough. I also want to thank everybody for the helpful reviews. This novel is not actually about football, but is part of the background. High football is a national pastime in Texas. This post is a little under 1500 words. Sorry about the length. Thank you for having patience with me.


Chapter 36
Football Chapter 18 part 1

By barbara.wilkey

ENDING OF PREVIOUS POST:

After the younger boys were in bed and the older ones were upstairs, Gabriel and Katherine sat on the couch and she asked, "How did you convince Kenny to join the football team?"

"I told him it was either that or I'd call the police. Since it's against the law to assault anyone, and that includes girlfriends."

"How's that going to stop him?"

"I don't only coach football. I try to teach boys to grow up to be respectable young men. When it gets closer to Homecoming we'll discuss how to treat these young ladies." He hesitated. "Thank you for what you did for Rhonda. You handled it really well, good job."

"I honestly didn't know what to do. I just knew I needed to do something and it sort of fell into place."

"You have good instincts."

"Thank you for showing up when you did. Mr. Morgan was getting upset. Your presence calmed him."

Gabriel patted her hand. "I need to leave."

Katherine walked him to the door. "Good night."

"See you in the morning."

She shut and locked the door. "He's a great guy, but..."



TODAY'S POST: Gabriel and Katherine met 20 days ago.

Chapter 18 part 1

Thursday afternoon as Katherine waited for the girls to make it outside for cross country practice, Gabriel walked up.

Katherine smiled. "If we keep meeting like this, people are going to talk."

"I think they already are," teased Gabriel. He surveyed the area. "I wanted to see how you were doing, but I also wanted to check on Rhonda. Have you seen her?"

"Briefly in the hallway, but wasn't able to talk with her."

He nodded as Rhonda walked out by herself.

Rhonda glanced in his direction and then studied her feet.

"Miss Morgan, would you please come here a minute?" asked Gabriel.

She stood in front of him. "Yes, Coach."

"I was wondering how you're doing."

"As good as I can be. I no longer have a boyfriend, and his friends are accusing me of being a lying snitch."

Katherine touched her arm. "You did nothing wrong."

Gabriel knelt to her level. "Coach Riley's correct. You did nothing wrong. Trust me to work on this. Kenny will stop his harassment. My goal's to have him apologize but I can't have him do that until he knows how wrong he is. Can you give me time to work this out?"

"Yes, Sir."

He patted her arm. "Thank you. I won't let you down." He stood and nodded toward Katherine. "I need to get to my team."

"Thank you, Ga...Coach."

*****
As Jordan and Gabriel walked into the house, Jordan yelled, "Mom, we're here."

Katherine came from the kitchen drying her hands on a dish towel. "I'm running a little behind. I hope you can wait about twenty minutes for dinner."

Gabriel asked from across the room, "Late parent?" After she nodded, he asked, "How can I help?"

"Really there's nothing to do but wait. I've set the table and cleaned the kitchen."

Joshua came down the stairs. "Coach, Jordan just told me the D-linemen carried the freshmen lockers outside and left them while the freshmen were in the shower. Is that true?"

Frowning he said, "They did."

"Wow!" Joshua laughed. "I can't believe it. That's pretty bold." He paused. "Wait, I'll be a freshman next year. Did they have to go outside naked to get their clothes?"

Jordan attempted not to laugh. "They tried to cover themselves with towels."

Katherine stepped from the kitchen and glared at Gabriel. "Exactly who was in a towel?"

"Mom, what's wrong?" Jordan and Joshua said at the same time.

Gabriel touched her arm. "My D-linemen thought they'd prank the freshmen and carried their lockers to the parking lot while they were showering."

After Katherine exhaled, she said, "Sounds like there's a problem with that locker room."

Gabriel grinned. "You may be right."

Joshua shook his head. "D-linemen are known for being big and strong, but not the smartest guys around. Did somebody tell them to do it? I'm sure they couldn't think of it by themselves."

Attempting to hide her grin, Katherine said, "Gabriel, please share with my opinionated son, what position you played."

Gabriel cleared his throat. "D-line."

Jordan laughed and slapped his brother's back. "Man, are you ever busted."

Flexing his right arm, Gabriel said, "You're right about the muscles and a little right about the being smart. It's not that we're dumb, but sometimes we forget to think things through."

"When you played high school football, did you carry the lockers outside?" asked Jordan.

He nodded. "I did, and my coach, your grandpa, had us doing up-downs forever."

Jordan grinned. "Is that why you had them do the same thing?"

"It worked. I never did it again. Hopefully, they'll learn the same lesson."

Joshua laughed. "I sure wish Grandpa was alive so I could ask questions about you."

"As much as I miss Coach, I'm glad you can't hear the stories. Let's say as a teenager I did some stupid things. I've learned from my mistakes."

"I wonder if he shared them with Grandma?" asked Joshua.

Jordan shook his head. "Grandma really likes Coach. I doubt it."

"Or maybe your grandma understands that young males are capable of maturing."

All heads turned as Jeremy ran down the stairs, waved a piece of paper and yelled, "Coach, Coach, Coach!"

Gabriel got on one knee to his level. "What's wrong"?"

Jeremy climbed up on the knee and sat. "Here!" He shoved the paper in his face. "I don't have a Dad, and next Tuesday is 'Dads have lunch at school day.' Will you come and be my dad?"

Lowering the paper so he could see it better, Gabriel said, "I'd like that."

Katherine walked over. "You don't need to do that. Jeremy, Coach has a job. He'll be at school."

Setting Jeremy on the floor, Gabriel stood. "It's okay. I want to do this with him."

The timer when off, and Katherine went into the kitchen. "Dinner."

As the others went to the table, Gabriel went outside. "Just a minute."

When he returned, he carried a fifty pound bag of dog food over his shoulder. "This should last these two a few days."

Katherine sighed. "You didn't need to do that."

"I did. This guy eats here more than he eats at home. I know how high his food bill is."

During dinner, Joshua continued asking questions about Coach's antics as a teenager.

After releasing a deep breath, Katherine said, "Joshua, I think there's been enough said. Nobody's perfect. We all make mistakes. I don't see a need to continue this."

"But..."

"Joshua, your mom said enough," interrupted Gabriel. "I have a feeling you've made at least one mistake in your life, right?"

"Yes, Sir." He studied his plate.

"Is there something I need to know?" asked Katherine.

Gabriel eyed Joshua. "I don't think so, do you?"

"No, Sir, I'm pretty sure there's nothing that needs to be shared with Mom."

Winking at Katherine, Gabriel said, "As far as I know, everything's good." He took a bite of casserole. "This is really good. When do you grocery shop?"

"Usually Saturday mornings, but I'm not sure now that there are cross country races. Maybe I'll need to move it to Sundays but I hate doing it then. We need to find a church home." Katherine hesitated. "I don't see any other choice. Maybe I'll move it temporarily. Cross country ends in November, right?"

"District is the last Saturday in October. You planning on going to state?"

Katherine laughed. "Plan big or go home, right?"

Jordan teased, "Mom has a competitive side I didn't know about. Go Mom!"

Gabriel's eyes twinkled. "You boys might be surprised at what your mom's capable of."

Laying her fork on her plate, Katherine glanced at Jeremy.

With a pout, he said, "I know its bath time. Why do my brothers get to stay up late?"

"Because you're the youngest," teased his brothers.

"Call me when it's story time, okay?"

"Yes, Mom."

Putting both hands on the table, Katherine stood. "I'd better get these dishes done."

"Get!" teased Gabriel. "The boys and I got this."

"You guys did them last night. It's not fair you do them two nights in a row."

"Is it fair that you cook, we enjoy the meal, and don't help in any way?"

"It doesn't seem right, you're a guest."

"I think since I'm here almost every night I'm past the guest status. Now sit on the couch and rest."

When the dishes were finished and the kitchen cleaned, Gabriel walked into the living room. "You look comfortable."

"Thank you. I am. After dinner is the only quiet time I get."

"Then maybe, I shouldn't come by."

Katherine swallowed hard and studied her hands. "You being here helps. It's nice to sit and talk with an adult."

"Thank you for saying that. I enjoy visiting with you." He walked toward the door and put his hand on the door knob. "I need to leave."

"Probably, but do you have time to sit and talk for a few minutes?"

He nodded. "I do. Are we visiting about anything important or just visiting?" He paused. "Is it all right if I go grocery shopping with you? I feel I should pull my weight. I need to at least pay half."

"Half? Are you forgetting the four boys? If anything, your part would be one sixth. Hardly worth paying for."

"You shop, put away, cook, and clean up."

"You've cleaned up two nights in a row."

"But you had the kitchen already cleaned except for the plates and silverware. Let me do this."

"Do I have a choice?"

Gabriel shook his head and took her hand. "Not really. I want to."

"Figured as much. You're used to getting your own way, aren't you?"

"I've already told you, it's a side effect of being an only child."

"I'm changing the subject. I don't understand why the D-linemen would do that to the freshmen."

"Because they could and they're teenage boys." Gabriel's eyes met hers. "I've been trying to get those lockers anchored to the floor for years. There's never enough money. I've offered to pay to have it done, but my offer has been turned down. I walked into the locker room and heard a commotion. I knew exactly what had happened. It happens every year."

Katherine titled her head. "While in high school, what's the worst you ever did?"

"Painted the playing field of our opposing team our team colors before their homecoming game." He grinned. "It was fun but we almost got a lawsuit thrown at us. Finally they decided the grass would grow out. I guess its amazing boys ever make it to adulthood." He patted her hand. "What's the craziest thing you ever did?"

After thinking for a moment, Katherine said, "I didn't really do anything crazy. If you consider who my dad was, you'd understand. I didn't realize until years later that his bark was worse than his bite. I guess marrying George one week after graduation was the worst thing I ever did." She studied his hand holding hers. "I guess that's worse than anything you ever did, isn't it?"

"Depends how you look at it. At least you have the boys."

"That's true, and I love my boys."

They sat in silence for a few moments. Finally Gabriel said, "You're a great woman and mother." He cupped her face with both hands. "I know it's none of my business but I hate the way George treated you. I feel because of that you have a low self-esteem. You don't realize how wonderful you are." He leaned over and started to kiss her, but gulped and kissed her cheek. "I need to leave. Good night."






CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Frank Collins math teacher

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Sandy Frost Rodney Frost's wife

Sam Auto repair shop owner

Bill Brooks Assistant football coach, Gabriel's friend, and Angie's husband.

Harold Hudson Gabriel's dad and football announcer.

Sandy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Rhonda Morgan Teenage girl on cross country team, and victim of
dating violence.

Mr. and Mrs. Morgan Rhonda's parents.

Kenny Clark Teenager - Rhonda's boyfriend and abuser.

Author Notes Thank you google images for the photo of teenage males in towels. Taking the freshman lockers outside during showering is a real thing. I also want to thank everybody for the helpful reviews. This novel is not actually about football, but is part of the background. High football is a national pastime in Texas. This post is a little under 1800 words. I hope you don't mind the length Thank you for having patience with me.


Chapter 37
Football Chapter 19 part 1

By barbara.wilkey

ENDING OF PREVIOUS POST:

Katherine titled her head. "While in high school, what's the worst you ever did?"

"Painted the playing field of our opposing team our team colors before their homecoming game." He grinned. "It was fun but we almost got a lawsuit thrown at us. Finally they decided the grass would grow out. I guess its amazing boys ever make it to adulthood." He patted her hand. "What's the craziest thing you ever did?"

After thinking for a moment, Katherine said, "I didn't really do anything crazy. If you consider who my dad was, you'd understand. I didn't realize until years later that his bark was worse than his bite. I guess marrying George one week after graduation was the worst thing I ever did." She studied his hand holding hers. "I guess that's worse than anything you ever did, isn't it?"

"Depends how you look at it. At least you have the boys."

"That's true, and I love my boys."

They sat in silence for a few moments. Finally Gabriel said, "You're a great woman and mother." He cupped her face with both hands. "I know it's none of my business but I hate the way George treated you. I feel because of that you have a low self-esteem. You don't realize how wonderful you are." He leaned over and started to kiss her, but gulped and kissed her cheek. "I need to leave. Good night."

TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 19 part 1


Friday morning when Katherine opened the door, she saw Gabriel and Reggie waiting. Daisy ran up and sniffed Reggie.

Katherine caught up and petted her Labrador. "I think she really likes Reggie."

"I'm positive Reggie thinks Daisy's his girlfriend. I have a feeling he'd get very possessive if another male got close." He watched Katherine set her timer. "Ready?"

After she nodded, they turned their heads as the dogs growled at the clicking of the camera, and then began jogging. A few minutes passed before Katherine said, "You're suspiciously silent. Is something wrong?"

"If I was assured you'd be safe jogging, I wouldn't have showed up." He answered her questioning look. "I almost kissed you last night."

"I know, but you didn't."

"True. It bothers me how close I came. I don't want to do something stupid and mess up what we have. I'm way too comfortable around you."

Katherine stopped and touched his arm. "I feel the same. What do you suggest we do? We've almost set up housekeeping."

"Maybe we shouldn't spend so much time together." He thought for a moment. "I'll still jog with you. It's not safe. And I'll bring Jordan home, but I'll drop him off at the door and not come in."

Katherine swallowed hard. "Is that what you want?"

"No. I want to be with you."

Her timer went off and they turned around.

Gabriel came to a complete stop. "We're adults. What if we see where this relationship takes us, but take it slow?"

"Really slow."

"Yes. We both have baggage to work through. I'd hug you right now but I'm sure our P.I. would love to show Frost that picture. Are you okay with this?" Katherine nodded, and Gabriel added, "You look scared."

"I am."

They were at the sidewalk in front of Katherine's house, and as she started toward the house he asked, "Did my close kiss scare you?"

She shook her head. "No. It's admitting that we're in a relationship and knowing there's a P.I. out there watching and waiting for us to mess up."

"We'll talk later." Gabriel paused. "I'm not sure when. Our next few days are packed." He watched Katherine jog to her door. "Reggie, I'm falling in love with her. Any advice?"

*****
Friday afternoon, Gabriel stood in front of the full gymnasium waiting for the last students to get seated. He glanced at his watch. "Ladies and Gentlemen, we need to get this pep-rally started. I know you can't wait to watch tonight's win over Midway."

He waited for the cheering to stop, before he continued, "I knew it, but before we start the actual pep-rally, I want to remind you that we have other sports happening and you need to support them as much as you do football. Those athletes work hard too."

He invited the other coaches to come up and state the dates, times, and places for their competitions.

Gabriel's eyes met Katherine's. "Coach Riley, you didn't come forward. Silver Cove High School Bears, tomorrow for the first time in three years we'll host a girls cross country meet. It's against also Midway. I happen to know these girls have worked hard. They're even running the First Street hill. I understand they've fought that hill and won."

The football players started joking about how the girls couldn't really run that hill.

Mr. Edward's walked up and studied the players. "What? You don't think girls can run?" He turned toward Gabriel. "You thinking what I'm thinking?"

"I think so. Coach Riley, how about a friendly competition between my team and yours? Tuesday during practice, we'll have a race. Your girls against my boys up and down that hill."

Katherine walked up and took the microphone. "Coach Hudson, are you implying my girls can't compete with your boys?

"I didn't say that. My boys did."

"We've only run that hill four times and your team has run it for what, years?"

"That's probably a fair statement."

"How's that fair?" She paused in thought. "Okay girls, listen up. I say we run the hill twice, and only linemen are allowed in this race." She faced him. "I didn't say linebackers, I said honest-to-goodness linemen." She turned to her team and raised her arm. "Girls, what do you say, should we accept the challenge?"

The girls broke out into their fight song. As they started the second verse, the band joined in.

Katherine nodded. "Coach Hudson, I'd say the challenge is a go." She grinned. "And since your team challenged us, if they lose they'll need to come up here during the next pep-rally and entertain us with a dance. Get ready, they'll lose."

Mr. Edwards shook his head. "Bears, you heard it right here. Stay tuned Wednesday morning during announcements to see who won this challenge." He glanced at Gabriel. "How we going to score it? You could probably do a percentage."

Gabriel chuckled. "I can't. I'm a coach/history teacher. That would be Coach Riley's department."

"Don't worry about it. I already have it figured out."

Both Mr. Edwards and Gabriel nodded.

The cheerleaders came forward and the pep-rally continued.


CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Frank Collins math teacher

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Sandy Frost Rodney Frost's wife

Sam Auto repair shop owner

Bill Brooks Assistant football coach, Gabriel's friend, and Angie's husband.

Harold Hudson Gabriel's dad and football announcer.

Sandy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Rhonda Morgan Teenage girl on cross country team, and victim of dating violence.

Mr. and Mrs. Morgan Rhonda's parents.

Kenny Clark Teenager - Rhonda's boyfriend

Author Notes Thank you google images for the photo of a high school pep rally. I also want to thank everybody for the helpful reviews. This novel is not actually about football, but is part of the background. High football is a national pastime in Texas. This post is a little under 900 words. Thank you for having patience with me. Friday was my last day of work. I am now officially retired. I am hoping to devote more time to my writing. Maybe I won't make as many mistakes. LOL


Chapter 38
Football Chapter 19 part 2

By barbara.wilkey

ENDING OF PREVIOUS POST:

Mr. Edwards shook his head. "Bears, you heard it right here. Stay tuned Wednesday morning during announcements to see who won this challenge." He glanced at Gabriel. "How we going to score it? You could probably do a percentage."

Gabriel chuckled. "I can't. I'm a coach/history teacher. That would be Coach Riley's department."

"Don't worry about it. I already have it figured out."

Both Mr. Edwards and Gabriel nodded.

The cheerleaders came forward and the pep-rally continued.

TODAY'S POST: Katherine and Gabriel have known each other for 21 days.

Chapter 19 part 2


Katherine waited outside for her cross country team to join her when Gabriel walked up. "I thought you'd be busy with your team."

"The boys are horsing-around. They're letting off nervous steam about tonight's game. I have to allow for some craziness. I needed to get out and see how the other coaches were doing."

"So you visit all other coaches as much as you do me, right?"

Gabriel grinned. "I do check in with them, but to be honest probably not as often. I hate to admit it but I have a vested interesting in girls' cross country."

Mr. Edwards walked up. "Or do you have a vested interest in the girls' cross country coach?"

Chuckling, Gabriel said, "I plead the fifth."

Katherine's cheeks tinged pink.

"I actually made the trip out here to check and see if you two are okay with this hill challenge." Mr. Edwards' glanced between them. "I first thought it would be a good idea, and then it took a life of its own."

As the girls filed from the locker room, Katherine said, "I'm fine with it but I'm worried about Gabriel. I know how competitive he is and I'm worried he won't handle his boys getting beaten by girls. I'm sure he can come up with some sort of dance for his guys. He has all sorts of tricks up his sleeve." She smiled and turned. "Girls, let's get started. We're just doing stretches."

Shaking his head, Gabriel released a deep breath. "With the parameters she put on this race, I'm pretty sure she's going to win. Have you seen my linemen run up that hill? They don't actually run it. I can't even describe it. It's some sort of strange walk/crawl. They're linemen; they aren't supposed to be fast. She knows that."

The two men started inside, as Gabriel continued, "I'd better research dances they can do. Maybe they'll be good at that. Running, not so much." He faced Paul, "You know she set me up, don't you?"

"She did. She knows football and the male ego. She got you good and probably enjoyed every second of it."

"True, but she'll never admit it."

*****
Katherine changed into jeans and a Bears' T-shirt and then she and the boys returned to school. She set them on the same bleachers she had the previous week. She closed her eyes and took two deep breaths. A few minutes of peace before the crowd shows up. She exhaled a slow breath. I'm forgetting something, but what? She jumped up. "Tomorrow's map! I need it."

The opposing team came out of the locker rooms and jogged to the opposite end of the field.

In a couple of minutes we'll come out. I'll motion for Gabriel to come here. What if he's too busy? Katherine sat tapping her feet.

The team came running out with Gabriel leading the way. On his way to watch the opposing team's warm-ups, he grinned and nodded at Katherine. She motioned for him to come toward her, but somebody stepped in the way, and he didn't notice.

Now what? What if I go down and talk to him? She sighed and muttered, "Rule number one in football, Mothers are never allowed on the field. But I won't go as a mom, but a coach. Does that count?" She sighed. Not to Jordan. He'll see me as his mother. My son would hate me for the rest of his life. Maybe he'll stop by before they go back to the locker room. He did last week.

Katherine stood and paced. Good, Gabriel's headed in this direction. A referee stopped him.

He'll never get here. She continued pacing.

Angie came up to her. "You doing all right? You look nervous about something."

"I don't have a map of tomorrow's course."

"That'd be good to have."

"I know."

Gabriel stood on the track below the railing. "Coach Riley, why're you pacing? I know you're not worried about this game. We got it. So you must be worried about the hill challenge. You saw my linemen warming up and got worried."

"No, I'm concerned about tomorrow's race. I don't have the map of tomorrow's course."

He hit his forehead. "Darn! I knew I was forgetting something. Sorry, it's on my desk. I was going to give to you when I came to practice."

"Can I get it now?"

"The door's locked." He reached in his pockets. "And I don't have my keys. I promise I'll bring it by after the game. After the game, take the boys home. I'll bring Jordan." He turned toward the field. "I'm needed. Again, I'm sorry."

"I know you're busy. I didn't think of it until a few minutes ago. Good luck tonight."



CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Frank Collins math teacher

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Sandy Frost Rodney Frost's wife

Sam Auto repair shop owner

Bill Brooks Assistant football coach, Gabriel's friend, and Angie's husband.

Harold Hudson Gabriel's dad and football announcer.

Sandy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Rhonda Morgan Teenage girl on cross country team, and victim of dating violence.

Mr. and Mrs. Morgan Rhonda's parents.

Kenny Clark Teenager - Rhonda's boyfriend

Author Notes Thank you google images for the photo of a cross country race map. I also want to thank everybody for the helpful reviews. This novel is not actually about football, but is part of the background. High football is a national pastime in Texas. This post is a little over 800 words. Thank you for having patience with me.

To a teenage boy, his mom going down on the football field is a real threat. They would be teased FOREVER!!!


Chapter 39
Football Chapter 19 part 3

By barbara.wilkey

ENDING OF PREVIOUS POST:

Gabriel stood on the track below the railing. "Coach Riley, why're you pacing? I know you're not worried about this game. We got it. So you must be worried about the hill challenge. You saw my linemen warming up and got worried."

"No, I'm concerned about tomorrow's race. I don't have the map of tomorrow's course."

He hit his forehead. "Darn! I knew I was forgetting something. Sorry, it's on my desk. I was going to give to you when I came to practice."

"Can I get it now?"

"The door's locked." He reached in his pockets. "And I don't have my keys. I promise I'll bring it by after the game. After the game, take your boys home. I'll bring Jordan." He turned toward the field. "I'm needed. Again, I'm sorry."

"I know you're busy. I didn't think of it until a few minutes ago. Good luck tonight."

TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 19 part 3


As the team captains met at midfield for the coin toss, many of the cross country girls sat beside Katherine and her boys.

When they made their first touchdown, Gabriel turned toward her and gave thumbs up.

Sandy asked, "Coach, is Coach Hudson your boyfriend?"

Katherine faced the teenager. "What made you ask?"

Rhonda smiled. "Because you're together a lot and he just gave you thumbs up."

As Katherine's cheeks tinged pink, Sandy added, "And you're blushing."

"We're not dating. We've never had one date. It's safe to say we're friends."

Rhonda added, "Maybe really good friends."

The girls said together. "Okay, if you're sure."

"I'm positive." Katherine stared at Gabriel. This isn't good if the students are noticing. We need to talk.

Judy smiled. "If he asked you out, would you go?"

"I don't know. I have four children to think about. Probably not. All my extra time is spent with you girls anyway. I don't have time to date."

Katherine jumped up and cheered as Jordan caught a pass and ran for the first down. "Good job, Jordan."

Rhonda tilted her head. "She's right. Dating takes a lot of time."

Jeremy touched her arm. "Mom, I finished eating everything. Can I see Grandma for some popcorn?"

"No," said Joshua. "I'm watching the game. Mom, don't make me."

Sandy offered, "Coach, I'll walk down with him."

"You sure? You'll miss part of the game."

"I can watch while I walk."

Katherine took a few dollars from her pocket. "Jeremy, behave and listen to Sandy." She handed Sandy the money and smiled. "Get something for yourself too. It's a chaperone fee."

"Thank you."

Going into the half, the Bears were up fourteen to zero.

During half-time, Katherine noticed a teenage male sitting in section D glaring at Rhonda. She touched Rhonda's arm. "Is that Kenny?"

Rhonda swallowed. "It is. He's waiting for me to be alone."

"That's not going to happen. Are your parents here?"

"No."

Katherine offered her phone. "Call and let them know they need to pick you up. I don't want to take any chances. If they can't, let me talk with them, and I'll give you a ride home."

It was agreed that Rhonda would remain with Katherine until her parents arrived. As the fourth quarter began, her father sat beside Katherine.

Mr. Morgan thanked Katherine for being concerned and he and Rhonda left.

The final score was twelve-to-thirty-five. Silver Cove's Varsity football team had now won two games. They had one more home game before they went on the road.

*****
At home, Katherine prepared some chicken, rice, and bean burritos with an assortment of vegetables. She had a fresh fruit salad on the side.

She fixed Jeremy one and put some fruit in a bowl. "You need to eat and take your bath. Tomorrow we have an early morning. I need to be at the school by six-thirty. Grandma will bring you boys around seven-forty-five."

"I want to stay up until Coach gets here."

"Eat and take your bath. I'll let you come and say hi. He's only going to be here long enough to give me a map of tomorrow's race."

Before long Jordan opened the door. "Mom, we're here."

She smiled as Gabriel held up the map. "Thank you. Please help yourself to some burritos and fruit." She petted Reggie's head. "Have you had dinner tonight?"

"He has. Don't let him fool you. Sorry about the map. I set it on my desk and still forgot."

"No worries." She motioned toward the kitchen. "Please help yourself.

"Good idea." He studied her. "What's on your mind?"

"We'll talk after the boys go upstairs."

As Gabriel nodded and fixed himself two burritos, Jeremy ran downstairs. "Hi! You haven't forgotten about Tuesday's lunch, have you?"

"How could I forget something that important?" He ran his hand through Jeremy's hair, messing it up. "I promise I won't forget." He took out his phone and showed Jeremy his calendar. "See its right here."

Katherine gave her youngest son a hug. "You need to get to bed."

After Katherine knelt, Jeremy kissed her cheek. "Night, Mom." He motioned for Gabriel to bend down. When he did, Jeremy kissed his cheek. "Good night, Coach. See you tomorrow."

When Jeremy was upstairs, Katherine said, "I'm so sorry."

"Don't worry about it. Jeremy's a great kid."

"You're very important in his life."

"He's important to me too."

After the boys and Coach thoroughly discussed the game and ate, the boys went upstairs.

Katherine put things away and cleaned the kitchen.

Picking up some paper plates, Gabriel said, "I'll help while we talk. What's wrong?"

"Most of my cross country girls came and sat beside me."

"I noticed. That's a good thing. They like you. It's a sign you're doing a good job."

She put a lid on the bowl of vegetables and placed it in the refrigerator. "Kenny Clark sat in the next section and glared at Rhonda. I had her dad pick her up. If he couldn't, I would've given her a ride home."

"Good instincts. I guess I need another chat with the lad." He hesitated. "There's something else bothering you. What is it?"

Katherine put her right hand on her hip. "The girls are wondering if we're dating. They've noticed we're together a lot."

"How did you answer?"

"That we've never dated and are good friends."

"Sounds good."

"They wanted to know if you asked me out would I go."

Gabriel chuckled. "What did you say?"

"I told them I spent too much time with them so I don't have time to date. They agreed dating takes a lot of time."

"Maybe when our seasons end we can change that. What do you think?"

"I think we need to solve our Frost problem before anything can happen."

"You're right, but we can't put our lives on hold while he realizes how wrong he is." Gabriel exhaled. "On that note, I know you have an early day tomorrow. I need to leave. I'll be there after practice. I may call it early so the boys can watch."

"Or so their coach can watch?"

He chuckled. "Maybe a little of both." He motioned to Reggie. "Come on, buddy, you can't spend the night either."





CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons. She teaches high school math and also coaches girls cross country.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Frank Collins math teacher

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Sandy Frost Rodney Frost's wife

Sam Auto repair shop owner

Bill Brooks Assistant football coach, Gabriel's friend, and Angie's husband.

Harold Hudson Gabriel's dad and football announcer.

Sandy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Judy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Rhonda Morgan Teenage girl on cross country team, and victim of dating violence.

Mr. and Mrs. Morgan Rhonda's parents.

Kenny Clark Teenager - Rhonda's boyfriend

Author Notes Thank you google images for the photo of a Texas high school football stadium on game night. I also want to thank everybody for the helpful reviews. I made changes again as I posted. Again, I hope I didn't make it worse. This novel is not actually about football, but is part of the background. High football is a national pastime in Texas. This post is a little over 1000 words. Thank you for having patience with me.


Chapter 40
Football Chapter 20 part 1

By barbara.wilkey

There are a couple of things I need to say. First on Wednesday, a former team mate called because she was extremely upset. I said former because I retired as of May 28 of this year. That is when our contract ends. Teachers are not on contract again until August 3. Those dates are important for what I am going to share. On June 4 she had an adult party, no children, in her backyard; barbecue, alcoholic beverages, and dancing. One of her students' parents found out about it and called the district office to complain, who in turned called our principal, who called this teacher and reprimanded her for acting 'unprofessional'. The teacher went on to explain she was not on contract and could do whatever she wanted at her own house on her own time. She was told she could not and if she planned on remaining employed she had better keep her act spotless. The reason I am sharing this because not everybody understands that, at least some, school districts have 'moral clauses' in their contracts and teacher are held to a much higher standard than other professions. Is it fair, no but it's reality.
The second point I'd like to make. Katherine and Gabriel have only known each other 22 days. I'm sorry, but I wouldn't and didn't jump into bed with someone I had known only 22 days. Maybe, others do, but not everybody. Also I want to mention, I could care less what happens between two consenting adults in the privacy of their own home. Their are people who are interested in unconditional love and not the lust that is prevalent in our society.


ENDING OF PREVIOUS POST:

She put a lid on the bowl of vegetables and placed it in the refrigerator. "Kenny Clark sat in the next section and glared at Rhonda. I had her dad pick her up. If he couldn't, I would've given her a ride home."

"Good instincts. I guess I need another chat with the lad." He hesitated. "There's something else bothering you. What is it?"

Katherine put her right hand on her hip. "The girls are wondering if we're dating. They've noticed we're together a lot."

"How did you answer?"

"That we've never dated and are good friends."

"Sounds good."

"They wanted to know if you asked me out would I go."

Gabriel chuckled. "What did you say?"

"I told them I spent too much time with them so I don't have time to date. They agreed dating takes a lot of time."

"Maybe when our seasons end we can change that. What do you think?"

"I think we need to solve our Frost problem before anything can happen."

"You're right, but we can't put our lives on hold while he realizes how wrong he is." Gabriel exhaled. "On that note, I know you have an early day tomorrow. I need to leave. I'll be there after practice. I may call it early so the boys can watch."

"Or so their coach can watch?"

He chuckled. "Maybe a little of both." He motioned to Reggie. "Come on, buddy, you can't spend the night either."


TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 20 part 1

Saturday morning, when Sarah arrived Katherine and Jordan left the house. Katherine glanced at her watch. "It's six-thirty. We're doing good on time."

"Mom, are you worried about this meet?"

She released a deep breath. "Maybe a little. I want the girls to do well so they don't get discouraged. They've only had a week of practice."

After Katherine parked the car, they walked to the locker room area.

Gabriel stood in the hall. "Riley, we're meeting in the gym. You don't need to dress out." He nodded toward Katherine. "How's your mom doing?"

"She's worried how the girls will do after only a week of practice."

Gabriel took a few steps toward the direction she was walking. "You got this."

Katherine turned and waved. "I hope so."

Once the girls were dressed, they met outside under some shade trees. Katherine described the race route, explained there'd be signs with arrows pointing the right direction, and in many areas people would be there making sure they remained on course. The race would begin in the student parking lot and end on the track field.

She reminded them to find their rhythm and stick with it. "If you need help staying in rhythm, it's okay to sing our fight song. I sang it when I ran. Matter-of-fact, I still do. I'll be with you for part of the race. When you're at the golf course, I'll cut through so I'm back for the ending. Questions?"

When nobody commented, she continued, "Team, you got this. I have confidence in you. Running this course will be easier than the hill." She held up a stop watch and laughed. "I'll make sure the judges are honest."

Katherine clapped her hands and raised her arm. "Let's go to the parking lot, stretch, and get this started." She followed Gabriel's idea of leading the team to the parking lot. They sang their fight song as they jogged.

*****
As the football team watched the game film, the coaches stopped the tape and pointed to missed plays and explained how the play could've improved.

When Gabriel heard the girls' fight song, he stopped the film. "Our girls cross country team meet's about to start. I hope many of you will stay after practice and support them. They showed up at our game last night. We should return the favor. I'll let you out early so you can see the beginning." He continued with the game film.

Five minutes before the meet began, Gabriel released the players and went to watch the start. The gun sounded, and the race began.

Gabriel grinned as he watched Katherine wave her arms cheering the girls on. After the final girl left, Katherine adjusted her cap so her pony tail stuck out the back opening and began running alongside the trail. Her form's perfect. No wonder she holds running records.

Bill stood beside him. "Admiring the view?"

"What view?"

"Katherine running. That view."

"Don't know what you're talking about." Gabriel hesitated. "Let's go." He started running.

"You mean us run?" teased Bill as he followed his buddy.

*****
Almost thirty minutes passed before Katherine jogged in place at the entrance of the track. She jumped up and down when she saw Rhonda leading the pack with a Midway girl close behind. Remaining on the infield grass, she ran beside her. "Stay in your rhythm. I'm here. You've got this." She began singing the fight song.

*****
Gabriel took steps closer to get a better look. "Good, Rhonda's got this. Kate, stay with her. Let her follow your pace." He glanced back and saw the rest of the girls leading their opponents. When Rhonda won, Katherine hugged her and motioned her to walk it out.

Watching Katherine go back and run with the remaining girls making sure they stayed in rhythm, Gabriel cheered, "Good job, Kate."

Suddenly Gabriel felt a hand rubbing up and down his arm and heard a female voice, "Gabe, who's Kate?"

His eyes widened. "Grace, what are you doing here?" He glanced behind him. "Where's Luke?"

"I left Luke. I thought maybe I could stay with you. I won't be a problem and I'm sure you'll receive plenty of benefits. I remember how well you enjoyed benefits."

Gabriel took a few steps toward the track. "I'm busy. Sandy, you can do it." He released a sigh when he saw Katherine move closer to her. He grinned when he heard the girls singing their fight song to cheer for Sandy. He removed his phone. "Dad, hurry, put on 'This is my Fight Song.' The girls are used to running to it."

He watched Katherine glance toward the announcing booth and clap her hands. She glanced toward him and gave a thumbs-up.

Before long Grace stepped in front of him. He attempted to move around her. "I'm watching this."

She put her hands behind his neck, yanked his head forward, and kissed him.

*****
After the last girl crossed the finish line, Katherine gathered her girls but heard cursing and defamatory comments toward Rhonda. She glanced up and saw Kenny and some other boys leaning over the railing. She ran to get Gabriel, but stopped when she saw him kissing the model.

Katherine paused, sighed, and made an abrupt turn. I guess he hasn't completely forgotten his past. She found a security guard and had Kenny and his friends removed from the track area.

*****
Gabriel removed her hands, stepped back, and wiped his mouth. "What are you doing?"

"I told you there would be benefits with us living together."

"You're not staying with me. There are a few very nice hotels in town. I'm sure you can stay there until you figure out what to do. I'm busy." Gabriel turned and walked toward the track.

He scanned the area but couldn't find Katherine or the girls. He did find Joshua. "I thought I saw your mom walking toward me a little while ago. Do you know where she went?"

"No. She looked pretty upset watching you lock lips with that model."

Gabriel raised his cap and then replaced it. "She saw that?"

"Yep. She turned and went back to the team." When Gabriel started walking toward the locker room, Joshua added, "You know she was featured in that magazine you took."

Turning around, Gabriel asked, "What?"

"That girlie magazine you took. She was the main attraction. Didn't you look at it?"

"I never opened it. It went directly in trash." Under his breath, Gabriel added, "Now I know why Luke threw her out. How do I smooth things over with Kate?"

*****
A few hours later, Gabriel knocked on Katherine's door. Joshua opened it. "Hi Coach."

"Is your mom home? I need to speak with her."

"She's out back eating ice cream."

"A gallon of ice cream?"

Joshua nodded. "Yep."

Gabriel continued through the house until he got to the patio. She's mentioned women eating a gallon of ice cream meant they had relationship issues. I guess that problem is me.

He stood and watched for a few moments before he said, "I looked for you after the meet but couldn't find you. We need to talk."

Katherine set the container of ice cream on the side table. "You shoved your way in again." After she hesitated, she continued, "I needed, no, Rhonda needed you. When I went to get you, you were busy necking with a model. What example does that set for the students? Next time get a room."

"There are two issues with what you just said. First, why did Rhonda need me? She won the race. What happened?"

"Kenny and his friends shouted obscenities at her. The entire stadium heard. You didn't because you were busy. I found a security guard who took them away."

Gabriel glanced at his ringing phone. "It's Paul. I'll call him back later. I'll handle Kenny."

Katherine stood. "I'm sure Paul wants to address your behavior at the meet. You need to leave."

Releasing a deep breath, Gabriel said, "Now, for what you think you saw. I thought you trusted me enough to know I'd never do anything to hurt you." He walked to her, put his arms around her, drew her close, and gave her a lingering kiss. When the kiss ended, he said, "That's what me kissing someone looks like."

He glanced at his arms still around her. "Notice where my arms are. Never did my arms or any part of my body touch her. If you stayed, you would've noticed she kissed me, but you jumped to conclusions and left. I didn't kiss her and didn't return it. I stopped the kiss and sent her away. I came looking for you."

Gabriel turned to leave. "I have a few things to take care of. When you're ready to talk, call."

On the way out, Jeremy ran up to him. "Coach! I didn't know you were here."

He knelt down. "Little Buddy, I have some things to take care of. Your mom will call when she's ready for me to return." He glanced toward Katherine, nodded, and then left.

Tears streamed down Katherine's cheeks as she watched him leave.

Thank you Youtube - Moana "" Fight Song






CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons. She teaches high school math and also coaches girls cross country.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Frank Collins math teacher

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Sandy Frost Rodney Frost's wife

Sam Auto repair shop owner

Bill Brooks Assistant football coach, Gabriel's friend, and Angie's husband.

Harold Hudson Gabriel's dad and football announcer.

Sandy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Judy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Rhonda Morgan Teenage girl on cross country team, and victim of dating violence.

Mr. and Mrs. Morgan Rhonda's parents.

Kenny Clark Teenager - Rhonda's boyfriend

Grace Former friend of Gabriel and featured in porn magazines

Author Notes Thank you google images for the photo of a broken heart. I also want to thank everybody for the helpful reviews. I made changes again as I posted. Again, I hope I didn't make it worse. This novel is not actually about football, but is part of the background. High football is a national pastime in Texas. This post is a little over 1500 words. Thank you for having patience with me.


Chapter 41
Football Chapter 21 part 1

By barbara.wilkey

ENDING OF PREVIOUS POST:

Releasing a deep breath, Gabriel said, "Now, for what you think you saw. I thought you trusted me enough to know I'd never do anything to hurt you." He walked to her, put his arms around her, drew her close, and gave her a lingering kiss. When the kiss ended, he said, "That's what me kissing someone looks like."

He glanced at his arms still around her. "Notice where my arms are. Never did my arms or any part of my body touch her. If you stayed, you would've noticed she kissed me, but you jumped to conclusions and left. I didn't kiss her and didn't return it. I stopped the kiss and sent her away. I came looking for you."

Gabriel turned to leave. "I have a few things to take care of. When you're ready to talk, call."

On the way out, Jeremy ran up to him. "Coach! I didn't know you were here."

He knelt down. "Little Buddy, I have some things to take care of. Your mom will call when she's ready for me to return." He glanced toward Katherine, nodded, and then left.

Tears streamed down Katherine's cheeks as she watched him leave.

TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 21 part 1

That night Katherine tossed and turned. She held her breath when she heard the front door knob jingle. Breathe. She took deep breathes. It's probably the wind. Again, she heard the jingles. That's not the wind.

Moments later a flashlight shone through her bedroom window. She moved her phone to her bed and pressed Gabriel's number.

After a few rings, he answered, "Kate, what's wrong?"

Between sobs, she whispered, "Gabriel."

"I'm on my way."

*****
When Bill and Gabriel parked outside Katherine's house, they noticed a police cruiser heading toward them. Gabriel tapped the steering wheel. "That's probably Brad Owens. I asked him to meet us here. Something has Kate spooked."

"You mean more than seeing that model kiss you?"

"So you heard about that? From Angie?" After his friend nodded, Gabriel got out of the pick-up and slammed the door. "Yes, more than that." He opened the back door and Reggie climbed out.

As the three men walked toward the front steps, a man ran from the bushes.

They ran after him. Reggie led the way. When he caught up with the man, he knocked him down.

Gabriel, right behind the large dog, lifted him by the back of the shirt. "Who are you and why were you hiding behind the bushes?"

Brad picked up a broken camera. "I'm guessing taking pictures." He used his radio and requested back-up. He nodded toward Gabriel. "See if Mrs. Riley's all right. I'll be there in a few minutes."

Bill stood beside Gabriel as he knocked on the door. "Kate, it's me."

After Katherine opened the door, she threw her arms around Gabriel's neck. "Thank you."

He held her for a few moments, before he asked, "What happened?" He glanced around the room. "Where's Daisy?"

She stepped back as she watched Bill go into her bedroom. "George's parents returned from a cruise and wanted the boys for the night. This is the first time Jeremy has seen them, and he didn't want to go so I sent Daisy along hoping it'd help."

Bill returned with a robe. "Maybe you should wear this." He held it as she put her arms in the sleeves.

As she tied the belt around her slender waist, she said, "Sorry. I wasn't thinking."

Grinning, Bill added, "I figured you wore negligees, being all girlie-girlie-and-all, but old fashioned pajamas need robes too. It won't just be us friends. The police will be here in a few minutes."

Katherine's eyes widened. "Police? I didn't call the police."

"I did. You called at two-forty-seven and sounded scared so I called Bill, then got thinking about it and thought we might need the police. I called my friend on the force, Brad."

"Thank you. It makes sense." Her eyes met Gabriel's and moisture filled them. "I'm sorry."

He took her in his arms. "We'll discuss that later. Right now let's discuss tonight." After she dried her eyes and sat, Gabriel joined her and held her hand. "Start from the beginning."

"I heard the front door knob jingle. At first I thought it was the wind."

"Did it wake you?"

Katherine shook her head. "I couldn't sleep, because...anyway I was awake. It scared me, and then I heard it jingle again." She glanced toward the bedroom. "It stopped and then a flashlight shone in my bedroom window. I sneaked my phone under the covers and called you."

Her eyes widened at a knock on the door. "Who's that?"

Bill went to the door. "I'm guessing the police. They have a few questions." He asked Brad to come inside.

Gabriel stood. "Katherine, I'm sure you remember Officer Brad Owens."

"Hello, nice to see you again." She turned toward Gabriel.

Gabriel motioned toward the couch. "Katherine's explaining what happened."

Brad opened his notepad. "I'm glad Gabriel called. Coach told me about the P.I. watching the house and taking pictures. Tonight he crossed the line into voyeurism."

Katherine tilted her head. "But...I don't understand. Voyeurism has to do with watching sexual behavior. I was trying to sleep, not having sex."

Checking his notes, Brad continued, "True. Somehow the P.I. found out you were alone and figured it'd be a good opportunity to catch you and your gentlemen friend in the act."

"Why? Gabriel and I are friends. There's nothing serious between us. Besides how did he discover the boys were gone? This whole thing was last minute. I didn't know my in-laws were in town until they showed up on my doorstep. Even though we moved back home, it never occurred to me I'd see them. They travel most of the time."

Gabriel patted her hand. "I don't believe in coincidences. I'm guessing there's a connection between them asking for the boys overnight, Frost, and the P.I. We just don't know what it is. I'll check with my parents tomorrow. Maybe they know one."

"I'll talk with Mom." Katherine paused. "Maybe the P.I. saw the boys loading up in the car and took advantage of the situation."

Brad tapped his notepad with his pen. "I'm curious why you called Coach instead of the police?"

Katherine fidgeted with her hands before she answered, "Because I was scared, and he was the first person who came to mind." Her focus continued on her hands.

Gabriel reached over and took a hand. "It's okay. I'm glad you called."

Bill tapped his buddy's back. "Brad, anymore questions?"

"Not now. If I think of any, I'll come back." He stood and pointed toward the window. "Don't go around the outside of that window until I return in the morning. I want to take a mold of the footprints and check for fingerprints." He turned toward the front door. "Has anybody touched the outside knob?"

Katherine shook her head. "No, I opened it from the inside."

"I'll be right back. I need to go to my car." Brad left and returned with a fingerprint kit. "I'm hoping he didn't wear gloves. Even though he was practically caught in the act and confessed, evidence still helps."

Gabriel stood. "Has he named anybody besides Frost? My gut says Frost's just a pawn."

Brad nodded. "I'm beginning to agree." He glanced at Katherine. "You don't have any enemies, do you?"

"None that I know. Other than Mr. Frost I don't know of anybody even upset with me." Katherine faced Gabriel. "Well, he's upset with me right now."

Facing Gabriel, Brad chuckled. "Mrs. Riley, I'll be by first thing in the morning."

After Brad left, Bill walked to the door. "I'll wait in the truck. Take as long as you need."

Both Katherine and Gabriel stood and watched him leave.

Following a silence, Gabriel studied Katherine for a few moments. "I'm not upset with you, but your lack of trust hurts." He glanced at his watch. "It's too late to discuss it now. We both need sleep. I'll be by first thing tomorrow, and we'll talk. Hopefully before the boys return."

"My in-laws said it'd be after lunch before they brought them back."

"Good. That should give us plenty of time." Gabriel opened his arms. "Come here." When she went into them, he held her and then said, "Good night."

"Good night." Katherine double checked to make sure the door locked after he left.



CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons. She teaches high school math and also coaches girls cross country.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Frank Collins math teacher

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Sandy Frost Rodney Frost's wife

Sam Auto repair shop owner

Bill Brooks Assistant football coach, Gabriel's friend, and Angie's husband.

Harold Hudson Gabriel's dad and football announcer.

Sandy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Judy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Rhonda Morgan Teenage girl on cross country team, and victim of dating violence.

Mr. and Mrs. Morgan Rhonda's parents.

Kenny Clark Teenager - Rhonda's boyfriend

Grace Former friend of Gabriel and featured in porn magazines

Author Notes Thank you google images for the photo of a man spying through a window with a camera. I also want to thank everybody for the helpful reviews. I made changes again as I posted. Again, I hope I didn't make it worse. This novel is not actually about football, but is part of the background. High football is a national pastime in Texas. This post is a little over 1200 words. Thank you for having patience with me.


Chapter 42
Football Chapter 21 part2

By barbara.wilkey

Katherine and Gabriel have now known each other for 23 days.

ENDING OF PREVIOUS POST:

After Brad left, Bill walked to the door. "I'll wait in the truck. Take as long as you need."

Both Katherine and Gabriel stood and watched him leave.

Following a silence, Gabriel studied Katherine for a few moments. "I'm not upset with you, but your lack of trust hurts." He glanced at his watch. "It's too late to discuss it now. We both need sleep. I'll be by first thing tomorrow, and we'll talk. Hopefully before the boys return."

"My in-laws said it'd be after lunch before they brought them back."

"Good. That should give us plenty of time." Gabriel opened his arms. "Come here." When she went into them, he held her and then said, "Good night."

"Good night." Katherine double checked to make sure the door locked after he left.

TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 21 part 2

Katherine answered the knock on the door. "Good morning. Have you had breakfast or at least your cups of coffee?"

"Reggie and I already ate, but could use more coffee. We got called out in the middle of the night and disrupted our beauty sleep," teased Gabriel.

She motioned to the kitchen. "I'm sorry about that. Pour yourself a cup. It's fresh. I made it after I returned from the store. I just have a few more things to put away."

Gabriel poured a cup and refreshed hers. "I thought we'd agreed to share that responsibility."

"We did, sort of, but Officer Owens came by pretty early so I got it over with."

He took out his billfold. "What's my half?"

"I don't remember." She averted her gaze to a cupboard. "I wasn't sure you'd still be having dinner with us."

"I thought I had my own seat at the table. Have I lost it?"

"No. I didn't know if you still wanted to."

Gabriel laid some cash on the counter, grabbed some cans, and set them in a cupboard. "They're put away. It's a beautiful day. We can talk on the back patio."

"That's not where they go."

He took her hand. "Grab your coffee. It's where they're going now."

"You're being pushy again."

"Good." He pointed to a chair. "Have a seat." After they sat, he continued, "The easy part of this conversation. I visited with Kenny again. This time I took him to the jail and Brad helped explain he could easily be locked up for his actions. He even spent some time in lock-up. I doubt Rhonda will have any problems with him."

"Thank you." She took a sip of coffee.

"Now for the real issue. I knew Grace from my pro-football days. Grace lived with a good friend, Luke Bolton. I called him yesterday to find out why or how she ended up on my doorstep. He threw her out because she posed for porn. For some reason she thought she could spend time with me. I made it clear she wasn't welcome and directed her to the hotels."

"So she just showed up and kissed you? How'd she find you?"

"That's pretty much what happened. I'm not sure how she found me. Maybe the cab driver told her I'd be at the school. She said something about benefits if I let her stay and then kissed me. I stopped it and sent her away."

Gabriel watched Katherine's expression as he sipped of coffee. "What really bothers me is your lack of trust. To be honest it hurts. I need to understand where you're coming from." After silence continued, he said, "I think it's your turn to talk. That's normally how conversations work. You've said very little."

"I know I have no right to be upset if you date other women. We've never discussed being exclusive. We aren't even dating."

"Where you going with this? We did discuss that we cared for each other and agreed to take it slow for various reasons."

"It hurt when I saw you holding and kissing another woman."

"She put her arms around me. I did not put my arms around her and I removed them. I did not return the kiss. Why don't you trust me? Is it my past?"

Katherine tapped her coffee cup. "Because she's younger, prettier, and doesn't have a lot of extra baggage. She's a lot of things I'm not. You're used to being with beautiful models with perfect figures, make-up, and hair."

"From what I'm hearing, it does have to do with my past. While playing, I dated models and you feel you don't measure up." Gabriel got up. "I need more coffee."

He returned with the pot, refilled hers, and set it on the table. "I need to apologize for what I'm about to say. It's basically uncouth but needs to be said because you need to hear it. I'll say it the kindest way I can."

She swallowed. "Are you sure?"

"Positive. Last night Bill got your robe not because he was worried about Brad seeing you in pajamas, but because you were unknowingly incredibly sexy. The feelings you aroused made him uncomfortable since he's married." He took a sip of coffee and watched her cheeks tinge pink. "As for me, we agreed to take it slow, if I keep seeing you like that, slow will be impossible."

"But..."

"Just believe me. I don't want to embarrass either of us by going into details. You're sexier than Grace or any of those models could ever be. They try, you don't. It comes naturally. Enough said?"

After Katherine nodded, he continued, "As for the extra baggage, I hope you're not worried about the boys, because by now you should understand I enjoy being with them. The only extra baggage I see is the way George treated you. Your self-esteem took a huge hit. You should be treated like the lady you are."

"You do."

"Good. I carry extra baggage too. My behavior during my pro-career still haunts me, and I'm trying to make it right. My prayer's that before we take our relationship to the next level, I have put my past where it belongs and I'm worthy of you. Again, I've done most of the talking."

Tears escaped Katherine's eyes. "I'm sorry." She stood.

Gabriel stood and put his arms around her. "You have nothing to be sorry for. We needed to have this talk. It was long overdue. As far as I'm concerned, we are in an exclusive relationship."


CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons. She teaches high school math and also coaches girls cross country.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Frank Collins math teacher

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Sandy Frost Rodney Frost's wife

Sam Auto repair shop owner

Bill Brooks Assistant football coach, Gabriel's friend, and Angie's husband.

Harold Hudson Gabriel's dad and football announcer.

Sandy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Judy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Rhonda Morgan Teenage girl on cross country team, and victim of dating violence.

Mr. and Mrs. Morgan Rhonda's parents.

Kenny Clark Teenager - Rhonda's boyfriend

Grace Former friend of Gabriel and featured in porn magazin

Author Notes Thank you google images for the photo of mending a broken heart. I also want to thank everybody for the helpful reviews. I made changes again as I posted. Again, I hope I didn't make it worse. This novel is not actually about football, but is part of the background. High football is a national pastime in Texas. This post is a little over 900 words. Thank you for having patience with me.


Chapter 43
Football Chapter 22 part1

By barbara.wilkey

Katherine and Gabriel have known each other for 23 days.

ENDING OF PREVIOUS POST:

After Katherine nodded, he continued, "As for the extra baggage, I hope you're not worried about the boys, because by now you should understand I enjoy being with them. The only extra baggage I see is the way George treated you. Your self-esteem took a huge hit. You should be treated like the lady you are."

"You do."

"Good. I carry extra baggage too. My behavior during my pro-career still haunts me, and I'm trying to make it right. My prayer's that before we take our relationship to the next level, I have put my past where it belongs and I'm worthy of you. Again, I've done most of the talking."

Tears escaped Katherine's eyes. "I'm sorry." She stood.

Gabriel stood and put his arms around her. "You have nothing to be sorry for. We needed to have this talk. It was long overdue. As far as I'm concerned, we are in an exclusive relationship."

TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 22 part 1

As Gabriel leaned over to kiss her, the front door burst opened, and Jeremy yelled, "Mom, we're home!"

Katherine whispered, "Sorry. Are you sure you don't mind them?"

Chuckling Gabriel said, "I'm positive."

They left the patio and met the boys in the kitchen. After a group hug, Katherine greeted her in-laws, Jackson and Janette Riley.

Jackson glared at Gabriel but addressed Katherine, "I see you weren't expecting us. The boys were correct; you are spending time with him."

Katherine motioned toward the living room. "Would you like to have a seat and stay for lunch? I wasn't expecting the boys until after lunch, but it'll only take a few minutes to get something together."

Janette eyed Gabriel. "It's obvious you weren't expecting the boys this early. I'm sure you wouldn't want these innocent boys around him."

Glaring at her in-laws, Katherine said, "Excuse me, but..."

Gabriel put his hand on her arm. "I got this." He hesitated. "I don't understand what you're talking about." His eyes met Janette's. "You were more than eager to welcome me when I brought in the Quarterback Club's fund raising deposit two months ago. You almost knocked over another clerk to wait on me. There are other banks in town. I'll talk with the Quarterback Club members at the meeting Thursday evening. It'll be no problem switching banks. He thought a moment. "I also remember signing numerous autographs for your family and friends."

His gaze turned to Jackson. "And you couldn't wait for my business when I was ready to purchase additional land to build another gated community." He hesitated. "That deal isn't finished, yet. I'll rethink doing business with your company. I'm switching real estate companies."

He turned and faced Katherine. "I'll return after lunch."

Katherine touched his arm. "No stay. They have no right to tell me who I can or can't have as a guest."

Jackson glanced at Janette. "The reason we brought the boys back early is because we have an appointment we forgot about." He glanced at his watch. "We really need to leave."

After they left, Joshua said, "Mom, Coach, they're lying. They didn't want us around and couldn't wait to get rid of us. They don't like us. Don't make us go there again, please."

Katherine hugged her son. "I won't."

Jordan touched his mom's arm. "I don't know what it meant but Mrs. Riley asked me to help her set the table for dinner and on the dining room hutch laid a stack of boarding school pamphlets. They asked a bunch of questions about school and Coach. They want us to go to boarding school. You're not sending us to one, are you?"

Her eyes widened. "There's no way you're going anywhere. We're a family."

"Jordan, can I borrow your mom for a few minutes?"

"Sure, Coach."

Gabriel put his hand on the small of Katherine's back and led her to the back patio. "It's getting hot out here." His eyes met hers. "I'm not sure what's going on or why, but I'm pretty sure your in-laws are part of this mess. I think taking the boys overnight was to set us up."

"I agree, but why? They've never shown an interest in the boys. Why now?"

"Want to go to my parent's farm? The boys can fish, and we can see what gossip Mom knows. It might be a place to start."

"Sounds good."

Taking out his phone, Gabriel called, "Mom, are you and Dad busy?" He listened. "That's right. I was thinking about bringing Kate and the boys out for the day. We'll stop somewhere and bring lunch." Silence. "Mom, don't do that." Again, he listened. "Okay, if you insist." He faced Katherine. "Mom's fixing lunch."

"I gathered as much. Any idea what I can bring?"

"Just get the boys and head for the car."

As Katherine shut the front door, Gabriel said, "We're missing Daisy. She can come too."

"Are you sure? I don't normally bring her."

"I know my parents. She's more than welcome." Gabriel laughed. "You may not get her back." He glanced around and did a head count. "We have a problem. Can we take your car? We won't fit in mine." Katherine tossed him the keys. "You drive. I don't know the way."

"Me driving a family vehicle. You're really messing with my image."

Katherine tilted her head. "I thought you wanted to work on that image."

Grinning, Gabriel nodded. "Point taken."




CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons. She teaches high school math and also coaches girls cross country.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Frank Collins math teacher

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Sandy Frost Rodney Frost's wife

Sam Auto repair shop owner

Bill Brooks Assistant football coach, Gabriel's friend, and Angie's husband.

Harold Hudson Gabriel's dad and football announcer.

Sandy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Judy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Rhonda Morgan Teenage girl on cross country team, and victim of dating violence.

Mr. and Mrs. Morgan Rhonda's parents.

Kenny Clark Teenager - Rhonda's boyfriend

Grace Former friend of Gabriel and featured in porn magazine

Janette & Jackson Riley Katherine's in-laws

Author Notes Thank you google images for the photo of a boys boarding school. I also want to thank everybody for the helpful reviews. I made changes again as I posted. Again, I hope I didn't make it worse. This novel is not actually about football, but is part of the background. High football is a national pastime in Texas. This post is a little over 700 words. Thank you for having patience with me.


Chapter 44
Football Chapter 22 part2

By barbara.wilkey

Katherine and Gabriel have known each other for 23 days.

ENDING OF PREVIOUS POST:

Taking out his phone, Gabriel called, "Mom, are you and Dad busy?" He listened. "That's right. I was thinking about bringing Kate and the boys out for the day. We'll stop somewhere and bring lunch." Silence. "Mom, don't do that." Again, he listened. "Okay, if you insist." He faced Katherine. "Mom's fixing lunch."

"I gathered as much. Any idea what I can bring?"

"Just get the boys and head for the car."

As Katherine shut the front door, Gabriel said, "We're missing Daisy. She can come too."

"Are you sure? I don't normally bring her."

"I know my parents. She's more than welcome." Gabriel laughed. "You may not get her back." He glanced around and did a head count. "We have a problem. Can we take your car? We won't fit in mine." Katherine tossed him the keys. "You drive. I don't know the way."

"Me driving a family vehicle. You're really messing with my image."

Katherine tilted her head. "I thought you wanted to work on that image."

Grinning, Gabriel nodded. "Point taken."

TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 22 part 2

After lunch, Gabriel and his dad took the boys to the pond and set them up for fishing. Harold agreed to supervise them so Gabriel and Katherine could talk with Rebecca.

As they sat under a shade tree within eye-sight of the boys, Gabriel said, "I feel we're trying to put a puzzle together but don't have a picture to follow and are missing some pieces." He went on to explain what had already happened and questions they had.

Rebecca took a drink of lemonade as she thought. "Sometime about the middle of March, the Rileys came into money. I don't know where it came from, but they purchased that fancy new house and started traveling more."

Katherine added, "George always gave them an allowance. It paid for their travel. George died in February and his will went into effect sometime in March."

Grabbing an apple and passing it between hands, Gabriel said, "I wonder how much money they inherited from George." He faced Katherine. "Any idea?"

"No. I was kept in the dark when it came to finances. He made sure the boys and I had plenty. All I know is each boy inherited a trust fund. I'm executor over them until they graduate from college. I invested it in safe mutual funds. Monthly money is put into my account for as long as I live. I don't know what George left his parents."

Katherine thought. "I also got a lump sum. I used part of it to buy the house and put the rest, again, in safe mutual funds. I digress. When mine was discussed, I do remember hearing something about his parents getting one too. I don't know how much."

Rebecca refreshed everyone's lemonade. "The way they've gone through money, I suspect they're broke. Do you know if they get a monthly stipend too?"

"Not that I know, just the lump sum. But like I said George didn't include me in money decisions."

Gabriel asked, "Is there any way you can find out? It could be a piece to our puzzle."

"I'll call the lawyer Tuesday."

All heads turned as Jeremy came running from the pond. "Mom! Mom!" When he got to them, he pointed to the sky. "We're watching the moon. See it?" When Katherine acknowledged it, he continued, "Grandpa said he has a telescope and when it gets dark tonight we can see the stars. Can we?"

Katherine's eyes widened. "Sweetheart, Mr. Riley isn't your grandfather."

Leaning toward her, Rebecca put her hand on Katherine's arm. "It's fine. I'm sure Harold's honored to be called Grandpa."

"Mom, can we stay?"

"It doesn't get dark until past your bedtime. Tomorrow's a holiday, but Jordan and I have to be at school by seven o'clock for practice." She glanced at her watch. "Matter-of-fact, it's getting close to time to leave. You probably want to finish fishing."

"Why don't you, Gabriel, and Jordan go on home and leave the younger boys here?" Rebecca waved her arm toward the house. "We have plenty of room, and they can watch the stars. Later tomorrow we'll bring them home."

"That'd be too much. Plus they didn't bring anything."

"We can make do. We'd love to have the company. It gets lonely out here."

Gabriel took Katherine's hand. "Mom wouldn't ask unless she wanted to do it. They'll be all right. I promise."

"I'm not worried about the boys. I'm worried about your parents. These guys can be a handful."

Rebecca laughed. "We raised Gabriel. He was a real stinker. We can handle your boys. Believe me they're easier."

Katherine glanced at Gabriel. "You're probably right." She hesitated and then said, "Okay, I'll leave Daisy. She helps calm Jeremy if he gets scared."

Shaking his head, Gabriel said, "After last night, you're taking Daisy. Jeremy likes Reggie. He'll stay."

Clapping her hands, Rebecca said, "Good that's settled. Harold will grill steaks. I've got good baking potatoes and can throw a salad together." She studied Gabriel. "How about brownies and ice cream for dessert?"

"Mom knows they're my favorite." He stood. "Are we finished for now? Is it okay if I go fishing?" After Katherine nodded, he held up his phone. "When you're ready, call."

*****
Once back home, Katherine and Gabriel sat on the back patio. He took her hand. "I have a feeling all of this is over money. What do you think?"

"I hate to think George's parents are that vindictive, but I have a feeling you're right." She tilted her head. "Saturday, did Mr. Edwards say anything about...?"

"Yep, that's what he called about. A few parents saw it and complained. I told him what happened, he believed me, and handled it. You believe me, don't you?"

"I do." She studied the stars. "I'm sure the boys are having a lot of fun with the telescope. It's beautiful out there. It's really nice of your parents to invite them."

Gabriel grinned. "They like kids. For some reason, Mom couldn't have any more after me or I'd probably have twenty brothers and sisters. That's part of the reason Dad enjoys announcing the sporting events."

"That's how our fight song played at the meet." Gabriel nodded, and Katherine hesitated before she continued, "Besides coaching football you're into real estate?"

He chuckled. "I wondered when you were going to get around to asking." He stretched his legs. "When I played pro-ball, I made lots of money. More than I could spend, even though I wasted a lot. My financial advisor told me to invest, but to also diversify. So I have some in mutual funds and now in real estate. That gated community off the interstate east of town's mine. I have a property manager who takes care of it. I had planned to build one on the west side of town, but I think I'll look around a little longer. I'm in no hurry."

Gabriel reached for her hand. "Any other questions?" When he heard Jordan coming outside, he quickly dropped the hand.

"Mom, can I...?" Pink tinged his cheeks as he glanced at Gabriel.

Standing Gabriel said, "I need a drink. Katherine, would you like one too?" When she nodded, he walked inside.

"Jordan, what's wrong?"

"There's nothing wrong." He studied his feet. "Homecoming's in a few weeks. I'd like to ask somebody to go with me. Is that okay?"

"It is. Anybody I know?"

"You know Samantha Clark?"

"Sammy, yes, she's on the cross country team and in my geometry class. She came in fourth at the meet."

"I know, Mom. So it's okay if I invite her?"

"Yes." She watched her son walk into the house.

Gabriel returned and sat. "I guess it's safe to come back."

"My son asked permission to invite a girl to homecoming."

"Jordan's a great kid. All your boys are."

"Even Jeremy?"

Gabriel chuckled. "Even Jeremy. He's just young." He hesitated. "I'm curious. Who does he want to ask or is it none of my business?"

"I'll tell you. But promise not to say anything, deal?" After Gabriel agreed, Katherine said, "Sammy Clark. She seems like a nice girl. Do you know her?"

"I know the family. She has an older brother who played football. He's in college now. They're good people." He grinned. "Are you ready to start the whole dating scene?"

"Are you talking Jordan or us?"

Taking her hand again, he said, "When I asked the question, I was speaking of Jordan, but now you mention it, both."

"To be honest. Neither. They're both scary."



CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons. She teaches high school math and also coaches girls cross country.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Frank Collins math teacher

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Sandy Frost Rodney Frost's wife

Sam Auto repair shop owner

Bill Brooks Assistant football coach, Gabriel's friend, and Angie's husband.

Harold Hudson Gabriel's dad and football announcer.

Sandy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Judy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Rhonda Morgan Teenage girl on cross country team, and victim of dating violence.

Mr. and Mrs. Morgan Rhonda's parents.

Kenny Clark Teenager - Rhonda's boyfriend

Grace Former friend of Gabriel and featured in porn magazine

Janette & Jackson Riley Katherine's in-laws

Author Notes Thank you google images for the photo of a young boy with a fish. I also want to thank everybody for the helpful reviews. I made changes again as I posted. Again, I hope I didn't make it worse. This novel is not actually about football, but is part of the background. High football is a national pastime in Texas. This post is a little over 1200 words. Thank you for having patience with me.


Chapter 45
Football Chapter 23 part1

By barbara.wilkey

Katherine and Gabriel have known each other for 25 days.

ENDING OF PREVIOUS POST:

Gabriel returned and sat. "I guess it's safe to come back."

"My son asked permission to invite a girl to homecoming."

"Jordan's a great kid. All your boys are."

"Even Jeremy?"

Gabriel chuckled. "Even Jeremy. He's just young." He hesitated. "I'm curious. Who does he want to ask or is it none of my business?"

"I'll tell you. But promise not to say anything, deal?" After Gabriel agreed, Katherine said, "Sammy Clark. She seems like a nice girl. Do you know her?"

"I know the family. She has an older brother who played football. He's in college now. They're good people." He grinned. "Are you ready to start the whole dating scene?"

"Are you talking Jordan or us?"

Taking her hand again, he said, "When I asked the question, I was speaking of Jordan, but now you mention it, both."

"To be honest. Neither. They're both scary."


TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 23 part 1

On Tuesday, when Katherine and Daisy joined Gabriel and Reggie on the sidewalk for their morning run, Katherine said, "Thank you again for taking us to the miniature golf course, yesterday. The boys had a great time, but you didn't need to do that."

"Not a problem. I enjoyed it too." He grinned. "I have this tiny problem. I care for this fantastic woman, who comes as a package deal. I also happen to care for her amazing family so not only do I need to win her over, I need to win her children over."

She set her timer. "I think it's safe to say you've already won her family over."

Gabriel's eyebrow rose. "Oh, I have," he paused, "What about the lady?"

She giggled and began running. "I'd say the verdict's still out." She stopped and turned her head as the dogs growled facing the street. "I thought he was in jail."

"I'm sure he is. They probably hired somebody else. I'm positive your in-laws are financing this." As they began running again, Gabriel asked, "What do I need to do win this lady over?"

She turned and faced him as their eyes met. "Everything you're already doing and remain patient."

"That'll be easy."

"Are your linemen ready to lose to a bunch of girls?"

"You know many teams have been beaten by over confidence."

"Believe me, I know. My girls are ready. They're up for this challenge."

"I was afraid of that."

"Do you need help with the dance?"

"I have a couple of ideas."

"Care to share?"

"With you?" He grinned. "No way! Don't think the way you set me up went unnoticed."

She laughed. "I don't know what you're talking about?"

As the timer went off and they turned around, Gabriel asked, "Any idea when you're calling the lawyer?"

"I think I'll try during my lunch. If I can't get through, then during my planning period."

"Is it okay if I come to your room?"

"You're actually asking?"

"I keep hearing a complaint that I push my way in. Now I'm asking." Gabriel chuckled. "If the answer's no, then I'll push my way in."

"Of course you're welcome. Have you ever not been?"

"Do you really want to me to answer that?"

"Probably not."

They stood on the sidewalk outside Katherine's house, when she said, "I guess I'd better go. One of my family members has early practice and his coach's a tyrant."

Grinning Gabriel added, "Yeah, Jeremy's awfully young for such treatment."

She started toward the house. "Real funny. I'll see you later."

"Sure will." He petted Reggie's head. "Let's go, boy. We'll have to wait until later to see them again."

*****
A little after two o'clock, Gabriel walked into Katherine's classroom. "Have you made the call?"

She shook her head. "No. I got busy over lunch." She watched him shut the door. "Thank you. How did lunch with Jeremy go?"

"It was fun. I enjoyed it."

"Thank you for taking time to do it."

"Next month there's a lunch with Grandpa."

Her hand went over her mouth. "Oh no! I wonder if Harold will be asked."

"I have feeling he will and I'm sure he'll be honored to attend."

Katherine held her cell phone. "Ready?"

"Are you? You may not like the answer."

"I know."

Gabriel pulled up a chair beside her desk. "I'm ready."

"Good." Katherine dialed the lawyer's number. After the greetings, she told him, "I have a friend here and you're on speaker phone."

Once the lawyer acknowledged it was all right, he said, "You're the second person in a couple of weeks to ask about that will."

"Oh really? Who was the first?"

"Your in-laws. Jackson and Janette Riley."

"Why?"

"They wanted to know if they could receive more money from their son's inheritance. When I told them no, they said they're contesting the will because they're sure their son wanted them taken care of for the rest of their life."

"Can they do that? I know they received a lump sum. Can you tell me how much that was?"

"Their lump sum was $150,000. I guess they spent it all ready." Silence for a few moments. "Yes, they can. I doubt their argument would stand. Your husband used a couple of really good lawyers to write it so nothing like that could happen."

"Did you explain that to them?"

"I did. Now what's reason for your call?"

"You pretty much answered it. George's parents suddenly started acting strange and I wondered if something was wrong with the will. From what you've said they received a reasonable amount and really don't have a reason to be upset."

"I'd say you're right. It's rare for a son, who's married and has a family to leave anything to his parents. They always leave the inheritance to their family."

"We were generously taken care of. I have no problem with him leaving them money. I still don't understand their recent behavior. Thank you for your time."

"The only way they're getting more money from this will is to get the children's inheritance. If I can help any further, please call. Good bye."

Katherine faced Gabriel. "Did that clear anything up?"

"We pretty much suspected they spent all the money. Now, I'm sure of it. How about you?" After she nodded, Gabriel continued, "So we wait and see what they'll do next."

"I guess so." She tapped a pencil on the desk.

Gabriel took her hand. "I'm by your side. We'll handle it together." He checked his radio and stood. "I'm needed. Is five o'clock okay for our race?"

"It is. See you then."




CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons. She teaches high school math and also coaches girls cross country.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Frank Collins math teacher

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Sandy Frost Rodney Frost's wife

Sam Auto repair shop owner

Bill Brooks Assistant football coach, Gabriel's friend, and Angie's husband.

Harold Hudson Gabriel's dad and football announcer.

Sandy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Judy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Rhonda Morgan Teenage girl on cross country team, and victim of dating violence.

Mr. and Mrs. Morgan Rhonda's parents.

Kenny Clark Teenager - Rhonda's boyfriend

Grace Former friend of Gabriel and featured in porn magazine

Janette & Jackson Riley Katherine's in-laws

Author Notes Thank you google images for the photo of a women making a phone call. I also want to thank everybody for the helpful reviews. I made changes again as I posted. Again, I hope I didn't make it worse. This novel is not actually about football, but is part of the background. High football is a national pastime in Texas. This post is a little over 940 words. Thank you for having patience with me.


Chapter 46
Football Chapter 23 part 2

By barbara.wilkey

Katherine and Gabriel have known each other for 25 days.

ENDING OF PREVIOUS POST:

"You pretty much answered it. George's parents suddenly started acting strange and I wondered if something was wrong with the will. From what you've said they received a reasonable amount and really don't have a reason to be upset."

"I'd say you're right. It's rare for a son who's married and has a family to leave anything to his parents. They always leave the inheritance to their family."

"We were generously taken care of. I have no problem with him leaving them money. I still don't understand their recent behavior. Thank you for your time."

"The only way they're getting more money from this will is to get the children's inheritance. If I can help any further, please call. Good bye."

Katherine faced Gabriel. "Did that clear anything up?"

"We pretty much suspected they spent all the money. Now, I'm sure of it. How about you?" After she nodded, Gabriel continued, "So we wait and see what they'll do next."

"I guess so." She tapped a pencil on the desk.

Gabriel took her hand. "I'm by your side. We'll handle it together." He checked his radio and stood. "I'm needed. Is five o'clock okay for our race?"

"It is. See you then."

TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 23 part 2


A few minutes before five o'clock, Katherine and the girls jogged to the First Street hill. Right behind them Gabriel and fifteen linemen jogged.

Katherine glanced at the boys. "Starting D-line stand off to my left side, please."

Gabriel grinned. "Come on, don't you trust me?"

"Not when it comes to losing. I witnessed that two point conversion during your first game." She smiled. "Starting O-line to my right side, please." She studied the last three players. "Who might these gentlemen be?"

"They're second string players."

"They only play the line?"

Mr. Edwards walked up and laughed. "I see she's checking out the opponent. Coach Hudson, your reputation for winning precedes you. Great call, Coach Riley."

Katherine glanced at her girls. "Team, should we allow these three boys to run?"

After the girls approved of the remaining three, she nodded. "Okay. Let's make sure we understand the rules. Up the hill twice and back down twice, right?" Katherine tilted her head. "Mr. Edwards, would you go up the hill and make sure everybody reaches it?"

Paul laughed. "Of course, Coach Riley. I wouldn't want any cheaters. You'll have to give me a few minutes to get up that thing."

As the girls watched Coach Hudson shake his head, they laughed.

Once Paul waved at the top, Gabriel asked, "Are we ready to start?" He hesitated. "I can't believe you."

"Just making sure my girls are taken care of."

Gabriel stood in front of the students and held up his whistle. "If Coach Riley agrees, when I blow the whistle the race begins. You'll run it twice. Everybody understand?" His eyes met one of his D-lineman. "Derek, two times, got it?"

He held up two fingers. "Yes, Coach, two times."

Gabriel started the count down. "On your mark, get set." He blew the whistle. The race began. He walked up to Derek. "You can start running now."

Derek nodded and took off.

Walking over to Katherine, Gabriel grinned. "Derek's a great kid and a good lineman. Before each play we need to remind him who he's tackling. I've assigned a player to help him with that." His eyes met hers. "You really think I'd cheat to win?"

"Not really cheat, but push the envelope to make sure everything's in your favor. Can you disagree?" She watched the race. "I watched Dad for seventeen years."

"I understand." He glanced up. "Here they come."

Katherine ran to the bottom of the hill, pointed. "Make sure you touch this line!"

All but two girls touched and continued up the hill. The linemen and the two girls touched and turned around.

"Where's the rest of the team?" asked Katherine.

"Conditioning. I didn't want them to witness the slaughter of their teammates."

Katherine watched the race. "It isn't a pretty sight, is it?"

Gabriel lifted his cap, scratched his head, and replaced it. "It sure isn't. Linemen aren't noted for their running ability."

"I know."

"I know you do. I'm also fully aware you set me up." His eyes twinkled. "I admire how easily you did it."

"Here they come." Katherine counted, "One girl, two girls..." and on. The final order was twelve girls, two boys, and then three girls, followed by the ending of thirteen boys.

The runners shook hands, visited with each other, and walked it out as everybody waited for Mr. Edwards, who stood and watched the students walking as they visited and laughed cooling down. "The boys were killed out there. How can they be joking now?"

Gabriel studied them for a few moments. "I think everybody understood it was a friendly match up and nobody took it seriously." He gently poked Katherine's arm. "You better not have messed up my teams' need to win."

"I'm sure the tyrant of a coach I keep hearing about will get them whipped back into shape..." she glanced at her watch, "within fifteen minutes." She raised her hand. "Girls, let's head back. We have training to do." She began jogging and the girls fell into line behind her.

*****
Gabriel and Paul watched as the boys stretched. Paul slapped Gabriel's shoulder. "You two are good together. How's it going?"

"If you're asking whether she forgave me for the Saturday's incident, the answer is yes. If you're asking if we're dating, the answer's no. We've agreed we both care for each other, but because of some issues we need to take it very slow. So that's what we're doing."

"Just don't take it so slow you lose her."

"Gotcha. Good advice." Gabriel started toward the boys. "I'll get these guys back. We've got a big game Friday."

*****
Katherine set the final plate on the dining room table as Jordan, Gabriel, and Reggie walked through the front door. Jordan grinned, "Mom, did the cross country team really slaughter the linemen?"

Her eyes twinkled as they met Gabriel's. "Is that what Coach Hudson told you?"

"He actually said it was so bad he had to turn his back. He couldn't watch."

She set two bowls of dog food down, one for each dog. "I wouldn't say it was quite that bad. Let's just say the running backs have job security." She watched the dogs scarf their food. Somebody knocked on the door, and she said, "While I get it, everyone sit. Dinner's ready."

As she answered the door, a tall slender man wearing a gray three-piece suit asked, "Are you Katherine Sarah Riley?"

"Yes, how can I help you?"

He handed her an envelope. "You've been served."

"What? I don't understand." Katherine watched the man walk away without further explanation. She shut the door. Standing by the door, she opened the envelope, slipped a folded paper out, and read. "No!"

Gabriel rushed to her side. "What?" He put his arms around her. "Let's go into the den." As he turned toward the boys, he said, "Jordan and Joshua take care of things." He shut the door and led her to the love-seat. "Sit." He sat beside her. "What's wrong?" Tears streamed down her cheeks as she held up the letter. "Can I read it?" She handed it to him.

After reading, Gabriel exhaled a deep breath. "Now we know what they're doing next." After a few moments of silence, he asked, "How can I help?"

"I need to be held."

"Just a second." After Gabriel closed the window blinds and curtains, he sat, and then drew her close. Kissing her forehead, he said, "I'll hold you as long as you need me."



CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons. She teaches high school math and also coaches girls cross country.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Frank Collins math teacher

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Sandy Frost Rodney Frost's wife

Sam Auto repair shop owner

Bill Brooks Assistant football coach, Gabriel's friend, and Angie's husband.

Harold Hudson Gabriel's dad and football announcer.

Sandy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Judy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Rhonda Morgan Teenage girl on cross country team, and victim of dating violence.

Mr. and Mrs. Morgan Rhonda's parents.

Kenny Clark Teenager - Rhonda's boyfriend

Grace Former friend of Gabriel and featured in porn magazine

Janette & Jackson Riley Katherine's in-laws

Author Notes Thank you google images for the photo of a hill. Like the one they'll be running for the hill challenge. I also want to thank everybody for the helpful reviews. I made many changes as I posted. I hope it's okay. Again, I hope I didn't make it worse. This novel is not actually about football, but is part of the background. High football is a national pastime in Texas. This post is a little over 1,100 words. Sorry about the length. Thank you for having patience with me.


Chapter 47
Football Chapter 23 part 3

By barbara.wilkey

Katherine and Gabriel have known each other for 25 days.

ENDING OF PREVIOUS POST:

As she answered the door, a tall slender man wearing a gray three-piece suit asked, "Are you Katherine Sarah Riley?"

"Yes, how can I help you?"

He handed her an envelope. "You've been served."

"What? I don't understand." Katherine watched the man walk away without further explanation. She shut the door. Standing by the door, she opened the envelope, slipped a folded paper out, and read. "No!"

Gabriel rushed to her side. "What?" He put his arms around her. "Let's go into the den." As he turned toward the boys, he said, "Jordan and Joshua take care of things." He shut the door and led her to the love-seat. "Sit." He sat beside her. "What's wrong?" Tears streamed down her cheeks as she held up the letter. "Can I read it?" She handed it to him.

After reading, Gabriel exhaled a deep breath. "Now we know what they're doing next." After a few moments of silence, he asked, "How can I help?"

"I need to be held."

"Just a second." After Gabriel closed the window blinds and curtains, he sat, and then drew her close. Kissing her forehead, he said, "I'll hold you as long as you need me."

TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 23 part 3

Later that evening, Jordan knocked on the door and then cracked it slightly. "Mom, the dishes are done. There's a plate in the fridge for each of you. Jeremy took his bath, Joshua read him his story, Reggie's in bed with him. If there's nothing else, I'm going to my room." He closed the door.

Katherine raised her head and placed her hand on Gabriel's damp shirt. "I'm sorry I got it wet."

"My shirt's the least of my worries. How can I help?"

She ignored his question. "I guess I need to check on the boys. I'm sure you're starving by now."

His arms remained around her. "Katherine, I know you're hurting and scared. Please talk to me. Don't block me out. Let me help."

"I can't believe they want my boys. Do they really think I'm a horrible mother? Why is this the first time I'm hearing it?" Tears crept from her eyes.

Gabriel drew her tighter. "You're a great mom. It has nothing to do with your mothering skills. It has to do with money."

"If they'll forget this nonsense, I'll hand over the money." Katherine glanced up at him. "Think if I give them money, they'll forget about taking the boys? They've never shown any interest in them."

"They'll go through that and want more. This'll be a continuous problem."

Katherine reached for a tissue and blew her nose. "Sorry. You're right. Any ideas how I should handle this?"

"I might be able to help in two ways." Gabriel's eyes met hers. "First, from my pro-days I have access to lawyers. Some of my friends needed good custody lawyers. I can help with that." He released a deep breath. "From the conversation with them Sunday, they're going to use our relationship against you. They're going to say I'm a bad influence on the boys. As long as we're together, I'm a liability."

Again tears rolled down Katherine's cheeks. "Are you breaking up with me?"

"I don't want to, but..."

"No, that's not the answer," interrupted Katherine. "You're a good influence on them." She thought. "Are the lawyers you mentioned good?" After he nodded, she continued, "We'll go that route.

"I'll come to your room during tomorrow's break, and we'll make that call." His stomach growled.

"We'd better get you fed." Katherine leaned into and tightly held him for a few moments. "Okay, I'm ready."

"If you're sure?"

Her eyes met his. "To be honest, I'm not sure of anything right now." She stood. "I'll check on the boys then reheat dinner."

As Katherine started up the stairs, Gabriel followed. "I'm coming too."

They both smiled as they checked Jeremy's bedroom. He and Reggie were asleep, and Jeremy's arm was around the large dog's neck.

They checked on Joel and Joshua. When Katherine knocked on Jordan's door, he said, "Mom?"

She opened the door.

He motioned for her to come in. When he saw Gabriel standing in the hall, he said, "Coach, you can come in too." After they entered, he continued, "I know something's going on and I know it's big. Mom, you were crying. What made you cry? Are you okay?"

She sat on the bed beside her eldest son. "I'm fine."

"You're not fine. Your eyes say you've been crying a lot." Jordan's eyes met Gabriel's. "Coach, you tell it like it is. What's going on?"

Gabriel studied the ceiling. "It's not my place to say. It's your mom's decision."

"Mom?"

Katherine glanced at Gabriel as he nodded. "He already knows something's wrong. He'll eventually find out."

"Jordan, please don't say anything to your brothers, at least not now. We don't have all the information." When Katherine released a deep breath, Gabriel came closer and put his hand on her arm. She added, "Your grandparents have filed for custody of you boys."

"That's why they had all those boarding school pamphlets, isn't it?"

"I don't know, but probably."

"They don't even like us. Why'd they do that?"

"My guess is they want your trust funds."

"Since they want our money, why don't you just give it to them? I don't want the money."

Gabriel stepped closer. "Your mom has already offered that as a suggestion, but once they go through that, they'll try again. We probably should stop it now."

Jordan's eyes met Gabriel's. "Like you always say, we need a strong offense and a stronger defense to win the game. We can't just have one or the other." He sighed. "Mom, you're going to fight for us, aren't you?"

She hugged her son. "I'm going to fight with every ounce of strength I have. Tomorrow Gabriel's going to contact a lawyer and ask if he'll help us." She squeezed her son's hand. "Don't worry about this. We're on it." She leaned over and kissed his cheek. "You need to turn off your light. It's getting late." She started to leave the room.

Jordan called, "Coach?" After Katherine left, he said, "Please be there for Mom."

Gabriel patted Jordan's shoulder. "Don't worry. I will."

At the bottom of the stairs, Katherine asked, "What did Jordan want?"

"He wanted to make sure I'd help you through this." Gabriel put his arm around her waist and led her toward the kitchen. "I've heard rumors of food."

After they ate and cleaned up, Gabriel said, "I noticed you didn't eat. With everything going on, you need to eat to keep up your strength."

"I know. I'm not hungry right now."

"Okay." Gabriel turned toward the Grandfather clock as it chimed. "It's eleven." He hesitated. "Are you going to be all right? I'll sleep on the couch if you need me."

"I'll be fine. That'd be all the ammunition my in-laws needed."

He chuckled. "We could leave the front door open, so the P.I. could see me."

"Really, I'll be fine."

"Since Reggie's already asleep, I'll leave him. Promise you'll wake him for our run. He'll sleep through it if he has his way."

"I promise."

He leaned over and kissed her cheek. "If you need me, I'm only a phone call away."

Katherine nodded and whispered, "I know."





CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons. She teaches high school math and also coaches girls cross country.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Frank Collins math teacher

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Sandy Frost Rodney Frost's wife

Sam Auto repair shop owner

Bill Brooks Assistant football coach, Gabriel's friend, and Angie's husband.

Harold Hudson Gabriel's dad and football announcer.

Sandy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Judy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Rhonda Morgan Teenage girl on cross country team, and victim of dating violence.

Mr. and Mrs. Morgan Rhonda's parents.

Kenny Clark Teenager - Rhonda's boyfriend

Grace Former friend of Gabriel and featured in porn magazine

Janette & Jackson Riley Katherine's in-laws

Author Notes Thank you google images for the photo of a lawsuit. I also want to thank everybody for the helpful reviews. I made many changes as I posted. I hope it's okay. Again, I hope I didn't make it worse. This novel is not actually about football, but is part of the background. High football is a national pastime in Texas. This post is a little over 1,000 words. Sorry about the length. Thank you for having patience with me.


Chapter 48
Football Chapter 24 part 1

By barbara.wilkey

Katherine and Gabriel have known each other for 27 days.

ENDING OF PREVIOUS POST:

"Okay." Gabriel turned toward the Grandfather clock as it chimed. "It's eleven." He hesitated. "Are you going to be all right? I'll sleep on the couch if you need me."

"I'll be fine. That'd be all the ammunition my in-laws needed."

He chuckled. "We could leave the front door open, so the P.I. could see me."

"Really, I'll be fine."

"Since Reggie's already asleep, I'll leave him. Promise you'll wake him for our run. He'll sleep through it if he has his way."

"I promise."

He leaned over and kissed her cheek. "If you need me, I'm only a phone call away."

Katherine nodded and whispered, "I know."

TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 24 part 1

Thursday morning, when Katherine and Daisy joined Gabriel and Reggie for their early run, Gabriel asked, "Did you sleep any better than you did Tuesday night?"

She set her timer. "Considering I didn't sleep at all that night, yes. I got a few hours."

"I'd hoped speaking to the lawyer yesterday would help."

As they ran, she said, "It did. Maybe when we meet with him Saturday, I'll feel better."

"I hope so. With your schedule, you're going to crash if you don't get some sleep. Is there any way I can help?"

"Just be supportive and you're already doing that." Katherine released a deep breath. "Changing the subject, how's your dance coming for the pep rally?"

"Good, really good. My boys are all over this. We have quite a surprise planned."

The timer went off and they turned around. The dogs paused and growled. Gabriel stopped. "I wonder if I confronted the guy he'd stop."

She placed her hand on his arm. "Please don't. I'm sure it'll only make matters worse."

Eyeing her hand on his arm, Gabriel patted it. "You're right." They continued running. "You know, back in the day..."

"You would've already handled him," interrupted Katherine. "But this is the new you."

"Sometimes the old me had its advantages."

They stood outside her house. "You might be right."

"Don't worry. I won't do anything that could possibly put you and the boys in jeopardy."

"I know. I'll see you at school." She jogged to her steps and then turned and waved.

Gabriel petted his buddy's head. "Reggie, I'm in love with her. Now what?" He continued to the gym.

*****
When Gabriel entered Katherine's classroom, he saw her head between her hands and asked, "Rough day?"

"No. It's going well. I'm just really tired. I hope I get some sleep tonight." Katherine pointed to a paper in his hand. "What's that?"

"I hope you get some sleep tonight, too." Gabriel glanced at the paper. "I need to speak to you about this. My starting center's failing geometry. He won't be able to play in Friday's game if you don't do something about it."

"It's not me that needs to do anything about it. It's your center. Are we talking about Jimmy Scott?"

After Gabriel nodded, Katherine opened her grade book. "We've had two assessments, one last week and one yesterday. He not only failed them, but he didn't get a single answer correct on either test. If he just needed a point or two, I'd give it to him. He's so low I can't do anything. I won't fix grades just so you can win a football game. That doesn't help the student. Athletes need to get the grades just like everybody else. You need to be concerned about the whole child."

"I am concerned about my teams' grades. That's why I'm here. I'm not surprised he didn't get any correct answers on a written test. I'm not asking you to fix his grades. I know he knows the material. He needs to be tested differently."

"What is he, a junior?" Gabriel nodded, and then she continued, "He should know by now how to take a test."

"He struggles with written tests. If you ask him the questions, he can verbally give you the correct answer. He can't read and write." Gabriel paused. "The purpose of math tests is to check the students' math knowledge, right? Not how well they read and write? He knows the answers."

Katherine stood. "Are you questioning my ability to assess my students?"

Gabriel released a deep breath. "With everything you have going on right now, it's not the time to discuss this." He turned to leave and said over his shoulder. "We'll talk later.

As he left the room, he noticed Jose wondering the hallway. "Jose, get to class."

"Yes, Coach. On my way."

Gabriel watched until Jose entered a classroom.

*****
Katherine studied her geometry class as they entered the room. When Jimmy entered, her gaze followed him to his seat. Is Gabriel right? Does Jimmy really understand geometry?

She assigned the class some problems to work in small groups and asked Jimmy to come to her desk. She set copies of the two tests she had already given in front of him. She pointed to the first test. "Jimmy, please read number one to me."

He struggled, but eventually stumbled through it.

When he finished, she asked, "What is it asking you to do?"

He stuttered and couldn't tell her.

"It's okay, Jimmy." After Katherine explained what he was to do, she asked, "Can you work the problem for me?"

He scribbled down a few numbers and gave her the correct answer.

Katherine smiled. "I have no idea how you did it, but that's correct." She continued reading and explaining what he was to do on both tests. Jimmy's grade-point-average rose to a 91 percent.

*****
After class Katherine refilled out the eligibility form, took it to the office, and handed it to Nancy, Mr. Edwards' secretary.

Nancy glanced at it. "Is this a corrected eligibility form?" When Katherine acknowledged it was, she said, "Just a minute. Mr. Edwards needs to speak to you about it."

Katherine's eyebrows scrunched to together. "I've got cross country practice."

"I'm sorry, but the schools are being checked by the UIL (University Interscholastic League) to make sure we're keeping up with the student's academics."

*****
By the time Katherine arrived at practice, the girls were already running the hill. Angie came up to her. "I figured this is what you wanted them to do. Thank you for texting me that you were hung up in the office."

"Sorry. Thank you for starting practice."

Angie grinned. "Your hunky coach was looking for you."

"I'm surprised. He's peeved with me. Our starting center was failing my class."

"You said was?"

"I retested him orally and he's getting an A. Nobody told me how poorly he reads."

"You must be talking about Jimmy." After Katherine nodded, Angie continued, "It's sad. He's been in all sorts of special programs, but for some reason nothing's worked."

"Now I know. So we shouldn't have any more problems."

*****
Gabriel called the linemen together. "Tomorrow we perform our dance. Get in your lines." He waited. "Good. I'll ask the girls to line up across from you." He hesitated. "I don't want you to worry about who's lined up across from you. Just put up with it for a few minutes."

The rest of the team watched. Jose said, "Aren't you and Coach Riley supposed to start the dance?" After Gabriel agreed, Jose continued, "But she's angry with you. What if she refuses to dance?"

"Nothing's private here." He shook his head. "Yes, she's upset with me because I questioned some grades she gave one of you knuckle heads. One of you is failing and won't be able to play tomorrow. I asked her to retest him. She wasn't happy about it. We're both professionals, so I'm sure it'll work out."

After practice, Bill walked up to Gabriel. "Want me to go to the Quarterback Club meeting tonight so you can talk with Katherine?"

"I hadn't thought about that." Gabriel thought a moment. "No, I'd better do it. Katherine will do what she needs to do. I'll see her in the morning for our run."

*****
As Katherine finished setting the table, Jordan walked through the front door. "Hi, Mom."

"Hello." She glanced around him. "Didn't Gabriel bring you home?"

"Nope, Coach Brooks did. He said he had a Quarterback Club meeting he needed to attend. Something about switching banks. He told me to remind you and he'd see you in the morning. He also said if you need anything call."

"Thank you. I'd forgotten that meeting was tonight. Let's eat."

*****
Around nine o'clock, Jordan answered his mom's ringing phone. "Hello, Coach?"

"Jordan? Where's your mom?"

"She fell asleep on the couch. Do you want me to wake her?"

"No. She needs the sleep. Just let her know I called. Unless she wakes up on her own, don't wake her for our run, but in time to get to school, deal?"

"Deal. Thanks, Coach."

"For what?"

"Looking after her."

"You're welcome, bye."






CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons. She teaches high school math and also coaches girls cross country.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Frank Collins math teacher

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Sandy Frost Rodney Frost's wife

Sam Auto repair shop owner

Bill Brooks Assistant football coach, Gabriel's friend, and Angie's husband.

Harold Hudson Gabriel's dad and football announcer.

Sandy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Judy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Rhonda Morgan Teenage girl on cross country team, and victim of dating violence.

Mr. and Mrs. Morgan Rhonda's parents.

Kenny Clark Teenager - Rhonda's boyfriend

Grace Former friend of Gabriel and featured in porn magazine

Janette & Jackson Riley Katherine's in-laws

Author Notes Thank you google images for an image of a geometry test. I also want to thank everybody for the helpful reviews. I made many changes as I posted. I hope it's okay. Again, I hope I didn't make it worse. This novel is not actually about football, but is part of the background. High football is a national pastime in Texas. This post is a little under 1,400 words. Sorry about the length. Thank you for having patience with me.


Chapter 49
Football Chapter 25 part 1

By barbara.wilkey

Katherine and Gabriel have known each other for 28 days.

ENDING OF PREVIOUS POST:

Around nine o'clock, Jordan answered his mom's ringing phone. "Hello, Coach?"

"Jordan? Where's your mom?"

"She fell asleep on the couch. Do you want me to wake her?"

"No. She needs the sleep. Just let her know I called. Unless she wakes up on her own, don't wake her for our run, but in time to get to school, deal?"

"Deal. Thanks, Coach."

"For what?"

"Looking after her."

"You're welcome, bye."

TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 25 part 1

I hope I catch up with Gabriel before school. Katherine stopped by the office and set his two cups of coffee and his breakfast sack on the counter. "Has Coach been by this morning?"

Nancy smiled. "Sorry, Mrs. Riley. I haven't seen him. Want me to tell him you're looking for him?"

"Not necessary. I'll eventually catch up with him. It's not that important." She opened the door to leave and then paused. "Do you know if he's seen the updated non-eligible form?"

"No clue, sorry."

"Okay, thank you."

As she walked to her classroom, she saw Angie. "Good morning. I'm curious what Gabriel has planned for today's pep rally. Has Bill said anything?"

"Not a word. I've asked him several times, but he's refused to talk. It seems to be a secret. That sort of scares me."

Katherine laughed. "Me too. He's mentioned a few times that I set him up with the parameters of the hill race, so I'm afraid he's setting me up. He wouldn't do that, would he?"

Angie laughed. "He would, but in a fun sort of way."

"You're probably right."

*****
After the student body entered the gymnasium for the pep rally, Gabriel took the microphone and welcomed everyone. "Now, as you heard in Wednesday's morning announcements, my linemen were slightly beaten by the girls' cross country team. It was a really close race. We were beaten by such a slight margin I'm surprised it wasn't called a tie."

His eyes twinkled as they met Katherine's. "Now, we must live up to our part of the deal and perform a dance. Linemen, come on up and get into your line." He waited until they were situated. "Give these gentlemen a hand."

Gabriel paused while the students clapped. "We feel since this is the final pep rally until Homecoming and we only lost by a slight margin we should include the ladies in our performance. Coach Riley, would you please line up your team one in front of each lineman about two feet away?"

As the girls stood, they all looked at Katherine for guidance. She shrugged her shoulders and mouthed. "I don't know."

Taking Katherine's hand, Gabriel said, "I need you to stand here. I hope you know the 'The Stroll' because that's what we're doing. Ladies, if you don't know the dance, follow the linemen." He stood opposite Katherine and nodded for Mr. Edwards to start the music.

After the music began, Gabriel winked at Katherine and they strolled down the line.

Katherine glanced up at him. "I can't believe you."

He grinned. "I told you I had an idea where linemen could excel."

They went to the end of the line and danced until every partner strolled down the line.

After the dance, he held the microphone and said, "Give them a big Silver Cove Bears' applause." He reached over and gave Katherine a brief hug. "Thank you."

The cheerleaders and the band took over the pep rally.

*****
As Katherine stood under a shade tree, waiting for the girls to join her, Gabriel walked up. "Just stretching again?"

She nodded. "Yes. Jordan told me last night you called."

"I did. I hope you got some badly needed sleep."

"I think I was so tired my body took over."

"I agree." He removed his cap, ran his hand through his hair, and replaced it. "What did you think of our dance?"

"I thought it was wonderful." She shook her head. "But we only slightly beat you? It was a slaughter."

Gabriel chuckled. "I had to let the boys keep their pride."

Katherine exhaled. "I retested Jimmy."

"I know. I got the corrected eligibility form. Thank you. I appreciate it." He stretched a finger and touched her hand. "We okay?"

She took his hand in hers, squeezed it, and then let go. "We're good. But I'm not fixing grades just to ensure you win a game."

His walkie-talkie went off. "I'm needed. We'll talk later."

*****
Katherine and the boys arrived at the stadium and sat in their usual spot. Before long the girls cross country team arrived and sat with them.

Just before the team reentered the locker room, Gabriel came up to the railing. "It's going to be a close game tonight. They're bigger and have speed."

"So it's going to be one of those who ever makes the least amount of mistakes wins game?" After he nodded, Katherine continued, "I'm sure you won't be out coached."

"Never know. Thompson's a good coach." He watched the boys start toward the locker room. "I need to leave."

"Good luck."

He waved as he left.

At the end of the first quarter, there was no score. Each team had failed to get a first down. At the beginning of the second quarter, the Wildcat's immediately scored. It was now 7-to-0.

Angie came by and sat beside Katherine. She patted her knee. "I warned you that Gabe could get animated. Are you okay?"

"I'm not surprised. I'm fine. I remember Dad being a little vocal during the games. I hope he doesn't get thrown out."

"That's only happened once. Matter-of-fact, Bill got thrown out, too." She laughed. "Mr. Edwards finished coaching the game."

"I would've enjoyed watching that."

Angie stood. "I need to get back to my area."

The two minute warning sounded before half-time. The Bears had the ball. Gabriel turned around and his eyes met Katherine's, then he faced the field.

I wonder what that was about. Katherine held her breath.

The quarterback called cadence and the play began. It was a quarterback sneak, but after running a few yards, he handed the ball to Jordan. Jordan ran thirty yards for a touchdown. He was hit hard from behind and went down. He didn't get up. The trainer and Gabriel ran to him.

Katherine stood at the railing watching and willing him to stand. Angie came over and put her arm around Katherine's shoulders. "He'll get up. I know he will."

He didn't.

Reggie ran out and lay beside Jordan.

Gabriel glanced toward Katherine and then motioned for the ambulance.

Tears streamed down her cheeks.


The Stroll - Thank you YouTube











CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons. She teaches high school math and also coaches girls cross country.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Frank Collins math teacher

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Sandy Frost Rodney Frost's wife

Sam Auto repair shop owner

Bill Brooks Assistant football coach, Gabriel's friend, and Angie's husband.

Harold Hudson Gabriel's dad and football announcer.

Sandy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Judy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Rhonda Morgan Teenage girl on cross country team, and victim of dating violence.

Mr. and Mrs. Morgan Rhonda's parents.

Kenny Clark Teenager - Rhonda's boyfriend

Grace Former friend of Gabriel and featured in porn magazine

Janette & Jackson Riley Katherine's in-laws

Author Notes Thank you google images for an image of 'The Stroll'. I also want to thank everybody for the helpful reviews. I rewrote many areas as I posted. I hope it's okay. Again, I hope I didn't make it worse. This novel is not actually about football, but is part of the background. High football is a national pastime in Texas. This post is a little under 1,000 words. Sorry about the length. Thank you for having patience with me.


Chapter 50
Football Chapter 25 part 2

By barbara.wilkey

Katherine and Gabriel have known each other for 28 days.

ENDING OF PREVIOUS POST:

The quarterback called cadence and the play began. It was a quarterback sneak, but after running a few yards, he handed the ball to Jordan. Jordan ran thirty yards for a touchdown. He was hit hard from behind and went down. He didn't get up. The trainer and Gabriel ran to him.

Katherine stood at the railing watching and willing him to stand. Angie came over and put her arm around Katherine's shoulders. "He'll get up. I know he will."

He didn't.

Reggie ran out and lay beside Jordan.

Gabriel glanced toward Katherine and then motioned for the ambulance.

Tears streamed down her cheeks.


TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 25 part 2


As Gabriel waited for the ambulance, he punched a number on his phone. "Dad." He listened. "Yes, it's bad. Have Mom get Kate's house keys from Sarah and take the boys home. That'll free Kate to go to the hospital. Have Mom take my truck and Reggie. Also have her tell Sarah to meet us there. Kate's going to need her mom." Silence. "Thanks, Dad"

*****
Katherine left the boys with Angie and hurried to the hospital. When she arrived, Gabriel stood to greet her. She ran up to him and repeatedly slugged his chest yelling, "All you care about is winning! You don't care about the boys! You'll risk their lives to win! Why'd you attempt that risky play? Now my baby's lying in the hospital!"

She began sobbing and fell into his chest. Gabriel put his arms around her and kissed the top of her head. "I'm sorry."

They remained like that until the doctor came from examining Jordan and offered his hand. "Hello, Coach. We meet again." He faced Katherine. "Mrs. Riley?" As she dried her tears, she nodded, and he continued, "I'm Dr. Martin. I just examined your son. He's remained unconscious. I'm not sure of his prognosis. That'll depend on what happens within the next hour or two. The X-ray shows only slight swelling. He should come out of it soon, then we'll know if there's any spinal cord damage or brain damage and to what extent. The longer he remains unconscious, the more we have to worry about."

Katherine closed her eyes. "No!" She walked away from both men.

She turned her head when she heard the repeated call of her name. She ran and threw her arms around her mom.

The waiting began.

While Katherine stood by Jordan's door, Sarah went over to Gabriel and hugged him. "She's upset. When Jordan recovers, she'll forgive you."

He nodded. "I hope so."

After about an hour, Bill and Angie arrived. Angie went straight to Katherine and hugged her.

Bill went to Gabriel. They shook hands and then pulled each other close.

Katherine walked up to Bill. "Did you win the game?"

"We did fourteen-to-fifteen."

Her eyes met Gabriel's as she pointed toward Jordan's room. "I hope Jordan lying in that bed is worth the win. Another one under your belt." She walked away.

Both Angie and Sarah put their arms around Katherine. They also glanced back at Gabriel and mouthed, "Sorry."

*****
Bill exhaled. "Moms don't handle their child being injured well."

"I know. With Kate, it's more than that. Her anger goes back to childhood. She felt her dad loved winning a football game more than her."

"That's got to hurt."

"That's why she married George. He was the opposite of a jock."

"From what I understand he treated her horribly. Then you came along. Totally a jock." Bill hesitated. "Things are starting to make sense. It's obvious she cares about you."

"But is it enough?" He studied the door Jordan was behind. "And now her son's injured because of me."

"No," said Bill louder than intended. His voice lowered, "It's not your fault. Besides it was Jordan's play. He'd been begging you to try it. It worked. That play won the game for us. It was a late hit that put him down."

"I'm the head coach. It ultimately falls on me."

As the doctor walked out of Jordan's room, all eyes stared at him.

He shook his head. "Sorry, still unconscious."

Tears rolled down Katherine's cheeks. Gabriel started toward her but stopped.

Bill touched his buddy's shoulder. "Go to her, she needs you."

"I'm the last person she wants." Gabriel motioned for Angie to come to him. "We're in for a long night. You and Bill go home and get some sleep. You're going to have to coach the cross country meet together. Have Dad play that fight song to get the girls ready. You know what to do." He wiped his mouth. "Win this one for Kate. I'll call if anything changes."

Angie put her arms around Gabriel. "She's hurting and scared."

"I know."

*****
About midnight, Katherine yelled, "The boys. I forgot the boys. I'd left them with Angie. Mom, the boys need you. Go."

Sarah put her hand on Katherine's arm. "Sweetheart, Gabe took care of that. He had his mom take the boys home. His parents are with them."

Katherine glanced at him, swallowed, and then looked away. "Mom, why don't you go home? You've got to be tired. I'll be all right."

Sarah's eyes met Gabriel's. When he nodded, she said, "Okay, call me if there's any change. I'll probably be more useful helping with the boys."

"I promise I'll call." Katherine hugged her mom and then watched her leave.

Dr. Martin allowed Katherine to enter Jordan's room and wait.

Just after one o'clock his eyes fluttered. "Mom?"

She yelled and hugged her son. "You're awake!" She kissed his cheek.

Gabriel ran in.

Jordan's eyes met his. "Coach, my play worked! We scored!"

Katherine's eyebrows scrunched together. "What? You've been unconscious for hours and the first thing you talk about is football?"

"Mom, I worked out this play and have been trying to get Coach to let me try it. He finally did and..."

"Well, young man," interrupted the doctor as he rushed in. "I see you woke up. How do you feel?"

"I've got a massive headache, but other than that I'm fine. My stomach's a little queasy."

Dr. Martin faced Katherine. "I need to examine the patient, but it appears he's doing fine. He just gave us a scare."

Gabriel left the room.

A few moments later Katherine left and walked to Gabriel. "Why didn't you tell me that play was Jordan's idea?"

"Two reasons, first you didn't give me a chance and second, you weren't in any mood to listen to anything I had to say."

Katherine walked away. "You're probably right."

Gabriel started to say something, but stopped. She needs more time.

As the doctor left Jordan's room, he said, "I want to keep him the rest of the night for observation and re-examine him in the morning. All indications are that he'll make a full recovery."

Gabriel had been standing off to the side, but stepped forward. "Is there any way his mom can remain in the room with him?"

Dr. Martin faced Katherine. "I'll make that happen.

Katherine chewed on her bottom lip and then whispered, "Thank you."

Gabriel nodded and backed away.



CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons. She teaches high school math and also coaches girls cross country.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Frank Collins math teacher

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Sandy Frost Rodney Frost's wife

Sam Auto repair shop owner

Bill Brooks Assistant football coach, Gabriel's friend, and Angie's husband.

Harold Hudson Gabriel's dad and football announcer.

Sandy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Judy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Rhonda Morgan Teenage girl on cross country team, and victim of dating violence.

Mr. and Mrs. Morgan Rhonda's parents.

Kenny Clark Teenager - Rhonda's boyfriend

Grace Former friend of Gabriel and featured in porn magazine

Janette & Jackson Riley Katherine's in-laws

Dr. Martin Jordan's doctor


Author Notes Thank you google images for a photo of a hospital waiting room. I also want to thank everybody for the helpful reviews. Yesterday, I rewrote many areas of this post. Not only that, I just made additional changes. This novel has been complete since Christmas. I reread it all the time and still can't get it the way I want it. I hope it's okay. Again, I hope I didn't make it worse. This novel is not actually about football, but is part of the background. High football is a national pastime in Texas. This post is a little over 1,000 words. Thank you for having patience with me.


Chapter 51
Football Chapter 26 part 1

By barbara.wilkey

Katherine and Gabriel have known each other for 29 days.

ENDING OF PREVIOUS POST:

Dr. Martin faced Katherine. "I need to examine the patient, but it appears he's doing fine. He just gave us a scare."

Gabriel left the room.

A few moments later Katherine left and walked to Gabriel. "Why didn't you tell me that play was Jordan's idea?"

"Two reasons, first you didn't give me a chance and second, you weren't in any mood to listen to anything I had to say."

Katherine walked away. "You're probably right."

Gabriel started to say something, but stopped. She needs more time.

As the doctor left Jordan's room, he said, "I want to keep him the rest of the night for observation and re-examine him in the morning. All indications are that he'll make a full recovery."

Gabriel had been standing off to the side, but stepped forward. "Is there any way his mom can remain in the room with him?"

Dr. Martin faced Katherine. "I'll make that happen.

Katherine chewed on her bottom lip and then whispered, "Thank you."

Gabriel nodded and backed away.

TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 26 part 1

Early Saturday morning, Dr. Martin came and examined Jordan. "When I finish, I want a MRI done to make sure I'm not missing anything. If all goes well, you both should be home by early afternoon."

As Katherine left the room, Gabriel stood. "How's Jordan this morning?"

She studied him a few moments before she placed her hands one on each side of his cheeks and felt the roughness. "You spent the night here?"

A nurse walked by. "Good morning, Coach. Spend another night at the hospital?"

Katherine turned. "Excuse me, but he does this often?"

The nurse smiled. "Any time a player of any sport comes here we can expect Coach taking up residence until that player's released."

Facing Gabriel, Katherine's eyebrows rose. "Any sport?"

He nodded. "I feel it's my job as Athletic Director. It's my responsibility to be there for all the athletes and their parents, no matter what the sport." He hesitated. "I care about all kids, not just the football players."

"Gabriel, I've said and thought some horrible things."

He cupped her elbow in his hand and led her to a waiting room chair. "I know." He hesitated. "I'm used to it. Moms don't handle their children getting injured well."

Katherine swallowed. "I know you. I should've trusted more."

"Under the circumstances, I understand." He used his finger to caress her cheek. "Growing up you felt your dad loved football more than you. Am I right?" When she nodded, he continued, "So that led you to marry George, the complete opposite of a jock. He treated you horribly."

Her eyes met his. "Then you came into my life. You're a bigger than life jock, arrogant, pushy, incredibly handsome, everything I despised in a man." She inhaled and held it until she couldn't anymore. "And I'm falling in love with you. It scares me."

"Understood." Gabriel held her hand. "If it makes you feel any better, I'm falling in love with you. My bachelorhood's in jeopardy. I have no idea what to do or how to handle it. I'm used to always being in control of every situation. Now, I'm not."

Gabriel's phone rang. "It's Mom. Sorry, I need to take this." When she nodded, he continued, "Hello." He listened and then filled her in on Jordan. A silence followed. "Mom, just a minute. Let me discuss it with Kate." He faced Katherine. "We have a meeting at three o'clock with the lawyer. Should she keep the boys until after that?"

"Probably, but that's a long time for your parents. Tell them thank you, but..."

"Mom, keep the boys until about dinner time," interrupted Gabriel. "I'll supply dinner, don't lift a finger. I mean it. You have to promise not to fix dinner."

When Gabriel put the phone away, Katherine studied him. "What are you fixing for dinner?"

He shook his head. "I have no clue." He glanced at his watch. "I have about nine hours to figure something out."

Katherine covered Gabriel's hand with hers. "I owe you an apology."

He grinned. "Probably. But I understand. Look at all the pressure you've been under since getting the custody notice. How many hours of sleep have you had since Tuesday?"

"Maybe four or five."

"I'd like to believe that played more into it than anything else."

"You're being generous."

Chuckling Gabriel added, "Remember that the next time you're ready to thrash me."

"I'll try." He studied her hands covering his and placed his other hand on top. "I believe together we can get through anything. We need to lean on each other's strengths. We can't lose sight of that."

"But I do most of the leaning."

"Because of you I strive to be the best I can."

An orderly rolled Jordan back into his room. Once he was set, Katherine and Gabriel walked into the room. Jordan sighed. "Can I go home now?"

Katherine took his hand. "It depends on what the tests show. We have to wait a little longer."

"I can't wait to get home." Jordan released a deep breath and then his eyes met his mom's. "I messed up your cross country meet. I'm sorry."

She hugged her son. "You're way more important than any sporting event. Please don't ever think differently."

Gabriel held up his phone. "Bill texted me a few minutes ago. The girls won their meet." He shook his head. "I guess I forgot to tell you. Bill and Angie coached it."

"I'm sure they did a great job. Probably better than I could do."

Gabriel put his hands on her shoulders and turned her around. "You're a great coach. You have a special connection with the girls. I don't want to hear you cut yourself down anymore. Understand?"

She nodded. "The self-esteem issue?"

"Yes. We need to change that."

"Just ignore the teenager in the room," teased Jordan.

Katherine faced her son. "I'm sorry."

All heads turned when Dr. Martin walked in.

Jordan was the first to speak. "Can I go home?"

The doctor held up papers and smiled. "You can with a few restrictions."

"I can still play football, can't I?" interrupted Jordan.

Gabriel walked over and put his hand on Jordan's shoulder. "Don't rush things. Listen to what the doc has to say."

"Sorry, Sir. What are the restrictions?"

With a wink at Gabriel, Dr. Martin continued, "Yes, you can continue to play." He faced Coach. "I have a special helmet ordered. Hopefully, you have it by the end of the week." He glanced at Katherine and then focused back at Jordan. "I want you to completely rest for the entire weekend. You can go to school Monday morning. As for football practice, only light conditioning."

When he faced Gabriel again, coach nodded. "I'll see that happens."

Jordan released a deep breath. "But if I don't practice, I can't play in Friday's game."

Katherine gasped, and then Gabriel reached over and put his arm around her waist. "I got this. Don't worry."

Dr. Martin grinned. "As for playing Friday, that's between you and Coach. But, and it's a huge but, you have to be headache free for at least twenty-four hours before you play. And I mean headache free, no pretending there's no headache, no taking OTC pain medicine and saying there's no headache. Do you understand?"

"Yes, Sir."

He handed Katherine the paper he had been holding. "Here's a list of do's and don'ts. He should make a full recovery. If you have any questions, I highlighted my number. I think Coach has it on speed dial, anyway." He pointed to a section of the paper. "If you see any of these symptoms, call me and bring him in immediately."

Katherine nodded. "Thank you, Sir."

"If there aren't any questions, I'll send the nurse in to get this young man checked out."

Gabriel offered his hand. "Thank you. We appreciate it."

The doctor leaned in and whispered, "I take it Mom isn't a huge fan of football."

Grinning, Gabriel answered, "She was warming to it and then this."



CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons. She teaches high school math and also coaches girls cross country.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Frank Collins math teacher

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Sandy Frost Rodney Frost's wife

Sam Auto repair shop owner

Bill Brooks Assistant football coach, Gabriel's friend, and Angie's husband.

Harold Hudson Gabriel's dad and football announcer.

Sandy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Judy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Rhonda Morgan Teenage girl on cross country team, and victim of dating violence.

Mr. and Mrs. Morgan Rhonda's parents.

Kenny Clark Teenager - Rhonda's boyfriend

Grace Former friend of Gabriel and featured in porn magazine

Janette & Jackson Riley Katherine's in-laws

Dr. Martin Jordan's doctor



Author Notes Thank you google images for a photo of a hospital room. I also want to thank everybody for the helpful reviews. I reread it all the time and still can't get it the way I want it. I hope it's okay. Again, I hope I didn't make it worse. This novel is not actually about football, but is part of the background. High football is a national pastime in Texas. This post is a little under 1,200 words. Thank you for having patience with me.


Chapter 52
Football Chapter 26 part 2

By barbara.wilkey

Katherine and Gabriel have known each other for 29 days.

ENDING OF PREVIOUS POST:

Dr. Martin grinned. "As for playing Friday, that's between you and Coach. But, and it's a huge but, you have to be headache free for at least twenty-four hours before you play. And I mean headache free, no pretending there's no headache, no taking OTC pain medicine and saying there's no headache. Do you understand?"

"Yes, Sir."

He handed Katherine the paper he had been holding. "Here's a list of do's and don'ts. He should make a full recovery. If you have any questions, I highlighted my number. I think Coach has it on speed dial, anyway." He pointed to a section of the paper. "If you see any of these symptoms, call me and bring him in immediately."

Katherine nodded. "Thank you, Sir."

"If there aren't any questions, I'll send the nurse in to get this young man checked out."

Gabriel offered his hand. "Thank you. We appreciate it."

The doctor leaned in and whispered, "I take it Mom isn't a huge fan of football."

Grinning, Gabriel answered, "She was warming to it and then this."


TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 26 part 2

Around two o'clock, Katherine, Gabriel, and Jordan arrived home. Katherine made Jordan comfortable on the couch before she said, "If it's all right, I think I'll shower and freshen up?" She handed her car keys to Gabriel. "Since Rebecca has your pick-up, why don't you take mine home and shower?"

He chuckled. "So you think I need a shower?"

Her cheeks tinged pink. "That's not what I meant. I was trying to be nice."

Grabbing her into a hug, he said, "I knew what you meant. I was just..."

"Being incorrigible," interrupted Katherine.

"Yeah, that pretty much sums it up."

She backed out of the hug. "I'm going to shower."

Jordan questioned Gabriel about what his practices would look like and if he thought he'd be able to play Friday.

After answering Jordan's questions, Gabriel stood. "Your mom's probably right. I'd better get home. I'll be back in a little bit." He glanced at his watch. "Troy should be here in about thirty minutes."

"Who's Troy?" asked Jordan.

"The lawyer who's going to stop this custody nonsense." Gabriel opened the front door. "Bye."

*****
As Gabriel sat behind the steering wheel, a black Lincoln Continental pulled behind him. He stepped out and waited until the driver opened the door. When he saw who it was, he offered his hand. "Troy, welcome. Let's go inside. Can I offer you something to drink?"

Gabriel introduced Troy to Jordan. After the introduction, Jordan asked, "Coach, should I go upstairs?"

Glancing toward Katherine's bedroom, Gabriel said, "I'm not sure what your mom would suggest, but probably wouldn't hurt. Let me walk with you in case you get wobbly on the stairs." He excused himself.

When Gabriel returned, he and Troy continued to the kitchen. "Sorry. Did you want coffee or something else?"

Troy glanced around. "I never expected to see you all domestic. First, you were in a SUV, and now in a kitchen. Although, you look like you had a rough night. Just getting home?"

Katherine walked into the room and offered her hand. "Hello, I'm Katherine Riley. Matter-of fact, Gabriel did have a rough night. He was nice enough to spend it at the hospital with me while my son spent the night with a football injury. And who might you be?"

He accepted her hand. "I'm Troy Elder, the attorney Gabe hired to help with your custody case. Let's sit and get started."

Katherine led him to the dining room table. "Is this good or would you rather go into the living room?"

Troy set his brief case on the table. "Probably the best."

Gabriel brought in three glasses of iced tea. "I hope this is okay."

Katherine jumped up. "I'm sorry. I've been a poor host."

Putting his hand on her arm, Gabriel said, "Sit. I've got this." His eyes met Troy's. "Monday night was the last time she's had a decent night sleep."

She sat. "Since I received notice my in-laws had filed for custody, I haven't slept and then Jordan's injury last night."

"It's completely understandable." His eyes met Gabriel's. "Did you win the game?"

Gabriel watched Katherine frown, as he answered, "We did, but more importantly, Jordan wasn't seriously injured."

The lawyer began, "I've been in town a few days. I wanted to get a feel of what I was dealing with. I've spent time at the local diners, barber shops, coffee shops, and bars. I wanted to hear what the locals were saying."

Katherine released a deep breath. "I'm sure you got an earful."

"To be honest, I was already aware of Gabe's history and after meeting you, I can see why he's cleaned up his act. You're a classy lady and the town seems to think so too."

"Sir, Gabriel had, as you put it, cleaned up his act before I ever met him. We only met about a month ago."

Gabriel winked at her. "Twenty-nine days to be exact."

Her eyebrows rose. "I'm surprised you'd know that." She faced Troy. "What else did the gossipers tell you?"

"Some of it you may not want to hear, but it probably explains a few things." He glanced at Gabriel and exhaled. "Okay, here we go. It seems your husband," he checked his notes, "George, chose you as a wife because you were young, beautiful, and innocent. He wanted somebody he could mold into a perfect trophy wife."

"Someone to ignore until he needed to show her off." Katherine brushed a piece of hair from her cheek. "That makes sense. And the purpose of the children was to pretend we were the perfect American family. Excuse me." She stood, walked into the kitchen, and leaned against the counter. "Wow, and I was dumb enough to fall for it."

Gabriel followed. "Katherine, talk to me. Don't block me out. I'm here."

She went into his arms. "I was a fool, wasn't I?"

"No, you were young and made a mistake. We both did. But remember, you have four wonderful boys." He kissed her cheek. "I want to believe it's our mistakes that brought us together."

Katherine nodded. "You're right. But it's also our mistakes that have pulled us apart." She closed her eyes. "The only reason they haven't is because, you've been so patient." She exhaled and stood straight. "Let's see what else he has to say."

"You ready?" When she nodded, Gabriel put his hand in the small of her back and led her back into the dining room.

Troy looked up from his notes. "I know this has been hard to hear, but it helps me understand the situation so I know how to proceed to ensure you keep your children."

Katherine blinked. "I understand and appreciate it."

"Gabe told me your in-laws have never shown any interest in the boys."

"That's correct. The boys never heard from them at Christmas or on their birthdays. That's why I was surprised when they showed up at my door last Saturday and wanted them overnight. Jeremy, my youngest, had never met them."

"He's six," interrupted Gabriel.

Troy's eyes widened. "They hadn't seen the boys in over six years?" After Katherine nodded, he wrote it down. "According to the locals, your in-laws are average middle class. Mr. Riley sold real-estate. He worked for a company. He didn't own it. His wife was a bank clerk."

"That's correct." Katherine took a drink of tea. "Every so often, George would send them money so they could travel."

Nodding, Troy agreed, "That seems to be the consensus of the locals. It seems about six months ago, they came into a lot of money. Sold their house for a very expensive house, quit their jobs, and traveled."

Tapping her fingers on the table, Katherine said, "That's right. George's lawyer said they received a lump sum of $150,000 from his will. From what he told us, they went through the money and now are looking for additional money. The only way they can get it is to get custody of the boys and become executor of their trust funds. Hence, the reason for the custody battle. According to Jordan, when they were there Saturday, he saw brochures for boarding schools."

Troy wrote that down. "Gabe mentioned there's a P.I. stationed outside your house trying to catch you in immoral acts."

"That's right. Also when they brought the boys back Sunday morning, they made comments about Gabriel being here and how I should be more careful about whom I allowed around the boys." Katherine exhaled. "They're using Gabriel's past against us."

Gabriel tapped both hands on the table. "If it'll help Katherine keep the boys, I'll step out of the picture. I don't want to be the cause of her losing the boys."

Troy clicked his pen a few times and then faced Katherine. "I don't believe this, but I've heard a rumor, from a Rodney Frost, that you slept with the High School principal and Gabe to get the job. I have to ask, is it true?"

Angry tears streamed down Katherine's cheeks. "No, it's not true. I graduated at the top of my class from Cornell University. I'd been hired before I ever met Mr. Edwards or Gabriel. I had my job interview by Skype."

She dried her tears. "Would you like to see my transcript or diploma?" When he shook his head, she continued, "I arrived in town, August eighth, met Gabriel August tenth, completely by accident, and then met Mr. Edwards, August twelfth. On that day, I signed my contract. I have never slept with either of them." She stood, "Excuse me," then ran to her bedroom, and slammed the door.

Troy's eyes met Gabriel's. "I think it's time I left. I'll do some more research and then contact you with the results and we can discuss strategy." He stood. "Please give Mrs. Riley my apology and let her know I believe her. I'm giving you my promise there's no way she's going to lose those boys. I won't let it happen."

After Troy and Gabriel shook hands at the door, Gabriel stared at Katherine's bedroom door. Now, what do I do? She's hurting and needs me. Will I make it worse if I go to her? This being a nice guy's hard work. He tapped his knuckles a few times on the door. When he didn't hear a response, he cracked it open. "Katherine, can I come in?"

"Yes." She stood and pointed to the bed. "I guess we'd better get it over with and have sex, since everybody believes we already have."

Gabriel glanced at his watch. "We really don't have time. My parents and the boys will be here in about twenty minutes. Besides I never did get home and shower." Katherine's eyes widened and he drew her into his arms. "As enjoyable as it'd be to make love with you, I'm willing to wait until the time's right. We both know that's not now. So how about we wait?"

"Sounds like a good idea."

He kissed her. "I thought so." A second kiss followed.

"Have you decided what you're fixing for dinner?"

The doorbell rang, and Gabriel grinned. "That should be it, now. I ordered an Italian Buffet."

"You didn't need to do that. I would've fixed dinner."

"I know, but there's no way with everything you have going on I would've allowed it."



CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons. She teaches high school math and also coaches girls cross country.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Frank Collins math teacher

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Sandy Frost Rodney Frost's wife

Sam Auto repair shop owner

Bill Brooks Assistant football coach, Gabriel's friend, and Angie's husband.

Harold Hudson Gabriel's dad and football announcer.

Sandy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Judy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Rhonda Morgan Teenage girl on cross country team, and victim of dating violence.

Mr. and Mrs. Morgan Rhonda's parents.

Kenny Clark Teenager - Rhonda's boyfriend

Grace Former friend of Gabriel and featured in porn magazine

Janette & Jackson Riley Katherine's in-laws

Dr. Martin Jordan's doctor

Troy Elder Lawyer and friend of Gabriel from his pro-football days



Author Notes Thank you google images for a photo of a meeting with a lawyer. I also want to thank everybody for the helpful reviews. Everything that could possibly go wrong went wrong as I posted. I hope it's okay. This novel is not actually about football, but is part of the background. High football is a national pastime in Texas. This post is a little under 1,700 words. Forgive me for the length. Thank you for having patience with me.


Chapter 53
Football Chapter 27 part 1

By barbara.wilkey

Katherine and Gabriel have known each other for 30 days.

ENDING OF PREVIOUS POST:

After Troy and Gabriel shook hands at the door, Gabriel stared at Katherine's bedroom door. Now, what do I do? She's hurting and needs me. Will I make it worse if I go to her? This being a nice guy's hard work. He tapped his knuckles a few times on the door. When he didn't hear a response, he cracked it open. "Katherine, can I come in?"

"Yes." She stood and pointed to the bed. "I guess we'd better get it over with and have sex, since everybody believes we already have."

Gabriel glanced at his watch. "We really don't have time. My parents and the boys will be here in about twenty minutes. Besides I never did get home and shower." Katherine's eyes widened and he drew her into his arms. "As enjoyable as it'd be to make love with you, I'm willing to wait until the time's right. We both know that's not now. So how about we wait?"

"Sounds like a good idea."

He kissed her. "I thought so." A second kiss followed.

"Have you decided what you're fixing for dinner?"

The doorbell rang, and Gabriel grinned. "That should be it, now. I ordered an Italian Buffet."

"You didn't need to do that. I would've fixed dinner."

"I know, but there's no way with everything you have going on I would've allowed it."

TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 27 part 1

Early Sunday morning, Gabriel and Reggie waited inside his pick-up until he saw lights in Katherine's house. He petted the large dog's head. "Okay buddy, let's go. She's up."

After Gabriel knocked on the door, Katherine answered it. "What are you doing here so early?"

"Last week, I missed grocery shopping and didn't want to risk that again. Are you going to invite me in?"

Katherine held the door open. "Of course." She shook her head. "Why would anybody want to go grocery shopping?"

"I don't want to go. I want to help. I eat most of my dinners here, so it's only right I help." He glanced around. "When we going?"

"I need to feed the boys. Have you had breakfast?"

Gabriel scanned the area. "The boys aren't up." When Katherine acknowledged he was correct, he continued, "Why don't I do the shopping, and you take care of the boys?"

"I doubt you know what I'm planning for meals. How will you know what I need?"

He grinned. "Why don't I make a pot of coffee and be patient?"

"Back to my original question, have you had breakfast?"

"I ate a little. What you making?"

"Sundays I usually make pancakes and sausage." When Gabriel licked his lips, she continued, "I'm guessing they're one of your favorites."

*****
About the time the pancakes were finished, Jeremy came downstairs. "Hi, Mom." He immediately hugged Gabriel. "I'm glad you're here in time for breakfast."

Gabriel returned the hug. "I'm glad I'm here too. Pancakes are one of my favorites. How about you?"

"Mom makes the best." He sat in his spot. "Do we need to wait for my brothers or can we start?"

Katherine put three pancakes on Jeremy's plate. "Go ahead." She passed the platter to Gabriel. "You can begin too. Ready for more coffee?" She headed for the kitchen. "Never mind. I know that answer."

After Katherine refilled his cup, Gabriel pointed to her spot. "Sit and eat. You don't need to wait for everybody. Enjoy your meal. When they arrive, I'll take care of them."

Moments later, Joel came down. As he began eating, Joshua joined them.

Katherine waited, but kept glancing toward the stairs. Gabriel stood. "I'll check. I'm sure he's just sleeping late."

Minutes later when Gabriel entered the dining room, Katherine stared at him, and he chuckled. "Jordan was sleeping. When I checked his pulse to make sure he was all right, he woke up and wondered why I was holding his hand. He'll be down in a few minutes." He glanced toward the stairs. "When he gets here, let him know I was checking on him for you."

She held the platter of pancakes. "Anybody want more? If not, I'll warm these and won't make any more."

*****
After the kitchen was cleaned, Katherine and Gabriel went to the grocery store. On the way, Katherine asked, "Was Mr. Elder upset over the way I left our meeting?"

Gabriel took her hand. "Not at all. He understood and told me to let you know he didn't believe Frost. He wanted me to send his apology, but he had to ask. He's doing more research and then he'll set up a strategy meeting. He said he promises you won't lose the boys."

"Do you believe him?"

"I do. If I didn't trust his ability, I wouldn't have suggested him." He parked the pick-up and stared at the grocery store. "What's our strategy?"

Katherine's eyes widened. "To get groceries."

"You don't go in with a strategy?"

She watched him walk around and open her door, and then asked, "You do?"

He released a deep breath as he helped her down from the seat. "Not anymore." He put his hand on the small of her back and led her into the store.

As they proceeded through the store, the other shoppers watched and whispered to each other.

Katherine exhaled. "I feel like a zoo exhibit. Is it my imagination?"

"It's not. I didn't think about how popular I am in town or how small this town is." He pushed the cart forward. "If you want to wait in the truck, I'll finish."

"Grocery shopping together confirms we're in a relationship. We'll be the talk of the town."

"We already are."

"I guess that's true."

His eyes twinkled as they met hers. "I'm still not sleeping with you until the time's right."

Katherine released a deep breath. "Sorry about that. It wasn't one of my more logical moments."

When they got to the check-out line, Gabriel moved ahead of her and unloaded the cart. After the groceries scanned, Katherine took out her check book. Gabriel slipped his bank card into the scanner. "I got this."

"No. I have four boys." Katherine's eyes met the cashier's. "Please cancel his card."

The cashier glanced at Gabriel. "Coach?"

He grinned. "Molly, please continue."

As they continued to the pick-up, Katherine said, "It's not right you paid for all these groceries. It's way too much. You shouldn't have to pay for all my kids."

Gabriel unlocked the door and assisted her inside. "I would kiss you right now, but everybody's watching."

"You're incorrigible."

He grinned. "I'll put the groceries in the back."

"I'll help."

Gabriel glanced at the truck bed. "You're not tall enough." He laughed as she folded her arms across her chest and frowned.

Back at her house, Gabriel went around and helped her out. "Go on inside. I'll get the groceries."

"I can help carry."

"You can't reach them. Send the boys out. You can put them away." He teased, "Some of the taller ones. Jeremy's probably too short."

Katherine headed toward the house. "Ha, ha."

*****
After the groceries were put away, Gabriel sat beside the boys. "What should we do with the rest of the day?"

Joel was the first to speak. "I like bowling."

Gabriel thought a moment. "I do too, but I'm pretty sure it's not on Jordan's approved list. He's supposed to rest. We need to come up with something he can do."

Jordan frowned. "All I can do is sit here. That's no fun."

Joshua stood and walked over to the TV. "We can re-watch the video of my football game, and then how about a movie marathon? We could have chili dogs and chips for lunch, eat tons of popcorn, have pizza for dinner, and drink soda."

Joel and Jordan said together, "Good idea."

Looking at Katherine, Jordan asked, "Mom?"

"It's possible, but can we agree on what to watch? Plus, I didn't get the makings for chili dogs, pizza, chips, or soda at the store. That would require another trip."

Gabriel stood and teased, "Should've had a strategy. I got this." He glanced at Katherine. "Any restrictions on chips or soda?"

"Not really, but try to get some non-caffeinated soda for dinner."
He nodded as he walked out the door.

*****
When Gabriel returned, he studied the boys and Katherine. "What did I miss?"

Joshua pointed at Jeremy. "We have to be careful what we choose because of the munchkin. All the good movies are overruled."

Gabriel nodded. "I see. Katherine, what do you suggest?"

Jordan adjusted himself on the couch. "Do you really want her to choose? She'd choose a mom-movie or a musical."

"Musicals are mom-movies with music." Joshua's eyes met Gabriel's.
"Coach, we need a voice of reason. I'm sure you don't want to watch Barney."

Jeremy yelled. "I don't want to watch Barney either. That's for babies. I'm not a baby."

Gabriel studied Katherine. "I never knew choosing a movie would be hard."

"Welcome to a family." She released a deep breath. "Okay, I'll narrow it down. I doubt Jeremy will watch much of it anyway, so maybe the Indiana Jones series or the Star Wars series. You guys figure it out. I'm fixing lunch."

Sneaking into the kitchen, Gabriel said, "What about the National Treasure series? I think it's PG."

"Fine. You fight it out with the boys. I'm too tired to argue. As long as it's not 'Debby Does Dallas', I don't care."

"I'm surprised you know about that movie."

She glared at him. "You're..."

"Incorrigible." He leaned over and kissed her cheek. "It's part of my charm.

As the first movie of the 'National Treasure' series began, Katherine set chili, hotdogs, buns, chips on the table. "Help yourselves. There are paper plates on the side. Also clean up after yourselves." She turned toward the kitchen. "I forgot the shredded cheese."

After everybody ate, Jeremy got toys and sat on the floor and played, only glancing at the movie once in a while. Katherine curled up on the couch beside Gabriel with Jordan on the other side. Before long she was asleep and her head fell against Gabriel's arm.

He moved and put his arm around her. This will be more comfortable. She's completely worn out.

*****
When it got time for dinner, Joshua said, "Should we wake Mom?"

Gabriel stretched so he could get his phone from his pocket. "I'll order pizza. Your mom needs sleep."

After dinner and the final movie, Gabriel glanced at his watch. "Jeremy, bath time. Jordan, can you do his story? I'd do it but I'm stuck."

"Sure, Coach."

When Jordan returned from reading the story, Jeremy followed him down stairs. "I didn't get to kiss Mom, good night."

Gabriel nodded for him to go ahead. He grinned as Jeremy kissed his sleeping mom. Then Jeremy motioned for him to lean forward and kissed Gabriel's cheek. Gabriel returned the kiss to the young child's forehead. "Good night, Jeremy."

"Good night, Coach."

After Jeremy went upstairs, Gabriel glanced around. "Guys, you need to clean up. I don't want your mom, waking up and having to do it. If you hurry, we'll watch another movie. Deal?"

As the next movie ended, Gabriel sent Joel up for a bath and bed. After Joshua went upstairs, Gabriel said, "Jordan, can you get your mom a blanket?"

Gabriel stood and then covered her. He leaned over and kissed her cheek. "I need to leave. Jordan, if she doesn't wake up in time for morning practice, don't worry. Just make sure you and she make it to school in time. I'll come by for our morning jog. If she doesn't show up, I'll know she's not awake."

"Coach, thank you."

"What for?"

Jordan studied his feet. "Everything."

He patted the teenager's shoulder. "Not a problem. I enjoy being around you guys."

~~~~~
I wanted to let you know I'm going on vacation from September 23 - October 5. I'm going to see two of my boys and their families. They both live in the Midwest, but in separate areas. My youngest granddaughter was born July 29, 2020, but because of COVID I wasn't able to visit her until now. Yes, I am fully vaccinated. I will also get to visit with my mom, who is 89 years old. I have not seen her for a year either. I won't be on the site as often because Mom lives in the middle of nowhere in Missouri. I know this is hard to believe but there still are places in the US where there is no Internet in 2021. When I'm visiting with my children, I will have Internet and will drop by, but plan on spending most of my time with my grandchildren.
~~~~

Thank you Lee Brice, There's a Rumor Going Round Please enjoy!!





CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons. She teaches high school math and also coaches girls cross country.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Frank Collins math teacher

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Sandy Frost Rodney Frost's wife

Sam Auto repair shop owner

Bill Brooks Assistant football coach, Gabriel's friend, and Angie's husband.

Harold Hudson Gabriel's dad and football announcer.

Sandy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Judy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Rhonda Morgan Teenage girl on cross country team, and victim of dating violence.

Mr. and Mrs. Morgan Rhonda's parents.

Kenny Clark Teenager - Rhonda's boyfriend

Grace Former friend of Gabriel and featured in porn magazine

Janette & Jackson Riley Katherine's in-laws

Dr. Martin Jordan's doctor

Troy Elder Lawyer and friend of Gabriel from his pro-football days




Author Notes Gabriel will NOT be having a baby in this novel. I have had this novel completed since December, but my muse woke me up around 2:30 AM and informed me that Katherine and Gabriel will NOT be going to Austin for a weekend. This is much later in the book. So I need to change that part, but my muse gave me another idea.
Thank you google images for a photo of pancakes and sausage. I also want to thank everybody for the helpful reviews. This novel is not actually about football, but is part of the background. High football is a national pastime in Texas. This post is a little over 1,700 words. Forgive me for the length. Thank you for having patience.


Chapter 54
Football Chapter 28 part 1

By barbara.wilkey

Katherine and Gabriel have known each other for 31 - 34 days.

ENDING OF PREVIOUS POST:

After dinner and the final movie, Gabriel glanced at his watch. "Jeremy, bath time. Jordan, can you do his story? I'd do it but I'm stuck."

"Sure, Coach."

When Jordan returned from reading the story, Jeremy followed him down stairs. "I didn't get to kiss Mom good night."

Gabriel nodded for him to go ahead. He grinned as Jeremy kissed his sleeping mom. Then Jeremy motioned for him to lean forward and kissed Gabriel's cheek. Gabriel returned the kiss to the young child's forehead. "Good night, Jeremy."

"Good night, Coach."

After Jeremy went upstairs, Gabriel glanced around. "Guys, you need to clean up. I don't want your mom waking up and having to do it. If you hurry, we'll watch another movie. Deal?"

As the next movie ended, Gabriel sent Joel up for a bath and bed. After Joshua went upstairs, Gabriel said, "Jordan, can you get your mom a blanket?"

Gabriel stood and then covered her. He leaned over and kissed her cheek. "I need to leave. Jordan, if she doesn't wake up in time for morning practice, don't worry. Just make sure you and she make it to school in time. I'll come by for our morning jog. If she doesn't show up, I'll know she's not awake."

"Coach, thank you."

"What for?"

Jordan studied his feet. "Everything."

He patted the teenager's shoulder. "Not a problem. I enjoy being around you guys."

TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 28 part 1


Monday morning, Gabriel and Reggie stood on the sidewalk in front of Katherine's house, and he grinned when he saw lights. "Buddy, our gals will be out in a minute."

As Katherine walked up to Gabriel, she said, "I owe you an apology. I'm sorry I fell asleep."

"You don't owe me anything. I knew you were dead tired. I'm sure Troy solved some of the stress you were under so you could sleep."

She tilted her head. "I don't think it was him. If it was, then I'd have slept better Saturday night." She studied her watch. "I think it was you being there. I felt safe, like everything would work out."

Gabriel's eyes met hers. "Thank you. I needed to hear it."

Setting the timer, she said, "I'm shocked you have unsure moments."

The two dogs stood alert and growled.

"I see the P.I. is still with us." He motioned for her to run. "Around you, I have a lot of them."

Her eyes widened. "Why?"

"I care for you and I don't want to mess up."

She reached over and touched his hand. "I understand. I'm glad you're patient."

"You're worth it, plus I understand why things have happened as they have."

"My hope is we don't have any more issues."

Gabriel chuckled. "That'd be wonderful but I'm sure we'll still have a few rocky patches until we get it right." He faced her. "I'm positive we will with time."

She smiled. "I agree."

When the timer sounded, they turned toward Katherine's.

Gabriel asked, "What's your day look like?"

"The usual, be a mom, a teacher, and a coach. The only thing I have this week is progress reports need to be ready today so they can go out Wednesday. I just need to check them for mistakes, but they're ready. Oh yea, the away football game. Angie and I have discussed it. We're going together. She's driving."

"I like that idea. I'm glad you two have become friends."

They stood in front of her house. Katherine glanced at the door. "I'd better get inside. See you later."

"I'll drop by before practice for sure. Hopefully, I'll see you before. Thank you for not reminding me to be careful with Jordan's practice."

"I have confidence you'll take care of him. Thank you for that." She went up the front steps.

Gabriel watched Katherine go inside. He rubbed Reggie's head. "Did you hear that? I make her feel safe and she trusts me to take care of Jordan. We're making progress."

*****
Thursday evening when Gabriel and Jordan walked in, Katherine smiled. "Perfect timing. I just need to put dinner on. Go ahead and sit." She went to the bottom of the stairs and called, "Dinner's ready. I hope homework's finished. Jeremy, bring yours down."

"I know, Mom. You want to check it."

When Jeremy sat at the table, Gabriel put his hand out. "I'll check it."

Jeremy handed the folder to Gabriel. "Mom doesn't trust me."

"Why not?" asked Gabriel.

"Because she's a mom, and that's what mom's do."

Joshua shook his head. "Jeremy's teacher called and told her Jeremy wasn't doing his homework."

Gabriel's eyes met Jeremy's. "Is that true?"

The young child stared at his plate. "Maybe. But only because I forgot to do some of it."

"You forgot to do all it," interrupted Joshua.

Raising his hand, Gabriel motioned for Joshua to quiet. "Jeremy, what's your responsibility?"

"To do all my homework."

"That's right. It's not your mom's homework. She's here to help you if you don't understand something, but it's your job to do it. Was there something you didn't know how to do? If there is, I can help too."

"I know how to do it."

"I figured you did." Gabriel read over the page. "It looks good."

When Katherine walked in carrying a platter and a bowl, she asked, "What did I miss?"

Joshua looked at his mom. "Coach just busted Jeremy for not doing his homework."

"I had it all done this time, didn't I?"

"It looks like you did and did a good job." Gabriel offered the paper to Katherine. "Do you want to check to make sure I didn't miss anything?"

"No. And thank you. When I returned home this evening I received a phone call from his teacher. I wasn't happy. Hopefully, we have it settled, right Jeremy?"

He nodded. "Right, Mom."

*****
After dinner, Gabriel helped Katherine clean up. He grinned. "This being a Mom's a never-ending process, isn't it?"

Katherine dried her hands on a dishtowel. "Some days I feel I go from one problem to another. Thank you for speaking with Jeremy. I appreciate it." As they walked into the living room, she added, "I got busy and wasn't checking homework. Since I let it slide, I guess he thought he could. It's my fault."

"It's his responsibility, not yours."

"True, but it's my job to teach him responsibility. He's young and still in training. I got lax."

"I see your point. I'm not used to young ones, just teenagers. I have a lot to learn."

She took his hand. "You're doing great. You already have the most important prerequisite, you care."

"I want to check one more thing. Did Jordan tell you his headaches stopped? He said they left mid-morning Wednesday. I haven't let him have full contact practice, but letting him do more. Is it okay?"

"He came to my classroom during his lunch period and told me. I guess it's fine. I can't protect him forever, can I?"

Gabriel squeezed her hand as they sat. "Not really. Also Troy called late this afternoon." As Katherine held her breath, he grinned. "Breathe, it's not bad. He wants to know if he can come by Sunday and discuss strategies. He has a couple of ideas."

"Of course. I want to get this over as soon as possible. Did he say anything else?"

He shook his head. "Nope. It was a short conversation. I was at practice, so I didn't have time to ask questions."I'll try to wait 'til Sunday."

"Let's see. This is already Thursday. Tomorrow is a busy day and so is Saturday, so Sunday should come pretty fast. I'm beginning to see where Jeremy inherits his impatience," teased Gabriel.

"My family's future depends on how good Mr. Elder is." Katherine thought for a moment. "I wonder who my in-laws have hired. Are there any good lawyers in town, or do you think they went out of town?"

Gabriel took out his phone. "You know that's a really good question. I'm calling Mom." He chuckled. "She usually knows all the scuttle-butt that goes on. I swear those women's meetings she attends should probably be outlawed."

After talking for a while, Gabriel put his phone away. "I'm sure you heard most of it. They hired a lawyer from Austin. He's supposed to be pretty good."

"Do you think you should call Mr. Elder and tell him?"

Gabriel scanned the living room before he put his arms around Katherine and drew her closer. "I have a feeling he's already scouted out his opponent. What I know for sure is it's getting late and I'd really like a good night kiss before I leave." He pecked her cheek. "I don't see a P.I. peeking through the windows. Think it's possible?"

Katherine glanced around the room and noticed all the windows had the curtains drawn. "I'd say it's a real possibility." She started to lean in for the kiss, but stopped. "Do you really think it'll be okay?"

Gabriel laughed. "Come here, silly. I'm sure it's okay. I doubt good night kisses are..."

Before he could finish his sentence, Katherine kissed him.

He matched her kiss with a lingering one, and then released a deep breath. "I could get used to that." He started to stand, but paused for a kiss that took her breath away. "Now, I really need to leave. If this continues, it might lead into something neither of us is ready for." He stood.

Katherine followed him to the door. "Good night."

Gabriel pecked her cheek. "Good night. I look forward to seeing you in the morning." He left.

~~~~~~
My vacation had to be put on hold. We were at my in-laws house and clumsy me fell at the hotel and broke my wrist. Ended up in the ER. I have a splint, but need to see my primary so he can refer me to orthopedic and get a real cast. Typing is very difficult with one hand as are many things. I'm still in the pity party phase. Both knees' bruises resemble soft balls. Walking is also difficult. I'm feeling my granddaughter will be married before I get to hug her. My husband reminds me that I'm lucky, I didn't break a hip. A few years back, chemo stole 75% of my bone density. I've been warned about falling.
~~~~~~

CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons. She teaches high school math and also coaches girls cross country.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Frank Collins math teacher

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Sandy Frost Rodney Frost's wife

Sam Auto repair shop owner

Bill Brooks Assistant football coach, Gabriel's friend, and Angie's husband.

Harold Hudson Gabriel's dad and football announcer.

Sandy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Judy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Rhonda Morgan Teenage girl on cross country team, and victim of dating violence.

Mr. and Mrs. Morgan Rhonda's parents.

Kenny Clark Teenager - Rhonda's boyfriend

Grace Former friend of Gabriel and featured in porn magazine

Janette & Jackson Riley Katherine's in-laws

Dr. Martin Jordan's doctor

Troy Elder Lawyer and friend of Gabriel from his pro-football days




Author Notes Thank you google images for a photo of boy completing his homework. I also want to thank everybody for the helpful reviews. This novel is not actually about football, but is part of the background. High football is a national pastime in Texas. This post is a little over 1,300 words. Forgive me for the length. Thank you for having patience.


Chapter 55
Football Chapter 29 part 1

By barbara.wilkey

Katherine and Gabriel have known each other for 35 days.

ENDING OF PREVIOUS POST:

Gabriel scanned the living room before he put his arms around Katherine and drew her closer. "I have a feeling he's already scouted out his opponent. What I know for sure is it's getting late and I'd really like a good night kiss before I leave." He pecked her cheek. "I don't see a P.I. peeking through the windows. Think it's possible?"

Katherine glanced around the room and noticed all the windows had the curtains drawn. "I'd say it's a real possibility." She started to lean in for the kiss, but stopped. "Do you really think it'll be okay?"

Gabriel laughed. "Come here, silly. I'm sure it's okay. I doubt good night kisses are..."

Before he could finish his sentence, Katherine kissed him.

He matched her kiss with a lingering one, and then released a deep breath. "I could get used to that." He started to stand, but paused for a kiss that took her breath away. "Now, I really need to leave. If this continues, it might lead into something neither of us is ready for." He stood.

Katherine followed him to the door. "Good night."

Gabriel pecked her cheek. "Good night. I look forward to seeing you in the morning." He left.

TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 29 part 1


Friday morning, Katherine with Daisy opened the front door, but stretched inside until she saw Gabriel and Reggie running toward her. As soon as they met at the sidewalk, the dogs turned and started growling.

After she released a deep breath, Katherine asked, "Do you think Mr. Elder can do anything about that?"

"It never hurts to ask." He watched her set the timer. "Ready?"

She began running. "Is everything all right? You seem a little preoccupied."

Gabriel remained silent.

"Okay, we won't talk."

They ran in silence.

When Katherine's timer went off, they turned around, and Gabriel stopped. "I'm sorry."

Katherine continued running. "No problem. You obviously have a lot on your mind."

He caught up. "I don't know how to say it."

She laughed. "You can do what I usually do, just blurt it out and then apologize after you've been patient while I work through it."

"I guess that'll work. Our kiss last night really got to me."

"Which one?"

He chuckled. "I never expected that response. I guess the first one, because it led to the second one. Let's say I enjoyed them way too much. We've agreed to take it slow. If we kiss like that again, slow won't happen. I can't allow anything to happen that'd put you and the boys in jeopardy."

She held up her wrist. "Maybe we need to set a timer on the kisses."

He stopped. "That's ridiculous."

"Just a suggestion."

"Are you taking this seriously?"

She ran in place waiting for him to catch up. "I'm sorry." She brushed a hair from her cheek. "I enjoyed the kiss way too much also."

When she exhaled, he asked, "What are you trying to say?"

"I've never been kissed like that."

Gabriel touched her arm. "You don't need to say any more. I got it. From now on, I'll stick to pecks on the cheek. Right now, that's the safest. Agree?"

"Agree." She faced her house. "I'd better go inside. In case I don't see you before you guys leave. Good luck. Angie and I are leaving right after practice and she's driving."

"It's about an hour trip. Do me a favor and send a text, letting me know you arrived safely."

"Will do." She jogged to the front door, turned, and waved.

*****
Once the ladies and the three boys found a seat in Viking Stadium, Katherine sent Gabriel a text .

Angie glanced over. "Texting Gabe?" When she nodded, Angie continued, "Bill asked me to do the same. I wonder if one text from us will work."

"Probably not."

Once Gabriel received the text he faced the visitor's stands and searched. When he had eyes on them, he grinned and waved.

Jeremy jumped up, waved his hands, and screamed, "I see Coach!"

Katherine tapped his arm. "He sees you too. Please sit."

Bill searched the stands for Angie. When he found them, he saw Jeremy and elbowed Gabriel and pointed.

Gabriel gave Jeremy a 'thumbs up'.

As the game began Angie googled and found the radio station bringing the game. "Good, Harold's announcing. I like his commentary."

"He does a good job. He's announced since Dad coached. I'll have to ask him how many years he's brought the games." Katherine paused. "Since I have practice Thursday nights, he videos Joshua's games so I can watch them later. He's so nice."

Angie laughed. "That's sweet. He's probably announced forever."

At the end of the second quarter the game was tied, 0-to-0.

Joshua stood. "This is a good game. The winner's going to be whoever doesn't make a mistake. Nobody has yet. It's a real coaching duel. I know Coach will win."

Katherine glanced at her son. "I agree. I'm sure Gabriel's the better coach. Anything can happen in one game. We still have the second half to go." She rubbed her hands together. "Halftime's over."

Angie checked her phone. "My battery's dead. Can you find the station?"

"Sure." Katherine search and found the game. "I've got it.

As the fourth quarter started, the score was still 0-to-0.

With three minutes left, Gabriel called time out.

Katherine covered her face with her hands. "What wild stunt's he going to try?"

Angie sighed. "I know. I'm scared to watch."

Standing with both hands on the railing, Katherine whispered, "No, he put Jordan in. Please God, protect him." She closed her eyes.

The quarterback yelled cadence.

She heard Harold yell, "And the hike, Floyd passes the ball to Riley." Katherine opened her eyes as Harold continued, "What? I've never seen anything like it. What's Coach thinking? I can't believe my eyes. The entire team and I mean all the boys are surrounding Riley and running with him down the field. A few of the linemen lag behind." He laughed. "Never expected that. And we have a touchdown! Go Bears!"

Katherine sat. "What?" She watched the opposing coach run onto the field. "This can't be good."

Angie studied the field. "Was that even legal?

"I don't know. We'll soon find out." Katherine tilted her head. "Who's Harold talking with?"

"It's Gabe! His mic's live. Hurry text him, let him know."

Harold: "Son, what were you thinking?"

Gabriel: "I had nothing to do with it. It was all the team. They talked me into letting Riley play, so I called a pass-play. I told the boys to guard Riley because if he gets hurt again, his mom will kill me. I guess they took me literally and surrounded Riley." He chuckled. "Who would've thunk it?"

Gabriel checked his text. "Dad, we have a live mic." He turned and saw the Viking's coach grab Floyd's face mask and shook him. He ran, stood between the coach and the teenager, and ordered the boy to the sidelines. He locked his fingers behind his back and then yelled, "You can say or do whatever you want to me, but don't ever touch my player again."

He shoved Gabriel. "What will you do, huh?"

"I won't go to jail for the likes of you, but I'll make sure you never coach another game in your life."

The referee came up. "Break it up. Coach Hudson, go to your bench." He pointed his finger at the other coach and then toward the locker room. "You're out of here."

As she bit her lower lip, Katherine texted Gabriel again. "You still have a live mic. The entire stadium's listening to every word you say."

Gabriel said, "Dad, do something about that da...stupid mic!" He glanced up at the announcing booth and shook his head , then he motioned the team to huddle.

They lined up to kick an extra point, and then ran it in for a two point conversion. He glanced toward Katherine and gave her a 'thumbs up'.

She faced Angie. "He's certifiably crazy."

Angie giggled. "True, but you're in love with him."

Katherine stared at Gabriel. I sure am and it's scary.

The final score was 8-to-0. The Bears beat the Vikings.

*****
While the boys sat inside Angie's SUV, Katherine made sure Jeremy fastened his safety belt before she got in. She noticed Angie searching for something. "What you looking for?"

"My phone charger." She dropped her forehead onto the steering wheel. "I left it at school. I forgot to charge my phone last night so charged it there. Does your phone have any battery left?"

"Let me check." She checked. "One percent. We shouldn't need them."

"There's a barbecue place in town that's really good. Do you mind if we stop and take some home?"

"Sounds good. It'll be a meal I don't have to cook."

Angie drove further into the town. The stop took longer than expected, by almost forty-five minutes.

They turned onto I-35 south, when suddenly the SUV swerved right.

A blinking light indicated a problem. Angie pulled off the road. "It says I have a flat. Do you know how to change one?"

Katherine opened her door. "Boys, stay inside. No, but we're smart. We can figure it out, right?"

Angie opened the back. "I guess the jack and tire should be under here." She pulled a ring and the carpeted floor lifted. "It's empty! Where else would it be?"

Pointing Katherine said, "It should be right here. There's the indention for them. What do we do?"

"I don't know. Our cell phones are dead, so we can't call the guys."

"We wait. It'll be safer if we wait inside." She glanced at the SUV. "Good your emergency blinkers are on."

Joshua asked, "Mom, what if a bad person stops?"

"We need faith only a good person stops."

Her eyes met Angie's and they both held their breath.

*****
A little over thirty minutes later a state trooper stopped and asked what the problem was.

Angie showed him the flat tire, explained there wasn't a jack or spare tire, and their phones were dead.

He allowed Angie to use his phone to call her husband, said he needed to leave, but would remain in the area and check on them often.

True to his word, they saw his cruiser drive by off-and-on for the next hour while they waited for Bill and Gabriel's arrival.

Eventually, Gabriel pulled up behind them. He jumped out of the truck and hurried to the passenger door. "You guys all right?"

"We're fine."

He gave Katherine a quick hug. "Why didn't you call?"

Katherine held up her dead cell phone. "We listened to Harold announce the game and our phones went dead."

Bill did the same with Angie. "Where's your car charger?"

"At school."

After he released a deep breath, he said, "Figures." He pulled a jack and spare tire from Gabriel's pick-up. "Let's get this flat changed and get on home. I'm sure the boys are tired."

Jordan grinned. "Mom, how upset are you over that play?"

"How about we discuss it at home?"

Gabriel studied her. "How much trouble am I in?"

She walked over to him and pecked his cheek. "I do have a few questions, but not here."

Jeremy started to get out of the SUV, but Katherine pointed for him to get back inside, as he said, "Coach, why didn't you punch that coach in the face when he attacked our quarterback? He deserved it."

"He did deserve it, but why do you think I had my hands behind my back?" When Jeremy shrugged his shoulders, he continued, "So I wouldn't do something stupid. Punching him would've only gotten me into trouble and probably a suspension. He's the one who's facing suspension. I'm not in any trouble." He winked at Katherine. "We'll talk at home."

After the tire change, Gabriel said, "Why don't Bill and Angie drive home and I'll take the rest of you? It'll save time."

Katherine smiled. "It's a great idea, but I doubt you can fit four boys and Reggie in your backseat."

He lifted his cap and then replaced it. "True. I guess we stick to the original plans." He hugged her. "We'll follow. See you at home. Wait a minute." He jogged to his truck and returned. "My phone charger. Charge your phone."



~~~~~~
I want to thank those of you who have expressed concern and have asked about my broken wrist. I saw my primary caregiver last week. I broke my wrist in two places. The most concerning break is at my wrist joint. I will see an orthopedic to see if I need surgery. Every day I discover something new that one needs two hands for. I'm getting better at finger typing, but my brain sends letters to my finger faster than I finger peck and I get some strange looking words.
~~~~~~

CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons. She teaches high school math and also coaches girls cross country.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Frank Collins math teacher

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Sandy Frost Rodney Frost's wife

Sam Auto repair shop owner

Bill Brooks Assistant football coach, Gabriel's friend, and Angie's husband.

Harold Hudson Gabriel's dad and football announcer.

Sandy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Judy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Rhonda Morgan Teenage girl on cross country team, and victim of dating violence.

Mr. and Mrs. Morgan Rhonda's parents.

Kenny Clark Teenager - Rhonda's boyfriend

Grace Former friend of Gabriel and featured in porn magazine

Janette & Jackson Riley Katherine's in-laws

Dr. Martin Jordan's doctor

Troy Elder Lawyer and friend of Gabriel from his pro-football days





Author Notes Thank you google images for a photo of a flat tire. I also want to thank everybody for the helpful reviews. This novel is not actually about football, but is part of the background. High football is a national pastime in Texas. This post is a little over 1,800 words. Forgive me for the length. Thank you for having patience.


Chapter 56
Football Chapter 30 part 1

By barbara.wilkey

Katherine and Gabriel have known each other for 36 days.

ENDING OF PREVIOUS POST:

After the tire change, Gabriel said, "Why don't Bill and Angie drive home and I'll take the rest of you? It'll save time."

Katherine smiled. "It's a great idea, but I doubt you can fit four boys and Reggie in your backseat."

He lifted his cap and then replaced it. "True. I guess we stick to the original plans." He hugged her. "We'll follow. See you at home. Wait a minute." He jogged to his truck and returned. "My phone charger. Charge your phone."

TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 30 part 1

Gabriel maneuvered his pick-up out to pass. "Call the girls. They shouldn't have any problems from here. We're only thirty miles out. Let them know we'll meet them at home. I need to make a stop."

Bill removed his phone. "Which one should I call?"

"Try Katherine. I gave her my charger. If she doesn't answer, then Angie."

After Bill relayed the message, he asked, "It's after midnight, what stop do you need to make?"

"I'm sure the boys are hungry. Katherine always fixes an after game snack. It's too late for that. I'll stop and get something. Any ideas?"

"You're the professional. What would your trainers suggest?" asked Bill.

Jordan leaned forward from the backseat. "Coach, Mom says her dad always suggested protein and fruit. That's what she tries to do."

"Your mom's right. Mexican's good. I'll stop and get some burritos. Do you have fresh fruit at home or should I get some?"

"I think so. There's usually plenty, but it is the end of the week."

"Let's hope so."

After stopping at a Mexican Restaurant, Gabriel parked in front of Katherine's. "We still beat them. Jordan, do you have a key?"

As Jordan unlocked the door, he asked "Coach, why'd you do this?"

Gabriel's eyes widened. "What do you mean?"

"It's nice, but why?"

"To be honest, I kind of like your mom, and know it's getting late. She has a cross country meet first thing in the morning."

"In case you're wondering, I think she kind of likes you too."

They turned their heads when they saw the headlights pull into the driveway.

All three of them went outside. Joel and Joshua ran inside. Katherine attempted to get Jeremy from the seat, but he'd fallen asleep.

Gabriel nodded at Katherine. "I'll get him. Should I put him in bed?"

"Yes, I doubt he'll wake up."

When Gabriel returned downstairs, the boys were eating.

Katherine touched his arm. "Thank you. I had no idea what I was going to fix. What I'd planned would've taken too long." She glanced at her watch. "It's almost one o'clock." She sighed. "Boys you need to hurry. Morning's coming awfully early. Jordan, you and I have to be at school in six hours. The rest of the boys can sleep a little longer. I'll have Grandma bring them about eight o'clock, maybe a little later. They don't need to see the beginning."

The boys finished and headed upstairs. Katherine began cleaning up. Gabriel touched her arm. "Leave it until tomorrow. After the meet, I'll come and help. Go to bed."

"But..."

Gabriel interrupted with a kiss. "Seriously, it can wait." He headed toward the door. "See you in the morning."

*****
The following morning when Jordan stepped into the locker room, Gabriel glanced up. "You don't need to dress out. We're going over the game tapes. How's your mom this morning?"

"She's grumbling something about making sure there's always a jack and spare tire." Joran laughed. "She's also mentioned getting an extra phone charger that stays in her purse."

Gabriel chuckled. "It's always good to be prepared." He stepped in the doorway and watched Katherine walk down the hallway toward the girls' locker room. She's captured my heart. How'd she do it so fast?

Bill came up behind him and slapped his shoulder. "Enjoying the view?"

A slight pink tinged Gabriel's cheeks. "Don't know what you're talking about."

"Then why you blushing like a teenager? She's a looker that's for sure."

*****
As the cross country meet prepared to begin, Gabriel released the football players so they could attend. He caught sight of Katherine and grinned as he watched her calm down the girls and yet encourage them to do their best. She's a natural.

When the race began, she ran on the grass but alongside the girls, helping set their pace.

Gabriel started jogging. "Come on Bill, let's do this."

Bill joined his buddy. "I like running as much as the next person, but you're crazy. You know that, don't you?"

*****
Katherine cut through the Golf Course so she arrived at the High School track before the girls and walked out her run. After a few minutes she saw girls come her direction. She noticed Rhonda was in a close tie with the opponent. She released a deep breath. What would Gabriel do? She laughed. He'd do something crazy. Crazy doesn't work on a track.

She faced the announcing booth and motioned her arm in a circle, until Harold noticed. He played loudly their fight song. Smiling she ran until she was equal with Rhonda. "You got this. We'll do it together. Follow my lead. Match my steps."

Rhonda slightly pulled ahead of the other girl, but then she caught up. Katherine increased her speed. "Just a few more feet. You can do it. Match my steps."

Again, Rhonda pulled ahead and won the race, by seven inches.

The opposing coach ran to Katherine. "It's illegal for you to run with your team! You're disqualified!"

Katherine scanned the stands for Gabriel, but answered, "Excuse me, Sir. The way I understand the rule is I can run alongside my girls as long as I remain on the grass and don't step onto the track."

Gabriel put his hand on the railing and jumped to the track. "Is there a problem?"

The coach glared at him. "I should've known you'd be here causing trouble. You're a football coach. You don't belong at a cross country meet. I'm familiar with your antics. I watched last night's game."

"Not only am I the head football coach, but I'm the athletic director, so I do belong here. You haven't told me the problem."

"This coach is cheating. She's running alongside the runners." He looked up at the speaker. "Since when do we play music during a meet?"

Katherine stood tall. "Since my team enjoys running to music. It adds a little culture to the meets."

Gabriel's eyebrows crunched together and said under his breath, "Culture?" He pulled a book out of his back pocket and handed it to him. "Please show me in the UIL rule book where it says a coach can't run alongside the runners."

Mr. Edwards walked onto the infield. "Is there a problem?"

Katherine answered, "Running alongside my runners is being questioned."

Paul glanced toward Gabriel. "What's the rule book say?"

Gabriel pointed to the coach searching through. "It says on page seventy-eight paragraph four that as long as she stays off the track it's legal."

The opposing coach threw the book on the ground and walked away.

Katherine's eyes met Gabriel's. "How do you know that?"

Gabriel picked it up. "After watching the first meet, I figured it'd come into question at some point so I looked it up and memorized it." He grinned. "I don't normally carry around the rule book, but figured until it's questioned, I'd better."

Touching his arm, she asked, "Is the play that scored your winning touchdown last night described in the rule book?"

Gabriel chuckled. "No, that was probably a first. Leave it to these boys to come up with a new play. This group's unique."

Katherine ran off to join her girls. "Got to go."

The coach returned to where Mr. Edward and Gabriel stood. "I just realized who she is. She's Katherine Beck. She still holds cross country records for the four kilometer runs. She had an all-expense paid scholarship to University of Texas."

Gabriel faced Mr. Edwards. "Really? They don't give that type of scholarships for cross country or girls' anything."

Paul turned in Katherine's direction. "Normally, you're right, but she's special. She was in the running for the Olympics, but she chose to get married."

The opposing coach glare went between Paul and Gabriel. "Okay, since she's a great runner, how'd she get on your staff? What's she teach? Study hall, hallway, or maybe parking lot duty?"

Paul grinned. "She actually teaches math, and not only math, but our AP courses."

The coach left.

Gabriel watched him leave. "Think we've heard the last of him?"

"I doubt it. Pretty sure Monday morning I'll get a call from the UIL's front office. Maybe even a visit. Between your interesting play last night and this, I'm going to be busy Monday." Paul slapped Gabriel's back. "Since hiring you, I've had job security."

"Glad I could help," teased Gabriel.

Paul walked off. "Between you and your girlfriend, I'll never have any peace."

"She's not my girlfriend."

"Want to bet?"


~~~~~~
I want to thank those of you who have expressed concern and have asked about my broken wrist. Things got interesting this week. I saw orthopedics on Wednesday and surgery was scheduled for Thursday. I never expected it so soon. I had a plate and some screws put in. I was also surprised I had to have a tissue donor. I'm still getting better at finger typing.
~~~~~~
Thank you Youtube for Muana Fight Song


CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons. She teaches high school math and also coaches girls cross country.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Frank Collins math teacher

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Sandy Frost Rodney Frost's wife

Sam Auto repair shop owner

Bill Brooks Assistant football coach, Gabriel's friend, and Angie's husband.

Harold Hudson Gabriel's dad and football announcer.

Sandy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Judy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Rhonda Morgan Teenage girl on cross country team, and victim of dating violence.

Mr. and Mrs. Morgan Rhonda's parents.

Kenny Clark Teenager - Rhonda's boyfriend

Grace Former friend of Gabriel and featured in porn magazine

Janette & Jackson Riley Katherine's in-laws

Dr. Martin Jordan's doctor

Troy Elder Lawyer and friend of Gabriel from his pro-football days

UIL The University Interscholastic League exists to provide educational extracurricular academic, athletic, and music contests. The UIL was created by The University of Texas at Austin in 1910 and has grown into the largest inter-school organization of its kind in the world.




Author Notes Thank you Arianna for sharing a photo of you running cross country. Arianna is my granddaughter. She has earned many cross country medals for her team. Today, 10/10 is her 18th birthday!!! I also want to thank everybody for the helpful reviews. This novel is not actually about football, but is part of the background. High football is a national pastime in Texas. This post is a little over 1,400 words. Thank you for having patience.


Chapter 57
Football Chapter 31 part 1

By barbara.wilkey

Katherine and Gabriel have known each other for 36 days.

ENDING OF PREVIOUS POST:

The coach returned to where Mr. Edward and Gabriel stood. "I just realized who she is. She's Katherine Beck. She still holds cross country records for the four-kilometer runs. She had an all-expense paid scholarship to University of Texas."

Gabriel faced Mr. Edwards. "Really? They don't give that type of scholarships for cross country or girls' anything."

Paul turned in Katherine's direction. "Normally, you're right, but she's special. She was in the running for the Olympics, but she chose to get married."

The opposing coach's glare went between Paul and Gabriel. "Okay, since she's a great runner, how'd she get on your staff? What's she teach? Study hall, hallway, or maybe parking lot duty?"

Paul grinned. "She teaches math, and not only math, but our AP courses."

The coach left.

Gabriel watched him leave. "Think we've heard the last of him?"

"I doubt it. Pretty sure Monday morning I'll get a call from the UIL's front office. Maybe even a visit. Between your interesting play last night and this, I'm going to be busy Monday." Paul slapped Gabriel's back. "Since hiring you, I've had job security."

"Glad I could help," teased Gabriel.

Paul walked off. "Between you and your girlfriend, I'll never have any peace."

"She's not my girlfriend."

"Want to bet?"

TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 31 part 1

When Gabriel knocked on Katherine's front door mid-afternoon, Joshua answered, "Am I ever glad to see you. Mom has us cleaning house. I'm pretty sure child labor's illegal."

Gabriel chuckled. "I think it's called being part of a family, but it also builds character and responsibility. My parents made me. I'm sure you'll live through it. I did." He scanned the area. "Where's your mom?"

"Laundry room."

Heading that direction, Gabriel paused and messed up Jeremy's hair. "Hey, buddy. After I speak with your mom, I need a little help. You're just the man for the job."

Jeremy's eyes twinkled.

Standing at the laundry room door, Gabriel knocked. "I didn't want to scare you." He leaned over and pecked her cheek. "Can I borrow the boys for a few minutes? I have some things to carry in."

"Sure. I think they're almost finished anyway. Anything I can do?"

"Nope. When we finish, I'll help with the chores." He turned to leave.

"No need."

Gabriel herded the boys. "Come outside. I need your help." As they stood next to his pick-up, he handed Jordan a fifty-pound bag of dog food. "You got it?" After Jordan started inside, he gave Joshua a twenty pound bag of charcoal. "Is this too heavy?" When he turned toward the house, Gabriel handed Joel three bags of groceries. Joel nodded and carried them inside. He grinned at the pout on Jeremy's face. "I didn't forget you." He passed him a five pound bag of potatoes. "Got it?"

"Sure do."

Gabriel carried in a boxed grill.

Katherine stood with her hands on her hips. "What's going on?"

He grinned. "I'm cooking dinner tonight."

"I see. But..."

"Wanted to help. I know you got home late last night, so grocery shopping would be put off until tomorrow."

"You've told me you don't cook."

Gabriel pointed to the box. "I don't, but I grill. I haven't seen a grill out back, so I got one." He balanced the box on the table while he reached into his pocket for the keys. "Jordan, get my tools from the bed's toolbox. It's locked." He handed him the keys. "Bring them out back." His eyes met Katherine's. "When they've finished inside, send them out."

She scanned the area. "I think we're pretty much finished, except for laundry. That usually takes all day. I do need to check their rooms and make sure they're respectable.

"I'll put away the groceries." He reached inside a sack.

Katherine peeked in. "What you fixing for dinner?"

"A typical man's dinner."

"So we're having corndogs, nachos, beer?"

Gabriel put his hand over his heart. "Ouch, you cut me to the quick." He held up packages of steak. "How about steak, baked potatoes, and salad?"

"Sounds delicious. I should've figured it out. You don't grill corndogs," teased Katherine.

"And you say I'm incorrigible." After putting away the groceries, Gabriel said, "Unless you need me to do something, I'll be out back putting this together."

Joshua stood beside Gabriel. "Coach, I wouldn't ask. Mom's into slave labor."

Gabriel chuckled. "I'll take this one with me. Would that be help enough?" He nodded for Joshua to follow.

"It would. Be careful. I've heard rumors he's unionizing."

After Katherine checked the boys' rooms and decided they were acceptable, she stood at the kitchen window and watched the interaction between Gabriel and the boys. He's amazing with them.

*****
Almost thirty minutes later, Gabriel came inside and washed his hands and splashed cold water on his face. As he dried off, he asked, "Would it be possible to get a cold drink?"

"Of course, what would you like? I have lemonade, tea, and water."

"Will you be joining me?"

"I could."

"Good, how about iced tea and we sit under a shade tree?"

"Sounds good." Katherine poured two glasses of tea and met Gabriel outside.

As she sat beside him, she asked, "We discussing anything in particular or just visiting?"

"Just spending time together. Is that all right?"

She took a sip of tea. "Sounds great. You have an away game next week, right?" After he nodded, she continued, "I'm driving. Before we leave, I'm checking my spare and jack. Tomorrow I'm buying a phone charger and keeping it in my purse."

"Probably a good idea." He held up his glass. "After I'm finished with this, I'll check and make sure your spare has air."

"You don't need to."

"Yes, I do. Saturday you have an invitational cross country meet and it's away."

"Have they changed any since I ran? How many schools will be there?"

"They haven't changed. There'll be four other schools besides you."

"I'll need to prepare my girls." Katherine hesitated, before she continued, "Will you be there?"

Gabriel's eyes widened. "I never expected that question. I may be a little late, but I'll be there." He watched for a reaction. "Does it make a difference?"

Her cheeks tinged pink. "It does. I've gotten used to you being around, but if you're too busy, I understand. I know you have morning practice and other commitments."

He took her hand and his eyes met hers. "Please understand something. There is nothing more important in my life than you and the boys." When Jeremy came out and crawled in his lap, he added, "All the boys." He faced Jeremy. "What's going on?"

"You said you'd tell me why you didn't slug that coach last night. He deserved it."

"He did, but it wouldn't have solved the problem. It would've only made it worse. He got into trouble and ejected from the game. I got to continue coaching, but I still stood up for my player. Did you want me to get ejected too?" Jeremy shook his head, and Gabriel continued, "Fighting isn't the answer. Using your brain and solving the problem the smart way is best."

"But you had your hands behind your back."

"It made me so angry I wanted to punch him. Nobody touches my players. I wanted to make sure I didn't do something stupid. If I'd have hit him, I'd been wrong too. I know this is hard for somebody your age to understand. It took me most of my adult life to figure it out. I hope it helps."

"Sort of." Jeremy jumped down and ran off to play.

"I totally confused him, didn't I?" asked Gabriel.

"I don't think so. I think it'll be in the back of his mind, when he comes across a problem. At least I hope it does."

Gabriel stood. "I'll check that spare tire and be right back."

*****
It wasn't long before Gabriel returned. "The spare has plenty of air." He studied Katherine for a few moments before he asked, "What's going through that pretty little head of yours?"

"Nothing much." When his eyebrows rose, she said, "You're not buying it, are you?" After he grinned, she asked, "Why you doing all of this?"

"That's simple. I want to."

"But..." She folded her hands in her lap. "Okay, back in New York I had a friend, Tina. While Tina dated her ex-husband..."

"I'm guessing the operative word is 'ex-husband," interrupted Gabriel.

"Maybe, it'll help me explain my question. While they were dating, he helped with dinner, dishes, and they went to the laundromat together. He was perfect."

"Then?"

"They got married, and suddenly he didn't know how to do anything. He was a slob and a completely different person. When Tina tried to speak with him about it, it'd cause a fight. He started drinking. She eventually divorced him."

"So you're worried I'm only helping so you'll marry me and then I'll stop."

Her cheeks tinged pink. "I didn't say that."

Gabriel chuckled. "Sounded like it to me."

Katherine studied her hands.

He knelt on a knee so he could see her eyes.

Joshua yelled from inside, "Guys, come quick! Coach's proposing to Mom!"

He stood and faced the kitchen window. "Get out here." When all four boys stood in front of him, he said, "When it comes time to ask your mom to marry me, I promise I'll ask each of you permission before I ask. Deal?"

Jordan, Joshua, and Joel said, "Deal."

Jeremy hugged his legs. "You already have my permission."

Gabriel hugged him back. "I'm glad, Buddy."

After the boys went inside, Katherine said, "You know they'd scare off most men."

"I'm not most men." Gabriel hesitated before he continued, "Now for what we were talking about. If you remember, when we first met you'd get upset saying I forced my way in." He grinned. "At least we're past that. I'm one of those people who sees a need and helps. Mom says it's one of my endearing but aggravating qualities."

"Bill has mentioned it on occasion."

"I'm going to promise I'll never stop helping and not because I'm trying to convince you to marry me." He cocked his head. "That doesn't sound right. When the time's right, I hope you'll agree to marry me. I understand the time isn't right for either of us." He scanned the area. "I think it's safe." He leaned over and kissed her. "Nothing would make me happier than someday making you my wife."

Katherine swallowed hard.

"I'm sorry that scared you." Gabriel stood. "I need to start the potatoes." He walked inside, but stood at the window and watched Katherine.

~~~~~~
I want to thank those of you who have expressed concern and have asked about my broken wrist. I see orthopedics again Thursday. I am off the prescription pain pills. Yesterday I only took 2 Tylenol pills. So far today, none, but keeping it heavily iced. I hate finger typing.
~~~~~~

CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons. She teaches high school math and also coaches girls cross country.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Frank Collins math teacher

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Sandy Frost Rodney Frost's wife

Sam Auto repair shop owner

Bill Brooks Assistant football coach, Gabriel's friend, and Angie's husband.

Harold Hudson Gabriel's dad and football announcer.

Sandy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Judy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Rhonda Morgan Teenage girl on cross country team, and victim of dating violence.

Mr. and Mrs. Morgan Rhonda's parents.

Kenny Clark Teenager - Rhonda's boyfriend

Grace Former friend of Gabriel and featured in porn magazine

Janette & Jackson Riley Katherine's in-laws

Dr. Martin Jordan's doctor

Troy Elder Lawyer and friend of Gabriel from his pro-football days

UIL The University Interscholastic League exists to provide educational extracurricular academic, athletic, and music contests. The UIL was created by The University of Texas at Austin in 1910 and has grown into the largest inter-school organization of its kind in the world.

Author Notes Thank you Google images for sharing a photo of grill. A side note: Arianna, my granddaughter, took second at the district track meet yesterday. I also want to thank everybody for the helpful reviews. This novel is not actually about football, but is part of the background. High football is a national pastime in Texas. This post is a little over 1,500 words. Thank you for having patience.


Chapter 58
Football Chapter 31 part 2

By barbara.wilkey

Katherine and Gabriel have known each other for 36 days.

ENDING OF PREVIOUS POST:

After the boys went inside, Katherine said, "You know they'd scare off most men."

"I'm not most men." Gabriel hesitated before he continued, "Now for what we were talking about. If you remember, when we first met you'd get upset saying I forced my way in." He grinned. "At least we're past that. I'm one of those people who sees a need and helps. Mom says it's one of my endearing but aggravating qualities."

"Bill has mentioned it on occasion."

"I'm going to promise I'll never stop helping and not because I'm trying to convince you to marry me." He cocked his head. "That doesn't sound right. When the time's right, I hope you'll agree to marry me. I understand the time isn't right for either of us." He scanned the area. "I think it's safe." He leaned over and kissed her. "Nothing would make me happier than someday making you my wife."

Katherine swallowed hard.

"I'm sorry that scared you." Gabriel stood. "I need to start the potatoes." He walked inside, but stood at the window and watched Katherine.

TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 31 part 2


When Gabriel carried the bag of charcoal outside, Katherine asked, "What can I do?"

He glanced at her. "Nothing. I'm making dinner. I have the potatoes in the microwave. The oven will heat the house."

"I can make the salad."

"I bought a bagged salad. I'll put it in bowls. I got this."

"I feel useless."

"Hmm, come here." When she got closer, he teased, "I'll let you light the charcoal."

She turned to walk away. "I'll set the table."

He reached for her arm and drew her into a hug. "I can, or at least have one of the boys do it. I really want you take it easy. I didn't understand how hard me cooking would be for you. Please let me do this." He scanned the area before he kissed her.

Closing her eyes, Katherine released a deep breath and hesitated. "I'm going inside. A load of laundry needs to be folded."

Gabriel stood at the laundry room door and watched Katherine fold T-shirts. "I know you well enough to know something's bothering you, but I'm not exactly sure what. It can be one of three things."

He held up one finger. "Is it because I'm cooking dinner, combined with you being worried I'm just doing it to con you into marrying me?"

Holding up the second finger, he said, "Or maybe because, I admitted someday I'd like to marry you? I'm willing to wait until you're ready. You're definitely worth waiting for."

Finger number three went up, before he added, "Is it because I kissed you?"

As finger number four went up, Gabriel grinned. "Maybe it's all of the above, or maybe you'd better just tell me because I'm running out of fingers."

Katherine tossed the T-shirt into the laundry basket. "Maybe it has nothing to do with you, but with me."

"I'm confused." He glanced toward the grill. "Just a minute, I'll be right back."

Waiting for him to check the grill, she finished folding the laundry. When he returned, she stood in the kitchen. Her eyes met his. "You make me feel like I'm special, like a princess. I like that feeling; a lot; too much." She studied the laundry basket. "Then reality hits. I'm not special. I don't deserve it."

His arms went around her and he drew her close. "Your low self-esteem reared its ugly head again." He kissed the top of her head. "I'm glad I make you feel like a princess. To me you are." He stepped back. "I'm betting not only to me, to the students in your classes, and especially to the girls you coach, and your sons." He hesitated. "To your mom and my parents. I can't forget Angie." He chuckled. "Usually Paul, but I wouldn't check with him Monday morning, if I were you."

"Why not? What's wrong?"

"He's pretty sure he'll get at least a call from the UIL. He mentioned between my play Friday night and you running with your girls, we're giving him job security." As Katherine's eyes widened, Gabriel hugged her again. "I'm sure he was teasing, but he'll get a call. We're good. He's used to keeping me out of trouble."

"And now me."

He pecked her cheek. "I guess we come as a packaged deal. At least from Paul's point-of-view."

"Should I be worried?" After he shook his head, she said, "Good."

Gabriel glanced at his watch. "I'd better get the steaks on. I don't want to mess up the boys' nighttime routine." On his way outside, he checked the potatoes, and added time to the microwave.

*****
As Gabriel cleared the dishes from the table, Katherine smiled. "This was good."

"I'm glad. So it'll be okay, if I do it again?"

"You have my permission. How's that?"

He nodded. "Good. I'll get dessert."

Jeremy rubbed his hands together. "Goody. I like dessert. What is it?"

Winking at Jeremy, Gabriel said, "Come on, you can help."

They set bananas, vanilla ice cream, fudge sauce, bowls, and spoons on the table.

Jeremy sat in his chair. "We're having banana splits."

Facing Gabriel, Katherine asked, "Is there anything I can do?"

"Matter-of-fact there is." He pointed to the bowls. "What's the best way to pass this out to these guys? I didn't plan well."

"I normally do an assembly line. How about I slice the bananas, you add the ice cream, Jordan adds the fudge sauce, and Joshua passes them out, youngest to oldest?"

Holding a 'thumbs up', Gabriel said, "I figured you had this worked out."

When Jeremy finished eating, Katherine glanced at him. He pouted. "I know bath time."

Quickly Joel followed. Gabriel and Joshua were in the kitchen cleaning, when Jordan asked, "Mom, can we talk?"

"Sure. Let's go in the living room." Katherine noticed Gabriel watching and she nodded toward him.

After they sat on the couch, Jordan began, "I asked Samantha to Homecoming and she accepted."

"I'm glad. Why the long face?"

"I don't know what to do next. Isn't Homecoming a dance?" After his mom nodded, he continued, "I don't know how. Will you teach me?"

"Of course, but first you'll need to ask Sammy two questions, the color of her dress and whether she'd like a pin-on or wrist corsage. Let me know and I'll order it. Now for the dancing part." Katherine got up, went to the stereo, and searched. "Give me a few minutes, and I'll get some loaded."

After the music began playing, Katherine motioned for Jordan to stand in front of her. "I can help with the slow dances, but I haven't kept up with the popular dances, so I suggest you watch Youtube videos and practice in your room. I wouldn't enlist your brothers unless you enjoy being teased."

"Got it. What do I do first?"

"First, be sure to ask Sammy if she'd like to dance. Don't assume, she does. If she does, then hold her hand and escort her to the dance floor. The man's the leader, but right now, until you learn, I'll be the leader."

Katherine placed her right hand behind Jordan's shoulder blade. Then she showed him where to place his hand before she held his other hand. "Before you touch her, you might want to ask if it's all right."

She released a deep breath. "Okay, listen to the beat of the music and begin to tap your foot." She paused. "Great, now follow my lead." She stepped back with her left foot, and then slid the right to it. She stepped back with her right foot and slid the left until they were together and then repeated it. "It's okay to watch your feet, but as you get used to it, look at Sammy, not your feet."

They repeated the steps and Katherine said, "Good job. You're doing great."

When they heard footsteps coming toward them, Jordan stepped away and studied his feet.

Gabriel cleared his throat and warned, "Joshua."

Katherine's eyes met Gabriel's and mouthed, "Thank you." When he nodded, she asked, "At the school dances do they still ensure the students remain a certain distance apart?"

"They do." Gabriel stepped closer to Katherine. "I was wondering if you'd be my date to Homecoming."

Her eyes widened. "You're inviting me to Homecoming?"

Gabriel winked at Jordan. "This getting a date is even difficult for adults." He faced Katherine. "I am. I have to chaperone and figured I needed a date."

"Who do you usually take? She may not like you asking me."

"Reggie. I'm pretty sure he won't mind. I'll still take him and he'll still eat too many cookies and get an upset stomach." He tilted his head. "You're leaving me hanging."

Jordan attempted to hide his snicker, but couldn't. "Mom, just answer his question."

"A girl can't be too careful." Katherine studied Gabriel for a few moments. "Of course, I'll accompany you to Homecoming. Was there ever really a question?" She got quiet. "I guess it'll be our first date. You know people will talk."

"No worse than they did last week at the grocery store. I guess it's official, we're dating. Is that okay?"

Her eyes met his. "It is." She tapped Jordan's arm. "Let's try this again."

After a few more dances, Katherine said, "I think you're ready to lead." She sat on the couch. "Start from the beginning."

Jordan asked his mom to dance and then led her to the dance floor. He remembered to ask if it was all right to touch her. As they danced, Katherine smiled. "You're doing a wonderful job. Next Saturday we'll practice again. Okay?"

He hugged his mom. "Thank you."

Gabriel tapped Jordan's shoulder. "May I butt in?" His eyes met Katherine's and he offered his hand. "Will you dance with me?"

She accepted his hand. "Of course."

As they danced, Jordan watched for a few minutes before going upstairs. "Good night."

Both Gabriel and Katherine said good night and continued, moving closer and closer. Leaning over, Gabriel's kiss lingered. Their dance became two bodies swaying together as they kissed.

Gabriel backed away. "I need to leave." He cleared his throat and exhaled. "Sorry, I'm leaving. I'll come by in the morning." He tapped his thigh. "Come on, Reggie."

Katherine watched him.



~~~~~~
I want to thank those of you who have expressed concern and have asked about my broken wrist. Thursday when I went to see my Orthopedic doctor, I got another new cast, for two reasons, first I need to move my fingers and second, my cast fell off. I guess I'm hard on casts. I now have to do some finger movements every two hours, and some hand/wrist movements every four hours. I asked if I could type and was told yes, but I'm realizing the cast stops the little finger from hitting the 'a' any idea how often you use the 'a' key? I do as much typing as my pain level allows, but keeping it heavily iced.
~~~~~~

CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons. She teaches high school math and also coaches girls cross country.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Frank Collins math teacher

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Sandy Frost Rodney Frost's wife

Sam Auto repair shop owner

Bill Brooks Assistant football coach, Gabriel's friend, and Angie's husband.

Harold Hudson Gabriel's dad and football announcer.

Sandy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Judy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Rhonda Morgan Teenage girl on cross country team, and victim of dating violence.

Mr. and Mrs. Morgan Rhonda's parents.

Kenny Clark Teenager - Rhonda's boyfriend

Grace Former friend of Gabriel and featured in porn magazine

Janette & Jackson Riley Katherine's in-laws

Dr. Martin Jordan's doctor

Troy Elder Lawyer and friend of Gabriel from his pro-football days

UIL The University Interscholastic League exists to provide educational extracurricular academic, athletic, and music contests. The UIL was created by The University of Texas at Austin in 1910 and has grown into the largest inter-school organization of its kind in the world.

Author Notes Thank you Google images for sharing a photo of a couple slow dancing. I also want to thank everybody for the helpful reviews. This novel is not actually about football, but is part of the background. High football is a national pastime in Texas. This post is a little over 1,500 words. Thank you for having patience.


Chapter 59
Football Chapter 32 part 1

By barbara.wilkey

Katherine and Gabriel have known each other for 37 days.

ENDING OF PREVIOUS POST:

Gabriel tapped Jordan's shoulder. "May I butt in?" His eyes met Katherine's and he offered his hand. "Will you dance with me?"

She accepted his hand. "Of course."

As they danced, Jordan watched for a few minutes before going upstairs. "Good night."

Both Gabriel and Katherine said good night and continued, moving closer and closer. Leaning over, Gabriel's kiss lingered. Their dance became two bodies swaying together as they kissed.

Gabriel backed away. "I need to leave." He cleared his throat and exhaled. "Sorry, I'm leaving. I'll come by in the morning." He tapped his thigh. "Come on, Reggie."

Katherine watched him.


TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 32 part 1

Sunday mid-morning, Gabriel and Reggie watched from the sidewalk in front of Katherine's house. He petted the dog's head. "Who's at Katherine's door?" He stared. He gave her a rose. He must know her. What's he want? Why's she smiling? He turned. "Come on. I guess she's busy." They both returned to the pick-up. "Now, what do I do, Buddy?" He had his hand on the ignition key as the man left.

*****
Katherine stood on the porch and studied Gabriel's pick-up. She glanced at the rose. Certainly he's not jealous. As she started toward the pick-up, Gabriel and Reggie got out.

Reggie came up to her. She knelt, hugged the dog's large neck, and adjusted his bib. Her eyes met Gabriel's, as she said, "Good morning. Is there a problem?"

"Why'd there be a problem?"

She stood. "No reason, unless you misinterpreted what you just saw."

"What I saw was a man gave you a rose and you smiled. Did he ask you out?"

Katherine tilted her head. "He did." She took his hand and led him toward the house. "I thanked him, but told him no because I'm in a committed relationship."

"Where'd you meet him?"

"At the coffee shop."

"I'll get my own coffee."

"You're cute when you're jealous, but there's no reason to be." As they walked into the house, her cheeks tinged pink. "Last night your kisses..."

"About that," interrupted Gabriel. "It took every ounce of self-control I had to keep from carrying you to the bedroom..."

"Shh," she interrupted by putting her finger across his lips. She reached up and kissed his cheek.

"Pretending my desires don't exist isn't stopping them."

"I know. The only options I see are to stop seeing each other or give in to them." She stared at him. "I don't want to do either, so I guess we ignore them."

"It's the only acceptable option." He put his hand in the small of her back. "Pancakes for breakfast? What did you say that man's name was?"

Katherine leaned her head against his arm. "Yes, pancakes, and I didn't say his name."

He cocked his head. "Who was he?"

"He's new in town and a lawyer; Melton Ivory. I'm not avoiding the coffee shop." She went into the kitchen. "First batch will be ready in a few minutes. I've already made the batter."

*****
After the boys had eaten, Gabriel and Katherine walked toward the pick-up. Katherine stopped and pointed. "Those weren't there last week."

"The reason I was a little late getting to your place after the track meet was I had the running boards and steps added." He grinned. "I noticed you had a little trouble getting in and out."

"Thank you, but you didn't need to do that."

Gabriel opened the back seat and removed a ladder. "In case you need to get something from the bed and can't reach."

"That's really sweet. Thank you."

"I have my moments." He opened the door for her and as he closed it he muttered under his breath, "But I'm not a lawyer, only a jock."

After Gabriel turned the key, Katherine put her hand over his. "I don't want a lawyer. I want you."

He nodded.

As Gabriel got the grocery cart, he grinned. "No strategy, right?"

Katherine held up a paper. "I have a list." She paused. "Last week we didn't know we were having a movie marathon until after grocery shopping."

"I'll give you that one," he teased.

"I wrote menus but never asked if there was anything you'd like or anything you don't like."

"I'm not picky. I like all food. I've enjoyed everything you've fixed." He picked up a large container of coffee. "Can never have too much coffee."

She shook her head. "I'm beginning to realize that."

At the checkout counter, Katherine rushed to the cashier. "I'm paying. Do not allow Gabriel to pay."

The young lady grinned. "Yes, Ma'am."

After Katherine headed toward the door, Gabriel handed the cashier a paper. "I need these groceries delivered to," he pointed, "this address at four-thirty."

"No problem, Coach."

The boys helped carry in groceries while Katherine put them away. When Gabriel brought in the last bag, Katherine asked, "What time is Mr. Elder coming? Should I see if Mom can watch the boys?"

"Two o'clock. I think he needs to see how well-adjusted the boys are."

"Good idea, it'll be good for him to see your relationship with them. He needs to know you're a positive role model so he knows what he's fighting for."

Gabriel put his arm around her shoulder and squeezed. "Thank you. I needed to hear that today."


~~~~~~
I want to thank those of you who have expressed concern and have asked about my broken wrist. I'm improving little by little. I get discouraged because I want to see improvement faster. I am faithfully doing my rehab. My ability to type using my left hand is lasting longer each day before I have to ice.
~~~~~~

CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons. She teaches high school math and also coaches girls cross country.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Sandy Frost Rodney Frost's wife

Sam Auto repair shop owner

Bill Brooks Assistant football coach, Gabriel's friend, and Angie's husband.

Harold Hudson Gabriel's dad and football announcer.

Sandy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Judy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Rhonda Morgan Teenage girl on cross country team, and victim of dating violence.

Mr. and Mrs. Morgan Rhonda's parents.

Kenny Clark Teenager - Rhonda's boyfriend

Grace Former friend of Gabriel and featured in porn magazine

Janette & Jackson Riley Katherine's in-laws

Dr. Martin Jordan's doctor

Troy Elder Lawyer and friend of Gabriel from his pro-football days

UIL The University Interscholastic League exists to provide educational extracurricular academic, athletic, and music contests. The UIL was created by The University of Texas at Austin in 1910 and has grown into the largest inter-school organization of its kind in the world.

Melton Ivory Lawyer and possible new suitor for Katherine

Author Notes Thank you Google images for sharing a photo of a red rose bud. I also want to thank everybody for the helpful reviews. This novel is not actually about football, but is part of the background. High football is a national pastime in Texas. This post is a little under 800 words. Next weeks is longer and it was just too long to post on FS if I didn't break the two up. Thank you for having patience.


Chapter 60
Football Chapter 32 part 2

By barbara.wilkey

Katherine and Gabriel have known each other for 37 days.

ENDING OF PREVIOUS POST:

The boys helped carry in groceries while Katherine put them away. When Gabriel brought in the last bag, Katherine asked, "What time is Mr. Elder coming? Should I see if Mom can watch the boys?"

"Two o'clock. I think he needs to see how well-adjusted the boys are."

"Good idea, it'll be good for him to see your relationship with them. He needs to know you're a positive role model so he knows what he's fighting for."

Gabriel put his arm around her shoulder and squeezed. "Thank you. I needed to hear that today."

TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 32 part 2

A few minutes before two o'clock Gabriel greeted Troy Elder and led him to the dining room table.

Katherine came downstairs and offered her hand. "Hello. Can I get you some iced tea or lemonade?"

Gabriel's eyes met hers. "Crisis averted?"

She nodded. "Jeremy's doing timeout." She faced the lawyer. "Sorry. What can I get you?"

Troy opened his briefcase. "Iced tea will be fine. Thank you."

When Katherine returned with the tea and sat, Troy began. "Has anything changed since we spoke last week?"

Katherine studied her hands. "I think you should know Friday night, Gabriel didn't leave until after one o'clock. The reason; we had an away football game, toward Dallas, on the way home we had a flat tire, and no jack or spare. We didn't arrive home until after midnight. So when the P.I. reports him leaving early Saturday morning, that's the reason. By the way, can you do anything about him? It's getting ridiculous. If we haven't done anything immoral by now, we won't and we know he's there."

Mr. Elder wrote it down. "You've brought up a good point." He glanced at his notes. "I'm suggesting we have a sit down with Mr. and Mrs. Riley, and their lawyer to discuss their intentions. The day I'm suggesting is Monday, September twenty-three at one o'clock."

Katherine stood. "Let me get my calendar."

After Katherine left, Gabriel asked, "Do you want me there?"

"Yes. I'll continue when Mrs. Riley returns."

Gabriel removed his phone and added the date to his calendar.

When she returned, she opened her planner and wrote it. She turned her head when a timer sounded. "It's for Jeremy. He's released from time out."

Jeremy bound down the stairs. "Coach, can Reggie and I go outside?"

"Yes." Gabriel noticed Jeremy head for the front door and added, "Out back." As they watched the child leave the room, he asked, "Troy, what's this meeting going to look like?"

"Glad you ask. These people have no right bringing charges. My research hasn't revealed anything that's even questionable. I want a sit down where they're required to prove their allegations. As the accused, you have that right. Once this is addressed, and I keep pressing for proof, their lawyer will realize how fraudulent it is and drop it."

Troy held up a paper. "I've also filed a counter-charge; if they continue and can't prove any wrongdoing they'll have to pay all court costs, my fee, and $100,000 pain-and-suffering. I think we can prove, for example, that P.I. watching the house has caused undue stress. Gabriel just told Jeremy, he couldn't go out front," he nodded, "because you're worried about the P.I. correct?"

Chuckling, Gabriel said, "Right. It has nothing to do with him being a six-year-old mischievous little boy and the backyard's fenced." After he released a deep breath, he asked, "How much will my past be a problem?"

"I spoke to over thirty people and all I've heard were praises about how great you are." Troy paused. "If you would've handled that coach differently Friday night, I would've had to justify your actions. Under the circumstances, I could've pulled it off, but prefer not to."

Gabriel nodded. "Understood."

Katherine put her hand over Gabriel's. "Mr. Elder, I'm hearing only the positive. I'm sure they must have something or they wouldn't even attempt this."

"When I've spoken to their lawyer, what I keep hearing is Gabe's professional history and the fact you're working. They seem to think you aren't providing adequate childcare."

Gabriel slapped the table. "That's ridiculous."

Troy's eyes met Gabriel's. "No matter how untrue or outrageous their comments are, you have to keep your temper under control. I know when people you love are affected, it's hard. You have no choice." He turned toward Katherine. "What arrangements have been made for the boys? I understand you're coaching, too."

"Yes, Sir. I coach girls' cross country." Katherine took a deep breath and stretched her hand on the tabletop. "Okay. When Jordan and I leave for school, my mom, Sarah Beck's already here and takes the other three to school."

When Katherine closed her eyes, Gabriel held her hand. She opened them and continued, "After school, Mom picks up Jeremy and Joel. Joshua has football practice and I pick him up. My cross country and his practice get over about the same time. When I get home, Mom leaves."

Taking notes, Troy stopped and asked, "If you get out late, who picks up Joshua?"

"That's happened once, he knows to call Grandma. Gabriel brings Jordan home after practice."

"What happens if Gabe can't bring him home?"

Gabriel said, "One of the other coaches, Bill Brooks, brings him home. He and his wife, Angie, are family friends."

"Are those the only people who've cared for the boys?"

Staring at Troy, Gabriel said, "I don't know where you're going with this, but on a few occasions my parents have watched the boys."

"Overnight?"

Gabriel glared at him. "Yes, overnight. Why?"

"I'm not the bad person here, but I need all the facts. If they stayed at your parents so you could have a night alone with Mrs. Riley, I need to know. That way I can defend it if they bring it up..." Troy's eyes met Gabriel's. "The temper, remember?"

Gabriel faced Katherine. "Do you remember how many times Mom and Dad had the boys?

"Wasn't the first time when Harold offered to let them watch the stars through the telescope?" After Gabriel nodded, Katherine continued, "Jordan came home with us because we all had early morning practice. Gabriel brought us here and went to his own place. The second time, Gabriel and I did spend the night together, at the hospital. Jordan was injured during a football game. He cared enough to stay with us. I think those are the only times."

Katherine fidgeted with her glass. "In case you're wondering, Gabriel and I have not slept together. He's too much of a gentleman to let anything happen that'd put me or my boys in jeopardy."

Troy tapped the pen on his pad. "I've known Gabe for years. I can tell how much he loves you and the boys. It's obvious."

They all turned their heads when somebody knocked on the door. Gabriel glanced at his watch. "That's for me." After he answered, thanked, and paid the person, he carried bags of groceries.

Katherine excused herself and followed him into the kitchen. "What are you doing? A few hours ago we were at the grocery store. Why didn't we get these then?"

Gabriel held up three family packs of chicken. "I didn't know who liked what so got plenty of breasts, thighs, and legs." He continued putting groceries away.

Staring at him, she said, "You haven't answered my question."

After the groceries were put away, Gabriel kissed her cheek. "I asked Troy to stay for dinner. I'm grilling chicken. We left him at the table, maybe we should get back."

When they both returned, Troy grinned. "I take it Gabe forgot to mention I'm staying for dinner."

After releasing of a deep breath, Katherine answered, "You're correct. You're more than welcome and I'm glad you're staying. I think it's a great idea. I wish I had known. I could've prepared."

Gabriel placed his hand over hers. "That's why I didn't tell you. I didn't want you to go to any extra work. I got this."

"Any more questions?" asked Troy.

Katherine glanced at Gabriel. "I don't, do you?"

He stood. "At least not now. I'd better start the grill. Let's go outside. There should be shade on the patio."

*****
After the fire was started, and the adults were seated, Jeremy ran up and said, "Coach, don't go anywhere. I'll be right back." He ran inside.

Gabriel's eyes widened and he looked at Katherine. "Any idea?"

"Nope. With him, it could be anything."

Jeremy returned waving a paper. "Will you help me call Grandpa and ask if he can come to lunch?"

He removed his phone and read the paper. After Harold answered, Gabriel continued, "Dad, Jeremy has something he wants to ask."

Climbing on Gabriel's lap and taking the phone, Jeremy said, "Grandpa, at school is 'have lunch with your Grandpa', will you come and have lunch with me?" He listened and then started bouncing up and down. "Thank you." He looked at his mom. "He said he'd be honored." Giving the phone back to Gabriel, he added, "He wants to know some stuff." Jeremy climbed down and ran off to play.

Gabriel thanked his dad and gave him the date, October first and time, eleven-thirty.

Troy laughed. "The entire family's involved with these boys, aren't they?"

Katherine shielded her eyes as she watched them. "They are and it's a good thing, at least for the boys. My hope's Harold and Rebecca don't mind the interruption of their peaceful lives too much."

As he leaned over and kissed her cheek, Gabriel said, "I've told you, Mom and Dad enjoy the boys."

They continued visiting through dinner. After dinner, Jeremy pouted and looked at his mom. "I know I need to take my bath."

Joshua chuckled. "You know you have to do it every night after dinner, why..." As Gabriel cleared his throat, Joshua quieted.

Katherine stood. "On that note, I'll get started on the dishes."

Gabriel reached over and took Troy's plate. "I'll help. Boys?"

Within minutes, the boys and Gabriel returned as he said, "Kate will be here in a second. She's finishing up."

Jordan waited until his brothers went upstairs before he said, "Mr. Elder, I know you're the lawyer helping Mom with the custody case. I don't understand everything that's going on, but Mom's a good mom. Dad's parents don't like us. It was obvious when we stayed overnight. Even Jeremy figured it out. Please help Mom."

Troy studied Jordan for a few moments. "I promise Mr. and Mrs. Riley won't take you away."

"Thank you, Sir." Jordan turned his head after he heard Jeremy call 'Mom' and said, "I need to go. I told Mom, I'd read Jeremy his story."

Gabriel and Troy watched Jordan go upstairs, before Troy said, "He's a good kid. All the boys are. I didn't know the boys knew what's going on."

"Only Jordan. He figured it out so we didn't have a choice."

Troy grinned. "You'd better marry this gal before somebody comes along and scoops her up."

Pointing to the single rose in a vase, Gabriel said, "This morning when I came over, an interested suitor was at her door with that. He asked her out." When Troy's eyes widened, Gabriel added, "She turned him down and told him she's in a committed relationship."

Katherine entered, stood behind Gabriel, and put her hands on his shoulders. "What are you guys talking about?"

Troy took a drink. "How lucky you two are that you found each other."

"I agree. I'm lucky Gabriel came into my life."

Gabriel mouthed, "Thank you." He took a moment before he got up. "I need to check the grill and make sure I shut it down."

Katherine and Troy watched him walk out, and then Troy patted her hand. "I think that's my cue to leave." He stared toward the kitchen. "I've known Gabe for over fifteen years. The thought of another man being interested in you has him worried. Go talk to him. I'll stay in touch and let myself out."

When Katherine walked outside, she saw Gabriel passing a football from one hand to the other. "Mr. Elder said he'd be in touch and goodnight."

Gabriel studied her.

She continued, "I've found a vulnerable spot in my bigger than life, arrogant, cocky, strong jock." Walking up to him, she took the football, set it in a chair, and held both his hands. "Gabriel, I can't read your mind. You've always encouraged us to talk things out. Now, you're not talking and it's scaring me."

He used his thumbs to caress her hands.

"I thought you were jealous because Mr. Ivory asked me out. I turned him down. I don't want to go out with him. I want you. I don't know what I did wrong. I don't know how to make it right. I'm sorry."

He put his arms around her and drew her close. "You've done nothing wrong. That guy reminded me I'm only a D-lineman, and as Joshua put it they're not noted for their intelligence only their muscles."

She stood on her tippy toes and kissed him. "Stop. You're one of the most intelligent people I know."

He stepped back. "You've mentioned how I taxed my brain majoring in P.E. in college."

Pausing, she said, "I was wrong about that and about a lot of things." She wiped her eyes. "I'm honored a man as wonderful as you is interested in me."

He kissed her. "I'm not interested in you; I'm in love with you. I'm a jock and I know you despised them. Seeing another man at your door caused me to face that fear. I understand just as easily as you came into my life you could leave."

"Seven months ago, Friday, George died. Since then I've planned his funeral, sold the penthouse, figured out his estate, and bought this house." She moved her hands toward the house. "By myself I moved my family over 1,700 miles, and for the first time started working." She gulped. "Since I moved here, I've been humiliated by Mr. Frost, and my in-laws have filed for custody of my boys."

Taking his hands in hers, Katherine continued, "You're the best thing that's ever happened to me. After all of this is settled, I'll need time to breathe. I want you permanently in my life, but I need time."

Gabriel kissed her a slow lingering kiss. "As long as I know you love me, I'll give you as much time as you need."

"I do love you."



~~~~~~
I want to thank those of you who have expressed concern and have asked about my broken wrist. I have a doctor's appointment on Wednesday. I want good news, but I fear I have not healed as quickly as I had hoped. When i expressed this to my husband he commented, "Old ladies don't. Just be grateful all you broke was your wrist. He got the silent treatment for a few hours. LOL
~~~~~~

CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons. She teaches high school math and also coaches girls cross country.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Sandy Frost Rodney Frost's wife

Sam Auto repair shop owner

Bill Brooks Assistant football coach, Gabriel's friend, and Angie's husband.

Harold Hudson Gabriel's dad and football announcer.

Sandy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Judy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Rhonda Morgan Teenage girl on cross country team, and victim of dating violence.

Mr. and Mrs. Morgan Rhonda's parents.

Kenny Clark Teenager - Rhonda's boyfriend

Grace Former friend of Gabriel and featured in porn magazine

Janette & Jackson Riley Katherine's in-laws

Dr. Martin Jordan's doctor

Troy Elder Lawyer and friend of Gabriel from his pro-football days

UIL The University Interscholastic League exists to provide educational extracurricular academic, athletic, and music contests. The UIL was created by The University of Texas at Austin in 1910 and has grown into the largest inter-school organization of its kind in the world.

Melton Ivory Lawyer and possible new suitor for Katherine


Author Notes Thank you Google images for sharing a photo of a sad heart. I also want to thank everybody for the helpful reviews. This novel is far from over. Katherine and Gabriel still have some life issues to navigate. This is truly the calm before the storm. This novel is not actually about football, but is part of the background. High football is a national pastime in Texas. This post is a little over 2,300 words. I am sorry for the length. I probably should have broken it up more. Thank you for having patience.


Chapter 61
Football Chapter 33 part 1

By barbara.wilkey

Katherine and Gabriel have known each other for 41 days.

ENDING OF PREVIOUS POST:

Pausing, she said, "I was wrong about that and about a lot of things." She wiped her eyes. "I'm honored a man as wonderful as you is interested in me."

He kissed her. "I'm not interested in you; I'm in love with you. I'm a jock and I know you despised them. Seeing another man at your door caused me to face that fear. I understand just as easily as you came into my life you could leave."

"Seven months ago, Friday, George died. Since then I've planned his funeral, sold the penthouse, figured out his estate, and bought this house." She moved her hands toward the house. "By myself I moved my family over 1,700 miles, and for the first time started working." She gulped. "Since I moved here, I've been humiliated by Mr. Frost, and my in-laws have filed for custody of my boys."

Taking his hands in hers, Katherine continued, "You're the best thing that's ever happened to me. After all of this is settled, I'll need time to breathe. I want you permanently in my life, but I need time."

Gabriel kissed her a slow lingering kiss. "As long as I know you love me, I'll give you as much time as you need."

"I do love you."

TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 33 part 1

Thursday, as Katherine dismissed the students from her fourth period class, the office called and said there was someone who wanted to speak with her.

When Katherine entered the office, there stood Melton Ivory. He held a boutique of roses. "Good afternoon. I hope you don't mind me showing up." He held out the flowers. "These are for you."

Katherine didn't accept them. "They're beautiful, but..."

"I needed to come by because I have dinner reservations tomorrow night..."

"I'm sorry but I'm busy," interrupted Katherine. "My son has a football game."

"I'll change them to Saturday evening."

Her eyes met his. "I don't think you understand. I can't accept the flowers and I can't accept a dinner invitation. I told you Sunday, I'm in an exclusive relationship." She faced the door. "I'm busy. I need to get back to my classroom."

Melton held her arm. "What night are you free?"

Katherine stared at his hand holding hers. "Sir, remove your hand and don't touch me again."

Mr. Edwards' office door opened and Gabriel stepped out. "The lady said leave her alone." He walked closer and put his hand at the small of her back. "Mrs. Riley, I'll escort you to your room." He glared at Ivory. "When I return, you'd better be gone."

In the hallway, Katherine said, "Thank you. He wouldn't listen."

"Paul and I heard." Gabriel grinned. "I hope you didn't mind me butting in. Paul suggested we call the police."

As they entered Katherine's room, she closed the door, reached up, and pecked his cheek. "I didn't mind. I've come to look forward to your pushiness."

Gabriel's eyes twinkled. "As much as I'd enjoy returning that kiss, we're at work. I'd better get back to my meeting. I'll see you after school."

*****
As Angie and Katherine waited for the girls to join them outside for practice, Gabriel walked up. "I didn't get a chance to ask earlier. How'd your doctor's appointment go this morning?"

"No problems."

Angie headed toward the locker room. "I'll check on the rest of the girls and see what's taking so long."

She watched Angie walk away. "Do you think Mr. Ivory got the message?"

"I hope so. Does he give you any issues at the coffee shop?"

"When I've picked up your coffee, he just said hi. I thought everything was settled. Him showing up surprised me."

Gabriel checked his vibrating phone. "I got to go. Kenny's giving Bill issues about homework. See you after practice."

After Gabriel left, Angie walked to Katherine. "When you going to tell him the doctor found a lump in your breast?"

"I won't unless I have something to tell. The doctor said it's probably benign. I have an ultrasound Monday. We'll know more then. We need to get practice started."

"I'm just saying Gabe won't like being kept in the dark."

*****
As Katherine set the dishes on the table, Gabriel and Jordan walked in. She smiled. "How'd practice go?"

Jordan plopped in his chair. "After this practice I'm positive the coaches are into torture." He faced Gabriel. "There's no way that was conditioning."

"You guys can take it easy during tomorrow's night's game."

Katherine patted Jordan's shoulder. "I heard the Mustangs will be hard to beat." She headed toward the kitchen.

"It'll be our toughest game, until we're in district play." Gabriel peeked in the kitchen. "Can I help?"

"No, we're ready. Jordan, please get your brothers."

Holding her chair, while she sat Gabriel said, "You mentioned earlier you're driving. Are you still?" After she nodded, he reached into his back pocket. "Here's the map to the stadium. It's about a mile west of the high school. It should take about an hour. I'm forgetting something." After thinking a moment, he said, "The time for the cross country meet is..." He checked his phone. "Ten-thirty. The bus leaves at eight o'clock."

"That's not too bad. I'll have the girls show up at seven o'clock."

"Good idea. I'll bring Jordan. What about the rest of the boys?"

"I haven't decided. I hate Mom driving that distance with them."

"Want me to stop by the house and get them?" He cocked his head. "I'd need to drive your SUV. Bill's going and..." He grinned. "Reggie. So that's seven people."

Katherine adjusted Reggie's bib and then hugged him, before she responded, "I didn't ask you to do all of that."

"I know. I'm offering. But it's up to you."

Jeremy cuddled beside Coach. "Please, Mom, please."

"I guess, but you're going to have to promise to behave."

Joshua scooped some vegetables onto his plate. "Mom, are you worried Coach can't handle us? That doesn't make sense, he's Coach."

Pink tinged her cheeks. "I guess I shouldn't have questioned it." Her eyes met Gabriel's. "Sorry."

He winked.

*****
After the dishes were finished and the boys were upstairs, Katherine took a set of keys from a hutch drawer and handed them to Gabriel. "SUV and house keys."

"This is a big step. Sure about this?"

"Yes. It makes sense. Last Friday you were here before us. Luckily Jordan had his key."

Gabriel held up the vehicle key. "Your spare?" After she nodded, he said, "Saturday, I'll stop by the dealership and get another one made. I need to change the subject a little. Bill mentioned Angie isn't running with him in the mornings. She's getting worn out and is now only running with you and the girls. Do you feel you need to cut back?"

"Going from car keys to running is more than a little change. But to answer your question, no. I need to run. It helps me handle stress, plus I'm finally making progress on those extra ten pounds from Jeremy."

Lightly squeezing her arm, he teased, "Where are those extra pounds?" As she laughed, he continued with her other arm. "Nope, not here either." He placed his hand on her flat stomach and removed it. "Sorry." He stood. "It's time for me to leave."

She stood beside him and placed her hands on her rear-end. "It's right here."

He leaned over, looked, and then grinned. "Doesn't look like it's there either." He glanced at the door. "I really do need to leave."

"I know."

As they stood at the door, Gabriel put his arms around her. "Good night." He leaned over and kissed her.

After the kiss, Katherine opened her eyes and sighed.

Gabriel asked, "Something wrong?"

"No everything's perfect. I could get used to this."

He kissed her again. "So could I. Good night." He walked out the door.


~~~~~~
I want to thank those of you who have expressed concern and have asked about my broken wrist. My appointment Wednesday went better than I anticipated. I am still doing rehab but not on my fingers this time. They are now moving, which helps with typing. My wrist doesn't want to bend, so I am doing rehab to make it bend. I don't go back to the doctor until January 4th.
~~~~~~

CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons. She teaches high school math and also coaches girls cross country.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Sandy Frost Rodney Frost's wife

Sam Auto repair shop owner

Bill Brooks Assistant football coach, Gabriel's friend, and Angie's husband.

Harold Hudson Gabriel's dad and football announcer.

Sandy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Judy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Rhonda Morgan Teenage girl on cross country team, and victim of dating violence.

Mr. and Mrs. Morgan Rhonda's parents.

Kenny Clark Teenager - Rhonda's boyfriend

Grace Former friend of Gabriel and featured in porn magazine

Janette & Jackson Riley Katherine's in-laws

Dr. Martin Jordan's doctor

Troy Elder Lawyer and friend of Gabriel from his pro-football days

UIL The University Interscholastic League exists to provide educational extracurricular academic, athletic, and music contests. The UIL was created by The University of Texas at Austin in 1910 and has grown into the largest inter-school organization of its kind in the world.

Melton Ivory Lawyer and possible new suitor for Katherine

Author Notes Thank you Google images for sharing a photo of a boutique of roses. I also want to thank everybody for the helpful reviews. Last week
I had made so many mistakes it was embarrassing. I hope I won't have that problem this week. Again, thank you for catching those errors. This novel is far from over. Katherine and Gabriel still have some life issues to navigate. This is truly the calm before the storm. This novel is not actually about football, but is part of the background. High football is a national pastime in Texas. This post is a little over 1,00 words. Thank you for having patience.


Chapter 62
Football Chapter 34 part 1

By barbara.wilkey

Katherine and Gabriel have known each other for 42 days.

ENDING OF PREVIOUS POST:

"Going from car keys to running is more than a little change. But to answer your question, no. I need to run. It helps me handle stress, plus I'm finally making progress on those extra ten pounds from Jeremy."

Lightly squeezing her arm, he teased, "Where are those extra pounds?" As she laughed, he continued with her other arm. "Nope, not here either." He placed his hand on her flat stomach and removed it. "Sorry." He stood. "It's time for me to leave."

She stood beside him and placed her hands on her rear-end. "It's right here."

He leaned over, looked, and then grinned. "Doesn't look like it's there either." He glanced at the door. "I really do need to leave."

"I know."

As they stood at the door, Gabriel put his arms around her. "Good night." He leaned over and kissed her.

After the kiss, Katherine opened her eyes and sighed.

Gabriel asked, "Something wrong?"

"No everything's perfect. I could get used to this."

He kissed her again. "So could I. Good night." He walked out the door.

TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 34 part 1

Friday morning, Gabriel watched as Katherine walked toward the house after their early morning run. "Just letting you know those extra ten pounds are definitely not back there."

She faced him. "You're incorrigible."

His eyes sparkled. "I know. In case we don't meet up at school, be sure to text and let me know you made it to the game safely."

Standing at her door, she said, "Will do and good luck."

*****
At the coffee shop, Katherine turned with the three coffees and Gabriel's breakfast. She stood face-to-face with Melton and said, "Hello," and then attempted to walk around him.

He moved in front of her. "I don't know why you called the gestapo. I'd never hurt you."

"I didn't call anybody." Again, she attempted to step around him. "Excuse me, but I need to leave."

He took her arm.

"I've told you don't touch me."

After a few moments of silence, he removed his hand and he said, "Is that Neanderthal your boyfriend? You can do so much better." He hesitated. "I just want to talk to you."

"Gabriel's far from a Neanderthal."

Gabriel walked through the door. "Kate, you don't need to defend me. Please wait in the car." He turned toward Nancy. "Thank you." Facing Melton, he said, "There are other coffee shops in town. If you continue using this one, you'd better make sure it's after," he checked his watch, "eight o'clock. I'll be called every time you harass Mrs. Riley and the next time I won't be in such a good mood. Do you understand?"

"Sir, you can't tell me what I can and can't do. This is a free country and I have rights."

"Yep, you're a lawyer all right." Gabriel started to leave but stopped and turned. "Katherine has rights too. The way I see it, you're stalking her and if it continues she'll file a complaint. How would that look on your resume?"

As Gabriel proceeded toward the door, other customers commented, "Coach, we'll make sure Katherine's safe."

Gabriel nodded. "Thank you." He walked up to Katherine's SUV and opened the driver's door. "I'm curious what you were going to say after he's not a Neanderthal. He's a football player? To him that would've been the same." He pecked her cheek. "I know I pushed my way in again and I will the next time too."

"I was going to say thank you."

He winked. "You're welcome. I'll catch up with you later."

*****
After the football players were released from fifth period class, Jordan waited outside Gabriel's office.

Gabriel nodded toward him. "Riley, come in. You want to talk? Is it about football or personal?"

"Personal, Coach."

Closing the door, Gabriel motioned toward a chair. "Have a seat, Jordan. What's up?"

"I wanted to thank you for helping Mom at the coffee shop."

"You heard about that?"

"I think the entire school knows about it." Jordan grinned. "And the kiss you gave her in the parking lot."

Rubbing his chin, Gabriel said, "Sorry about that."

"I'm sure it's not the first time you've kissed." Jordan hesitated. "I'm old enough to realize Mom's a looker." He chuckled. "Most of the football team say they're signing up for her class next year."

Shaking his head, Gabriel grinned. "Thanks for the heads up. Most of my team will be ineligible. If I ask, think Mr. Edwards will let her teach the beginning math courses?"

"That's between you and the principal." Jordan stood. "I'd better get packed. Thank you for the talk."

Gabriel tapped his shoulder. "Any time. You're always welcome."

After Jordan left, Bill and Paul walked in, as Bill asked, "What did Riley want?"

"I guess the entire school knows about the incident at the coffee shop this morning."

Bill teased, "Yep, and the parking lot kiss."

"I gave her a small kiss on the cheek."

Paul chuckled. "That's not what I heard."

Frowning, Gabriel growled, "That's exactly what it was. Did you two come in for a reason or just to aggravate me?"

Glancing toward the bus area, Bill reported, "I came to let you know the buses are here."

Pointing toward his office, Paul stated, "I wanted to remind you that I'd appreciate not having to deal with UIL representatives all week. I know this'll be your toughest game so far but try not to do anything too outlandish. Deal?"

Grinning, Gabriel stood. "I'll try, but won't make any promises." He started to walk out, but turned. "Will there be any issues with the peck I gave Kate?"

"Shouldn't be, but try not to make a habit of it."

"Good." He called through the locker room door, "Load up!"


~~~~~~
I want to thank those of you who have expressed concern and have asked about my broken wrist. I'm continuing with rehab. My wrist is starting to bend down a little, but so far not much luck with it bending up. I don't go back to the doctor until January 4th.
~~~~~~

CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons. She teaches high school math and also coaches girls cross country.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Sandy Frost Rodney Frost's wife

Sam Auto repair shop owner

Bill Brooks Assistant football coach, Gabriel's friend, and Angie's husband.

Harold Hudson Gabriel's dad and football announcer.

Sandy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Judy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Rhonda Morgan Teenage girl on cross country team, and victim of dating violence.

Mr. and Mrs. Morgan Rhonda's parents.

Kenny Clark Teenager - Rhonda's boyfriend

Grace Former friend of Gabriel and featured in porn magazine

Janette & Jackson Riley Katherine's in-laws

Dr. Martin Jordan's doctor

Troy Elder Lawyer and friend of Gabriel from his pro-football days

UIL The University Interscholastic League exists to provide educational extracurricular academic, athletic, and music contests. The UIL was created by The University of Texas at Austin in 1910 and has grown into the largest inter-school organization of its kind in the world.

Melton Ivory Lawyer and possible new suitor for Katherine

Author Notes Thank you Google images for sharing a photo of a peck on the cheek. I made quite a few changes in this post yesterday and then lost the entire manuscript. I had to reset my computer back to Friday. I hope I caught all the changes. I also want to thank everybody for the helpful reviews. Again, thank you for catching those errors. This novel is far from over. I have approximately 27 more posts. Katherine and Gabriel still have some life issues to navigate. This is truly the calm before the storm. This novel is not actually about football, but is part of the background. High football is a national pastime in Texas. This post is a little under 800 words. Thank you for having patience.


Chapter 63
Football Chapter 34 part 2

By barbara.wilkey

Katherine and Gabriel have known each other for 42 days.

ENDING OF PREVIOUS POST:

After Jordan left, Bill and Paul walked in, as Bill asked, "What did Riley want?"

"I guess the entire school knows about the incident at the coffee shop this morning."

Bill teased, "Yep, and the parking lot kiss."

"I gave her a small kiss on the cheek."

Paul chuckled. "That's not what I heard."

Frowning, Gabriel growled, "That's exactly what it was. Did you two come in for a reason or just to aggravate me?"

Glancing toward the bus area, Bill reported, "I came to let you know the buses are here."

Pointing toward his office, Paul stated, "I wanted to remind you that I'd appreciate not having to deal with UIL representatives all week. I know this'll be your toughest game so far but try not to do anything too outlandish. Deal?"

Grinning, Gabriel stood. "I'll try, but won't make any promises." He started to walk out, but turned. "Will there be any issues with the peck I gave Kate?"

"Shouldn't be, but try not to make a habit of it."

"Good." He called through the locker room door, "Load up!"

TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 34 part 2


As Angie stood next to the SUV, Katherine made sure Jeremy was fastened in the seat-belt. "Angie, after last week's fiasco, let's check and make sure we have everything. Jack, spare tire..."

"Does your spare have air?" interrupted Angie.

"Yes, Gabriel checked it." She grabbed the phone charger from her purse. "I bought this and there should be one in the glove-box." She held up the map. "Gabriel gave me this."

Angie checked her phone. "Weather report says possible rain. Do we have rain gear?"

"Let me check." Katherine opened the back tailgate. "I see rain ponchos, blankets, and umbrellas. Are we missing anything?"

"Don't think so." Angie climbed in the SUV and giggled. "Boys?"

Jeremy laughed. "I'm here, Silly."

Angie reached to the backseat and tapped his knee. "I'm teasing, Sweetheart."

Pointing to her purse, Katherine said, "I have my purse. How about you?"

She held up hers. "Let's do this."

As they drove, Angie touched Katherine's arm and said softly, "What's going on with this Melton Ivory guy?"

"Nothing. How'd you hear about it?"

"Today's incident's all over school, to include the passionate kiss you received in the parking lot."

Katherine shook her head. "Not good. Gabriel pecked my cheek, nothing more." She hesitated. "This guy, for some reason, wants a date and isn't taking no for an answer. He's brought flowers to school and pushed the issue. Gabriel sent him on his way. This morning he wouldn't let me leave the coffee shop. I guess one of the employees called Gabriel and he came to my rescue."

"How romantic. Think he got the message?" Angie thought a moment. "Was he there yesterday during your planning time?" After Katherine nodded, she continued, "I saw him walk in. He had a bouquet of roses, right?"

"I hope he got the message. Gabriel's lost patience with him. I've turned him down and told him I'm in a committed relationship. I don't know what else to do."

"So you're finally admitting you're in love with Gabe?"

Katherine smiled. "I am."

*****
Once Angie and Katherine were seated in Jaguar stadium, Katherine texted Gabriel. "Don't forget to text Bill."

"I just did. Gabriel just received his."

Katherine glanced up and returned his wave. She continued to watch as he studied the other team's warm up. When he took off his cap, hit it against his thigh, she whispered, "Good luck."

Angie also saw his reaction. "Bill said it'd be a tough game. By Gabe's response, I'd say he's right."

"Gabriel said it'll be the toughest team they'll face until they get to the playoffs." Katherine reached inside her purse and retrieved some cash. "Joshua, take the boys to the concession stand and get dinner." She faced Angie. "Do you want the same as last week?"

"I can get my own." When Katherine pushed her hand, holding money away, Angie sighed. "Okay, cheeseburger, chips, and diet soda. I'll get halftime snacks."

Katherine watched Gabriel lead the team into the locker room. Just before he entered, he glanced in her direction and gave a 'thumbs up.' She commented to Angie, "Gabriel just signaled. I guess he thinks they have this."

"Let's hope so."

*****
As play continued through the first quarter, the score remained 0-to-0. Neither team had achieved a first down. Both defenses performed well. Halfway through the second quarter, Jordan caught a pass and ran it for the first down of the game. They were unable to get another one.

Going into halftime the score remained 0-to-0.

Angie glanced behind her and noticed a man glaring at Katherine. She stood. "I need to walk around. I'll get snacks. Who wants popcorn? How many peanuts?" She counted. "Okay, three popcorns and two peanuts."

While she counted the snack order, she got a better look at the man. That's definitely Melton Ivory. He has no reason to be here. I'd better tell Bill. He'll know what to do.

Joshua stood. "Mrs. Brooks, do you want help?"

"Thank you, but I can get it. Just help your mom with your brothers." Once out of sight, she texted Bill and whispered, "Listening to Harold does have pit falls. Let's hope ten percent battery life is enough."

As she waited in line, she received a text back, 'Don't let her go anywhere by herself or tell her. Not telling Gabe until later. Will contact Paul. He'll be there soon. Don't leave the stadium until you get okay from Paul.' She looked up at the sky. "Thank you."

Just as she returned with the snacks, a heavy rain began. Quickly ponchos were put on and umbrellas up.

At the end of the third quarter the score remained 0-to-0. Now only the game became muddy as the players slid across the field. It was difficult to read the jerseys' numbers.

Katherine wiped a wet strand of hair from her face. "I thought I saw Mr. Edwards come this way. Any idea why?"

Angie glanced behind her. "Nope. I didn't see him. Maybe he wanted to get a better view of the game. I wonder what Gabe's going to try. It's getting late. You know he'll try something."

"I'm sure he will." Katherine shook a little. "I just got a chill. Wonder what that's about."

"Probably wet from the rain. I hope you're not coming down with something."

As the fourth quarter began, she studied Gabriel and then sent him a text, 'I love you.'

As the two minute warning sounded, the score remained, 0-to-0. The Bears had the ball and had successfully got it to the thirty yard line. Gabriel called a time out.

Katherine chewed her bottom lip. "What's he going to try, certainly not field goal? Even with our great placekicker it's too risky for high school. We need to get closer, plus it's wet. The ball might slip from his hands." She watched as the placekicker went onto the field. "No. Maybe he's going to try to fake and then run it in. That's risky too."

Angie covered her face. "I can't watch."

As the play continued, Katherine's eyes darted from the clock to the field. She watched the placekicker grab the ball and kick. She stood, watched the ball fly through the goalposts, and the referee raise both arms indicating it was good.

The score, 3-to-0. Bears ahead.

Katherine smiled as Gabriel faced her direction and give a 'thumbs up'. "It's not over yet, there's still time on the clock."

The Bears' defense held the team after the kick-off. They weren't able to gain any yardage and the clock ran out. Final score, 3-to-0.

After Katherine released a deep breath, she said, "Boys, let's load up."

Angie glanced at Paul, who hand motioned them to hurry. She said, "Come on, guys, let's go. Maybe we can avoid the traffic." She grabbed wet items.

Katherine and the boys headed toward the SUV. Angie slightly waited back, as Paul hurried to her and said, "Security's holding him about thirty minutes. You should have a pretty good head start. Gabe still knows nothing."

"That famous temper of his will rear its ugly head. Since meeting Katherine he's kept it under control. Katherine knows nothing either."


~~~~~~
I want to thank those of you who have expressed concern and have asked about my broken wrist. I'm continuing with rehab. My wrist is getting better every day. Still now as fast as I would like. I can now fold socks and sort of turn door knobs, if I'm careful and very slow. I don't go back to the doctor until January 4th.
~~~~~~

CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons. She teaches high school math and also coaches girls cross country.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Sandy Frost Rodney Frost's wife

Sam Auto repair shop owner

Bill Brooks Assistant football coach, Gabriel's friend, and Angie's husband.

Harold Hudson Gabriel's dad and football announcer.

Sandy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Judy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Rhonda Morgan Teenage girl on cross country team, and victim of dating violence.

Mr. and Mrs. Morgan Rhonda's parents.

Kenny Clark Teenager - Rhonda's boyfriend

Grace Former friend of Gabriel and featured in porn magazine

Janette & Jackson Riley Katherine's in-laws

Dr. Martin Jordan's doctor

Troy Elder Lawyer and friend of Gabriel from his pro-football days

UIL The University Interscholastic League exists to provide educational extracurricular academic, athletic, and music contests. The UIL was created by The University of Texas at Austin in 1910 and has grown into the largest inter-school organization of its kind in the world.

Melton Ivory Lawyer and possible new suitor

Author Notes Thank you Google images for sharing a photo of field goal kick. I also want to thank everybody for the helpful reviews. Again, thank you for catching those errors. This novel is far from over. I have approximately 26 more posts. Katherine and Gabriel still have some life issues to navigate. This is truly the calm before the storm. This novel is not actually about football, but is part of the background. High football is a national pastime in Texas. This post is a little over 1200 words. Thank you for having patience.


Chapter 64
Football Chapter 34 part 3

By barbara.wilkey

Katherine and Gabriel have known each other for 42 days.

ENDING OF PREVIOUS POST:

The Bears' defense held the team after the kick-off. They weren't able to gain any yardage and the clock ran out. Final score, 3-to-0.

After Katherine released a deep breath, she said, "Boys, let's load up."

Angie glanced at Paul, who hand motioned them to hurry. She said, "Come on, guys, let's go. Maybe we can avoid the traffic." She grabbed wet items.

Katherine and the boys headed toward the SUV. Angie slightly waited back, as Paul hurried to her and said, "Security's holding him about thirty minutes. You should have a pretty good head start. Gabe still knows nothing."

"That famous temper of his will rear its ugly head. Since meeting Katherine he's kept it under control. Katherine knows nothing either."

TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 34 part 3

After the players' bus returned to the high school, Gabriel saw Paul standing outside his office. "What're you doing here?" He studied Paul's face. "Has something happened to Kate?"

Paul explained that Melton Ivory sat seven rows behind her during the game.

"Did she make it home safely?"

"As far as I know."

"You didn't check?" Gabriel took out his phone. "The battery's dead." He tossed it onto the desk, but it bounced into the hallway. "That thing's useless." He yelled, "Why wasn't I told?"

"You were busy winning a game. I was notified and handled it."

Both Gabriel's hands formed fists. "No win's more important than Kate and the boys. Who notified you? Why didn't Kate contact me?"

"Katherine doesn't know. Angie saw him and told Bill. Bill texted me."

Gabriel hit the wall on his way to the hallway. "Bill, get in here!"

When Bill stood in front of him, he asked, "Why didn't you tell me about Ivory? We just spent hours together and you couldn't find time to tell me? You sat behind me on the bus."

"We handled it. We decided you didn't need to know, yet."

Jordan picked up Gabriel's phone. "Coach, you might need this." He held it out. After Coach took it, Jordan glanced through the door. "How'd it get out there?"

"Jordan, let's get you home."

As they walked toward the pick-up, Jordan stared at Gabriel. "Coach, what's going on? Is Mom all right?"

"We think so." Gabriel glared over his shoulder at his buddies. "Let's check for ourselves. I'll deal with them later."

Silence continued until almost home. Gabriel apologized, "Sorry about what you witnessed in my office. I allowed my temper to show. I just found out that Ivory..."

"The man from the coffee shop?" interrupted Jordan.

"Yes. He sat a few rows behind your mom. Bill and Paul, Mr. Edwards, said they handled it. Nobody told me or checked to make sure she made it home safely. I tried to call but my phone's battery was dead." Gabriel glanced at Jordan. "I didn't throw the phone, but tossed it on my desk, a little harder than intended."

"I understand. You're worried about Mom."

"True, but it's no excuse. It's an area I need to work on."

*****
After parking in front of Katherine's house, Gabriel and Jordan ran up the front steps. At the door Gabriel called, "Katherine?"

She came from upstairs. "I just put the boys to bed. What's wrong?"

He put his arms around her and held tight. "You're all right."

"Of course I am. What's this about?"

Angie walked from the kitchen. "Gabe, I guess you heard."

"Why didn't you text me?"

Katherine released a deep breath. "What's going on and why am I the only person who doesn't know?"

Gabriel's eyes met Angie's. "That was my question. Why wasn't I told?"

Tapping a dining room chair, Angie continued, "Katherine, please sit." After Katherine sat, Angie continued, "Melton Ivory sat seven rows behind you during the game. I told Bill, Bill told Paul, Paul took care of it." She studied her hands. "I guess Gabriel just found out."

Katherine stood. "I need to get Jordan fed. He has early practice." She disappeared into the kitchen. Putting both hands on the counter, tears crept down her cheeks.

Moments later Angie came in. "Katherine, I didn't want to scare you. I made the decision not to tell you. Paul handled it. He contacted security and they made sure you were safe."

Bill walked in the kitchen. "Angie, it's late we need to get home."

Angie walked up to her husband. "How angry is Gabe?"

"What we both expected. He'll get over it." Bill walked over to Katherine and gave her a hug. "I'm glad you're safe. Sorry about the secrecy. We did what we thought was best at the time."

Katherine wiped a tear and motioned to the food. "I understand. Please help yourself to a shredded chicken sandwich and some fruit. There's plenty. Except for Jordan the boys have eaten and are in bed."

Gabriel and Jordan came into the kitchen. Gabriel scanned the area. "Katherine, I hope you don't mind, but Jordan put my phone on your charger." His eyes met hers. "I'm sorry about tonight."

"You have nothing to be sorry for. Please help yourself." As people helped themselves, Katherine said, "I think it's best if we forgive and forget this incident. We're close friends and everybody did what they thought was best. I'm not sure there was a best way to handle it."

Bill offered his hand to Gabriel. "I'm sorry, buddy. I did my best."

Accepting Bill's hand, Gabriel said, "I know. I never doubted that. I guess my anger's because..." his eyes met Katherine's, "I wasn't available when Kate needed me." He hugged her. "I'm sorry."

"I don't blame you. Our close friends took care of it."

Gabriel glanced at both Angie and Bill. "I guess I owe you an apology. Thank you for making sure Katherine was safe and probably keeping me from doing something stupid." He made himself a sandwich. "Let's eat."

*****
After Bill and Angie left, Katherine and Gabriel quickly cleaned the kitchen as he asked, "Any questions about tomorrow?"

"I don't think so. During yesterday's practice, I told the girls what to expect. When I went to Invitationals, we dressed out before getting on the bus, is that the way it's still done?"

Gabriel thought a moment. "I would. I'm not sure about the availability of locker rooms. I'm sure they're accessible, but with a total of six schools, it'll be a mess." He took her hand and led her to the living room. "It's getting late. I'd better go. Before I leave I want to check and make sure you're okay."

"I'm fine. Do you think Mr. Ivory will try something again?"

"I don't know what he's thinking. I honestly believed I'd handled it. I guess we need to be on guard, just in case." He leaned over and kissed her. "Good night. I'll try to catch you in the morning before you leave." He opened the door and paused. "I almost forgot. My phone."

Katherine headed toward her bedroom. "I'll get it." She handed it to him.

He kissed her again. "I get to do this one more time. See you in a few hours."

At his pick-up, he glanced at his phone, came back to the house, and knocked on the door. When Katherine opened it, he said, "I just saw your text." He paused. "I didn't respond because my phone went dead, but I love you, too." He stepped in, closed the door, and kissed her. "Sorry I didn't respond right away." He thought a moment. "Is there a particular reason you sent it?"

"For some reason, I got scared and needed the security of your arms around me. I knew that was impossible so I did the next best thing. I didn't know why."

He drew her close. "Sorry, I wasn't there. Even though you didn't know about Ivory, maybe your subconscious knew something was wrong. I'm glad you thought of me." He released a deep breath. "As much as I want to stay tonight," he hesitated, "not to..."

"I know," interrupted Katherine.

"I want to make sure you feel secure." He held her tightly and kissed her forehead.

She stepped back and kissed him. "We need to say good night."

"You're right." He kissed her again and then walked out the door.

~~~~~~
I want to thank those of you who have expressed concern and have asked about my broken wrist. I'm continuing with rehab. My wrist continues to heal, but not as fast as I would like. I don't go back to the doctor until January 4th.
~~~~~~

CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons. She teaches high school math and also coaches girls cross country.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Sandy Frost Rodney Frost's wife

Sam Auto repair shop owner

Bill Brooks Assistant football coach, Gabriel's friend, and Angie's husband.

Harold Hudson Gabriel's dad and football announcer.

Sandy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Judy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Rhonda Morgan Teenage girl on cross country team, and victim of dating violence.

Mr. and Mrs. Morgan Rhonda's parents.

Kenny Clark Teenager - Rhonda's boyfriend

Grace Former friend of Gabriel and featured in porn magazine

Janette & Jackson Riley Katherine's in-laws

Dr. Martin Jordan's doctor

Troy Elder Lawyer and friend of Gabriel from his pro-football days

UIL The University Interscholastic League exists to provide educational extracurricular academic, athletic, and music contests. The UIL was created by The University of Texas at Austin in 1910 and has grown into the largest inter-school organization of its kind in the world.

Melton Ivory Lawyer and possible new suitor

Author Notes Thank you Google images for sharing a photo of a phone being thrown. I also want to thank everybody for the helpful reviews. Again, thank you for catching those errors. I added a little intensity to Gabriel's actions as I posted. I am curious if they work. This novel is far from over. I have approximately 25 more posts. Katherine and Gabriel still have some life issues to navigate. This is truly the calm before the storm. This novel is not actually about football, but is part of the background. High football is a national pastime in Texas. This post is a little over 1200 words. Thank you for having patience.


Chapter 65
Football Chapter 35 part 1

By barbara.wilkey

Katherine and Gabriel have known each other for 43 days.

ENDING OF PREVIOUS POST:

He drew her close. "Sorry, I wasn't there. Even though you didn't know about Ivory, maybe your subconscious knew something was wrong. I'm glad you thought of me." He released a deep breath. "As much as I want to stay tonight," he hesitated, "not to..."

"I know," interrupted Katherine.

"I want to make sure you feel secure." He held her tightly and kissed her forehead.

She stepped back and kissed him. "We need to say good night."

"You're right." He kissed her again and then walked out the door.

TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 35

Early Saturday morning when Katherine and Jordan arrived at school, Gabriel jogged to meet the SUV.

Jordan headed toward the locker room. "Morning, Coach. I'm going on ahead." He turned. "Good luck, Mom."

Katherine nodded at her son and then smiled at Gabriel. "How much coffee have you already had?"

"Three cups, why?"

"Your energy. I'm struggling."

"How'd you sleep?"

She tilted her head. "How do you think?"

"Horrible." His eyes met hers. "I pushed my way into your life again." As her eyebrows rose, he continued, "I contacted my police buddy, Brad Owens and told him about Melton Ivory. Extra patrol cars will be hanging around your neighborhood. I also called Troy. This guy's probably infatuated with your beauty, but your in-laws could've planted him for some reason."

They started walking toward the locker rooms, as Katherine said, "Or none of the above. Maybe he's just crazy. I seem to attract crazy people."

Gabriel opened the door for her. "Stop by my office a second." After they entered, he shut the door and kissed her.

"Thank you, kind sir. I needed that."

He poured her a cup of coffee. "This might help." As she petted Reggie, he added, "The boys and I will be at the meet as soon as possible."

Katherine glanced at her watch. "I need to get to the locker room." She sipped her coffee. "And thank you for this."

"Want a cup to go?"

"Don't have time." She reached up and pecked his cheek. "Bye."

*****
As Sandy entered the hallway to the locker room, Gabriel called, "Miss Richards, would you do me a favor?" After she indicated she would, he handed her a cup of coffee. "Please give this to Coach Riley."

She accepted the cup and smiled. "Not a problem. You coming to our meet?"

"Wouldn't miss it. I'll be a little late but will be there. I need to get back to these knuckleheads."

When Sandy walked up, Katherine stood at the girls' locker room door. "Coach Hudson told me to give you this. I guess he thought you needed it."

"Thank you, Sandy. Since last night's game was a little over an hour away, it was a late night."

"My parents wouldn't let me go because it was so far."

"I understand. My younger boys are still in bed. Their grandma's staying with them." Katherine glanced at her watch. "Go ahead and get changed. We'll load the bus in twenty minutes." She sipped her coffee. This is so good. I wonder if he has a coffee maker in his office. Probably.

*****
Gabriel called Jordan over. "Did your mom eat breakfast?"

"Not sure, she fixed me something, but I didn't actually see her eat."

"Thank you." Gabriel went to his office and grabbed a bacon, egg, and cheese biscuit from a sack. She didn't eat. Taking care of everybody but herself. Go figure.

As Gabriel started to call Jordan over, Katherine rushed into the gym. "Coach, we're loading the bus. Just wanted to remind you to text and let me know you made it safely." She turned and jogged toward the bus.

Gabriel caught up with her. "Funny." He handed her the biscuit. "I have it on good authority you haven't eaten."

She held it out. "You just happen to have an extra breakfast lying around?" When Gabriel grinned, she added, "I'm serious about texting me. Tell Bill to text Angie too. We'll worry." She waved as she jogged to the bus.

"Eat."

"Will do." She climbed the steps of the bus.

*****
Later that morning, Gabriel, Bill, Jordan, and Reggie loaded into Katherine's SUV, as Paul walked up. "Going to the Cross Country meet?"

Gabriel nodded. "We are. I'm stopping by the house and getting the other three." He paused. "It'll be a tight fit, but you want to ride with us? There's no sense in everybody driving." He glanced at the SUV. "We can put Reggie in the back."

Paul offered his hand. "We still friends?"

Accepting it, Gabriel said, "Of course. A wise woman reminded me that we're all good friends and everybody did what they thought was best."

Slapping Gabriel's back, Paul continued, "Katherine's a good influence on you. You need to keep her around."

"I plan on it. Get in. We're wasting time."

*****
The race hadn't begun when Gabriel and the rest arrived, but the girls were lined up, waiting for the starting gun. As Gabriel texted, he said, "Bill, don't forget to let Angie know we made it."

When Katherine received the text she searched the stands until she saw Gabriel and waved.

Gabriel adjusted his cap as he studied the track. "It's still wet from last night's rain. The girls aren't used to running on a wet track. This may be a challenge."

Paul shielded his eyes from the sun. "Katherine's an experienced runner, I'm sure she prepared them."

Jeremy pulled on Coach's arm. "Can we go higher? I can't see."

Smiling down on the young child, Gabriel said, "I have a better idea." He lifted him up and set him on his shoulders. "Can you see now?"

"Really good. I'm higher than everybody, even you."

The starting gun sounded. After all the girls left, Katherine motioned for Angie to follow and they ran alongside the track.

Bill asked, "Are they going to get by with that at Invitationals?"

Gabriel scanned the area. "Not sure. I guess we'll find out." He patted his back pocket. "I have the rule book."

Paul chuckled. "Job security, right?"

Pointing, Bill said, "You're not joining the run?"

Gabriel patted Jeremy's leg. "Can't or I would. Today I have child duty."

The men and the boys had waited for about twenty minutes before Katherine and Angie came into view. Gabriel watched her walk out her run.

Bill teased, "Enjoying the view?"

Shaking his head, Gabriel put his finger to his lips and then pointed toward the boys.

Joshua grinned. "It's okay, Coach. We already know you and Mom have a thing going on."

"A thing, really?"

*****
Rhonda and another girl rounded the corner and matched each other's steps.

Katherine ran back to Rhonda and ran beside her. "You got this." She broke into song.

Rhonda kept up, but so did the other runner. Katherine sped up. "Come on, you can do it. Just a few more feet. We got this."

The other runner fell behind.

Katherine kept up the encouragement. "Come on, breathe. We'll do this together."

After Rhonda won the race, Katherine said, "Great job! Walk it out."

Glancing over her shoulder, she saw a runner elbow Judy in the stomach and move her leg enough to trip her.

As Judy fell, Katherine ran to her and helped her up. Behind her came Rhonda and slugged the girl.

*****
Gabriel lifted Jeremy off his shoulders and stared. "No, you're not getting involved. Yes, you are." He put his hand on the railing and jumped over it. He yelled over his shoulder. "Watch the boys."

Joshua yelled, "Great! A cat fight."

Paul said, "Doesn't Katherine realize how small she is."

Bill watched the situation. "Obviously not."

When Gabriel arrived on the scene, Katherine stood behind Rhonda and had her arms around her attempting to pull her from the other girl.

Gabriel stepped between the two girls, still swinging at each other, and stretched out his arms. "Stop!" He glared at each teenager, before he addressed them. "Miss Morgan, calm down. You're not going to do anything stupid, right?"

"Yes, Coach." Rhonda stood still but glared at the other girl.

"Coach Riley, release her." Gabriel studied the other girl. "Where's your coach?" As she pointed to the infield, he muttered under his breath, "Why isn't he here?"

Gabriel's eyes met Katherine's, and he shook his head. "You never cease to amaze me. Take care of Judy."

"Yes, Sir." Katherine went to Judy.

Gabriel massaged his temples. I snapped an order. He motioned for both girls to follow as he headed toward the other coach.

The walk to the infield was silent. Both girls jogged to keep up. When he was face-to-face with the coach, he offered his hand. "Hello, I'm Gabriel Hudson, athletic director of Silver Cove High School."

The coach didn't accept the hand. "I know who you are. We met last week." He studied his runner. "What's the problem?"

Gabriel pointed to the girl. "This young lady elbowed and tripped another runner." Then he pointed to Rhonda. "Miss Morgan came to the other girl's defense and a fight ensued. Coach Riley held her back."

"No one on my team would intentionally elbow or trip another runner. Your team started the trouble."

"Since it happened down the back stretch, I'm sure we can watch the video. Let's go." Gabriel eyed Rhonda. "Go to your team. Tell Coach Riley I'm handling this."

Rhonda nodded and left.

*****
As Katherine and the team loaded the bus, Gabriel walked to her. "Can I speak privately with you?"

Katherine stepped behind the bus and her eyes met his. "To lecture me?"

"No. I promised never to tease you about your size, but..." he hesitated, "both girls had almost half a foot on you and probably ten or fifteen pounds."

"Your point is?"

He chuckled. "I wish you wouldn't put yourself in danger. You could've taken a punch."

"It wouldn't have been the first time." She glanced at the bus. "My team's waiting."

"Katherine, I'm only concerned for your safety."

"I know you're intentions are admirable." She climbed the steps. "I'll see you at school."

Gabriel texted, 'I love you.'

On his way to where the boys and his buddies waited, he received a text, 'I love you, too.'

As they walked to the SUV, Gabriel held back and motioned for Paul to do the same. "Has Ms. Sarah ever mentioned anything about George abusing Kate?"

Paul's eyebrows rose. "No. Why?"

"No reason, Kate said something and made me wonder. It's probably nothing."

As they crawled in the SUV, Jordan waited. "Coach, can I say something?"

"Sure."

Jordan turned away from the others. When Gabriel did the same, Jordan said, "I accidentally overheard you and Mr. Edwards. I know of a time Dad hit Mom."

"It's none of my business, but if you want to tell me I'd appreciate it."

"He was angry when he discovered Mom got her college degree. He said no wife of his was going to work, especially do a common job like teaching. She stood up to him, and he punched her. She had a black eye for weeks. Dad left. We never saw him again."

Gabriel put his hand on Jordan's shoulder. "Did you see it?"

"All of us did. Jeremy was just a baby."

"Thank you. I know it had to be hard to see and hard to share."

Gabriel waited until Jordan got inside before he got behind the steering wheel.

As he did, Paul asked, "Is everything all right?"

"Not really. Kate was abused at least once and in front of the boys. If it happened once, it happened before."

Except for the boys talking, the ride home was silent.

As they drove into town, Gabriel asked, "Guys, I'm grilling outside tonight. What would you like?"

A unanimous 'cheeseburgers' rang out.

"I was thinking pork chops, but cheeseburgers it is. I'll do pork chops tomorrow."

Jeremy bounced up and down in his seat. "Can we have s'mores for dessert?"

"You're going to get me in trouble with your mom, but yes."


CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons. She teaches high school math and also coaches girls cross country.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Sandy Frost Rodney Frost's wife

Sam Auto repair shop owner

Bill Brooks Assistant football coach, Gabriel's friend, and Angie's husband.

Harold Hudson Gabriel's dad and football announcer.

Sandy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Judy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Rhonda Morgan Teenage girl on cross country team, and victim of dating violence.

Mr. and Mrs. Morgan Rhonda's parents.

Kenny Clark Teenager - Rhonda's boyfriend

Grace Former friend of Gabriel and featured in porn magazine

Janette & Jackson Riley Katherine's in-laws

Dr. Martin Jordan's doctor

Troy Elder Lawyer and friend of Gabriel from his pro-football days

UIL The University Interscholastic League exists to provide educational extracurricular academic, athletic, and music contests. The UIL was created by The University of Texas at Austin in 1910 and has grown into the largest inter-school organization of its kind in the world.

Melton Ivory Lawyer and possible new suitor

Author Notes Thank you Google images for sharing a photo of a bacon, egg, and cheese biscuit. I also want to thank everybody for the helpful reviews. Again, thank you for catching those errors. This novel is far from over. I had broken this post up into two parts. I've decided to post it as one long one. Please let me know how you like it. If it goes over well, I'll continue doing that. Katherine and Gabriel still have some life issues to navigate. This is truly the calm before the storm. This novel is not actually about football, but is part of the background. High football is a national pastime in Texas. This post is a little over 1900 words. Thank you for having patience.


Chapter 66
Football Chapter 36 part 1

By barbara.wilkey

Katherine and Gabriel have known each other for 44 days.

ENDING OF PREVIOUS POST:

"He was angry when he discovered Mom got her college degree. He said no wife of his was going to work, especially do a common job like teaching. She stood up to him, and he punched her. She had a black eye for weeks. Dad left. We never saw him again."

Gabriel put his hand on Jordan's shoulder. "Did you see it?"

"All of us did. Jeremy was just a baby."

"Thank you. I know it had to be hard to see and hard to share."

Gabriel waited until Jordan got inside before he got behind the steering wheel.

As he did, Paul asked, "Is everything all right?"

"Not really. Kate was abused at least once and in front of the boys. If it happened once, it happened before."

Except for the boys talking, the ride home was silent.

As they drove into town, Gabriel asked, "Guys, I'm grilling outside tonight. What would you like?"

A unanimous 'cheeseburgers' rang out.

"I was thinking pork chops, but cheeseburgers it is. I'll do pork chops tomorrow."

Jeremy bounced up and down in his seat. "Can we have s'mores for dessert?"

"You're going to get me in trouble with your mom, but yes."

TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 36

The bus hadn't arrived when Gabriel parked in the school parking lot. He let the boys out and checked his watch. "They should be here in about twenty minutes."

As Gabriel watched the boys, a car drove up and a man jumped out. "Coach Hudson, I'm Peter Clark, Judy's dad. Do you know what happened at the Cross Country meet? Coach Riley called and said Judy tripped. Is she hurt?"

Paul and Bill stood beside Gabriel as he answered, "We were there. Your daughter has a skinned knee from the fall. Coach Riley cleaned and bandaged it."

"Did another girl cause it?"

"The meet officials handled the situation. The girl and her team were disciplined."

Mr. Clark offered his hand. "Thank you, Sir."

Paul called Gabriel aside and almost whispered, "I forgot to ask. How many phone calls am I getting Monday morning?"

Gabriel chuckled. "Maybe one. The girl's coach is the same one who complained last week. So far nothing's happened to Rhonda." He turned as he heard the bus drive in and he pointed to the space around him. "Boys, over here." He cocked his head. "Jeremy, that includes you." He put out his hand. "Hold this."

When Katherine stepped from the bus, Jeremy ran to his mom and hugged her.

She returned it before she walked toward Judy's dad. "Mr. Clark, I'm glad you're here. Judy will be out after she changes."

Gabriel took Jeremy's hand and led him away.

"Coach Hudson said Judy has a skinned knee."

"Yes, Sir. I can't go into details, but the situation has been handled."

"Thank you for all you've done. I appreciate it."

"You're welcome." She faced the locker room. "If there's nothing else, I need to check on the girls."

As Mr. Clark watched her walk away, he said, "Coach Hudson, your boys?"

"No Sir, they're Coach Riley's. I'm just watching them."

"That's right. I remember Judy telling me you two were dating."

Paul said, "On that note, I'm going home. I'm sure Monday will be fun. See you then."

*****
Late that afternoon, Gabriel knocked on Katherine's door with bags of groceries in each hand. When Joshua answered, Gabriel asked, "Where's your mom?"

"In the den."

Standing at the den door, Gabriel said, "I'll be with you after I put these away. I'm grilling tonight."

Katherine glanced up and nodded.

On the way to the kitchen, he asked, "Guys, what does putting a puzzle together mean?"

Jordan shook his head. "We're not sure. We figure she's tired and wants to be left alone. We're staying away."

She's not eating ice cream so I'm not in huge trouble. Maybe just a little. She did text saying she loves me, that's good, right? Gabriel put away the groceries, went to the den, and pulled up a chair. "I'm sorry for the way I spoke to you at the meet."

"You addressed me as if I were one of your players and in front of my girls."

"I was wrong. Once I thought about it, I realized my mistake. My personal feelings got in the way and my only thoughts were for your safety. Then I realized you acted like a coach, which you should've. A good coach always protects their players. If you hadn't, I would've had to counsel you about that. Please accept my apology."

Katherine kissed him. "You're forgiven."

He picked up a puzzle piece. "I understand the gallon of ice cream. What does this mean?"

"It means I'm worn out and need to space out for a while."

"How can I help?"

"I've already picked-up the house, have laundry started, so really nothing."

"What about the boys' rooms?"

"I didn't feel like fighting that battle, but if you want to tackle it, I'd appreciate it."

"Continue with the puzzle. I've got the boys." Gabriel left the room. "Guys, get your rooms cleaned. I'm checking them in fifteen minutes."

Katherine smiled when she heard grumbling from the boys.

*****
While Gabriel cleaned up after dinner, Katherine and Jordan continued his dance lessons. She asked, "Have you checked Youtube for the latest dances?"

"I've been practicing. I think I have it."

"I'm sure you and Sammy will have a great time. I've ordered a wrist corsage. It'll have small peach roses on it. I think she'll like it."

"Thanks, Mom."

After a few more dances, Jordan asked, "Which shirt should I wear?"

"White's always classic, but your light blue shirt looks good with that suit. You could even wear the light gray shirt. You choose."

Jordan laughed. "You're not going to give me a straight answer, are you?"

"No. You can't go wrong with any of them."

Gabriel tapped Jordan's shoulder. "May I cut in?"

"Sure, Coach." Jordan stepped aside and asked, "What color shirt should I wear with a navy suit?"

He glanced at his jeans and T-shirt. "You're asking me? Have you noticed how I dress?"

Jordan grinned. "I bet you're one sharp dresser when you try." He continued upstairs.

Gabriel took Katherine's hand. "Let's dance."

After a few dances, he led her to the couch. "Dancing with you can be dangerous. Let's talk. I have a question." They both sat, before he asked, "Did you love George?"

Katherine's eyes widened. "That's a strange question. What brought it up?"

"I know you were married for sixteen years. I'm curious."

She studied her hands. "I'm guessing you don't want the stock answer, but the truth." Her eyes met his before she continued, "I was seventeen when we got married; too young to understand love. I guess I was star struck because a college man was interested in me. I never questioned why. I just knew he was not a jock."

"You've danced around my question but haven't answered it."

"I never loved him. By the time I realized that, it was too late to do anything."

"You could've divorced him."

Katherine closed her eyes. "Dad didn't believe in divorce. He was a 'you made your bed, now live with it' sort of man." She released a deep breath. "Besides I didn't have an education. I couldn't support my son."

"You only had Jordan at the time?" Gabriel took her hand. "You knew early in your marriage you weren't in love with him."

"That's true." She walked over and touched a photo of the boys on the hearth. "You're wondering since my marriage was a farce why I continued having children, aren't you?"

"It's none of my business."

"Since George traveled often, he made sure I didn't play around. His money controlled every aspect of my life. He paid off doctors so they wouldn't prescribe birth control. The few times he came home he demanded sex and I got pregnant."

Gabriel walked over and held each of her hands. "Are you saying he ...."

"He didn't exactly rape me," interrupted Katherine. "I was his wife. It was my duty. He made that clear."

He put his arms around her and drew her close. "No woman should be treated like that."

"If I could redo it, I would've gone to college." She reached up and kissed him. "And waited for you."

After another lingering kiss, Gabriel said, "At that time in my life I wasn't ready for someone like you. I had a lot of maturing to do."

Gabriel stepped back. "I just realized why you didn't accept the cross country scholarship. George was grooming you for a trophy wife; a trophy wife doesn't do sports. He talked you out of it, didn't he?"

She hung her head and nodded.

He kissed her. "Don't be ashamed. You were young. We both made mistakes."

After a long silence, Katherine said, "You know about George, but you've never shared anybody from your life."

"Because there wasn't just one person. In each city we traveled to, I had two or three girls. In Houston, I had five, maybe six. If one got tired of the life and left, there was always somebody willing to take her place. It was a party lifestyle."

Gabriel led her to the couch, before he continued, "The morning I told you about when I woke up and didn't recognize myself, well, I also realized I used women. I didn't like what I saw and vowed from that day I'd treat women with respect."

"So that's when you became a champion for women?"

"Yep, but as you know I'm still a work in progress."

"You're doing a wonderful job." She kissed him.

"Thank you for the confidence." A lingering kiss followed. "Can I switch the subject?" After she nodded, Gabriel asked, "Joel, is he always so quiet?"

"He's the quiet one in the family. I'm a little worried. I think he gets lost in the shuffle. Jordan's the oldest and a born leader, but in a quiet way. Joshua, he's outspoken and has no filters." Katherine laughed, "Jeremy's still finding his voice, but definitely has one. I've tried to reach out to Joel, but so far no luck. Did something happen?"

"No. Would you mind if I tried?"

"Go ahead." She leaned her head against his arm. "It's nice having somebody I can lean on. Thank you."

He kissed the top of her head. "It's getting late. I need to leave."

Katherine released a deep breath. "I wish you didn't have to."

"I doubt I need to remind you what's at stake if I stay."

His kiss lingered and a second one followed. Gabriel walked toward the door. "Good night. I love you. I'll see you tomorrow." He kissed her. "One of these days, hopefully soon, Reggie and I'll be a permanent fixture. Until then, good night."

Katherine watched him walk to his pick-up before she closed the door.


I WANT TO WISH ALL OF YOU AND YOUR FAMILY A VERY MERRY AND SAFE CHRISTMAS!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!

CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons. She teaches high school math and also coaches girls cross country.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Sandy Frost Rodney Frost's wife

Sam Auto repair shop owner

Bill Brooks Assistant football coach, Gabriel's friend, and Angie's husband.

Harold Hudson Gabriel's dad and football announcer.

Sandy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Judy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Rhonda Morgan Teenage girl on cross country team, and victim of dating violence.

Mr. and Mrs. Morgan Rhonda's parents.

Kenny Clark Teenager - Rhonda's boyfriend

Grace Former friend of Gabriel and featured in porn magazine

Janette & Jackson Riley Katherine's in-laws

Dr. Martin Jordan's doctor

Troy Elder Lawyer and friend of Gabriel from his pro-football days

UIL The University Interscholastic League exists to provide educational extracurricular academic, athletic, and music contests. The UIL was created by The University of Texas at Austin in 1910 and has grown into the largest inter-school organization of its kind in the world.

Melton Ivory Lawyer and possible new suitor

Author Notes Thank you Google images for sharing a photo of four brothers. I also want to thank everybody for the helpful reviews. Again, thank you for catching those errors. This novel is far from over. I'm trying to post entire chapters, instead of posting them in parts. It seems most reviewers didn't have a problem with longer posts. Katherine and Gabriel still have some life issues to navigate. This is truly the calm before the storm. This novel is not actually about football, but is part of the background. High football is a national pastime in Texas. This post is a little over 1600 words. Thank you for having patience.


Chapter 68
Football Chapter 40

By barbara.wilkey

Katherine and Gabriel have known each other for 46 days.

ENDING OF PREVIOUS POST:

"I know." She studied him for a few moments. "It's none of my business, but do you have any children?"

"None."

"Are you sure? Maybe that's how you met Mr. Elder. He's a custody lawyer." She shook her head. "Never mind. I have no right to ask."

Gabriel took her hand and kissed it. "Stop. You have every right." She waited as he continued, "Yes, I'm sure. Besides if anybody was going to press for child support they would've done it before I retired." He took a breath. "The women I spent time with weren't interested in settling down. We never discussed it, but I'm sure they took precautions."

"They were completely different from me."

"It was understood, I wouldn't spend more than a night with them." Gabriel turned her head so their eyes met. "I hope this isn't a surprise. My plan is to marry you." His kiss lingered and more followed.

Katherine stood. "You need to leave before..."

"I'm in love with you," interrupted Gabriel. He winked. "Good night. I'll see you in the morning."

TODAY'S POST:

On her way to the ultrasound appointment, Katherine stopped by the school office and dropped-off Gabriel's coffee and breakfast.

Gabriel came from Mr. Edward's office. "Thank you." He immediately took a sip of coffee. "That's good. I'll walk you to your room."

Katherine hesitated. "I have a doctor's appointment. I'll meet you at the courthouse. Please bring Jordan with you." She turned to leave.

"This appointment was previously scheduled, right?" After she nodded, he continued, "Why wasn't it mentioned while we jogged this morning?" Before she could answer, he said, "You've had a lot of appointments lately, what's wrong?"

She checked her watch. "Nothing. Women have a lot of areas that need to be checked. My appointment's at eight o'clock. I need to hurry."

*****
When Katherine arrived at the courthouse, she sat at a long rectangular table beside Mr. Elder. Moments later Gabriel and Jordan walked in with Paul and sat in the area behind them.

Gabriel came up to Katherine, leaned over, and whispered, "Everything okay with the doctor?"

Before Katherine could answer, her in-laws and their lawyer entered. Behind them came Mr. Frost and another man.

Katherine exhaled.

Gabriel squeezed her hand. "We got this."

As he sat beside Paul and Jordan, Katherine's mom entered with Joshua. Gabriel's parents followed.

Troy glanced around the room and then faced the Riley's lawyer, "Mr. Novak, are we ready to start?"

"I think so. Why don't you start by explaining why you called this meeting?"

Pointing at a well-dressed gently graying gentleman, Troy began, "First, I'd like to introduce Judge Ryan Washington. I asked him to be present to ensure everything remains civil and to bring clarity to this situation. This isn't a trial, we're checking to see if there should be one."

He opened a file. "Mr. Novak, your clients are the grandparents of four young children. My client, Katherine and her deceased husband, George are the parents of these children, correct?"

Mrs. Riley shouted, "George was our son."

Troy continued, "Yes, Mrs. Riley. It's my understanding you've filed for custody of these children for two reasons. First, their mother, Katherine is working and you feel she hasn't provided adequate childcare, and second, her relationship with Gabriel Hudson presents a negative influence on the young children. Am I correct?"

Mrs. Riley leaned forward. "He's a playboy."

Mr. Novak nodded. "You're correct. Our evidence is Mrs. Riley teaches at Silver Cove High School and now coaches the girls' cross country team. Her hours don't coincide with the school hours of the youngest three children."

Judge Washington faced Katherine. "Ma'am, what arrangements have been made for the boys' care?"

"My mother, Sarah Beck, comes to our house before I leave in the morning, fixes the boys breakfast, and takes them to school. She picks up the youngest two after school. Joshua attends football practice at the middle school, and I pick him up after my cross country practice. If, for some reason, I'm running late, my mother picks him up. After football practice, Jordan, the oldest is brought home by Coach Hudson. If he's busy, a family friend and another coach, Bill Brooks brings him home."

The judge nodded. "Sounds like you have it covered." He paused. "What happens if one of the boys is ill?"

"I'd stay home."

Rebecca said, "My husband and I'd also help with the boys."

"Who are you?" asked Judge Washington.

Harold pointed to his son. "Harold and Rebecca Hudson. Gabriel's parents."

Mr. Riley shouted, "That's where the boys spend the night while these two party."

"Oh?" replied the judge. "Mr. Hudson, would you please share how often and under what circumstances you've had the boys all night?"

Harold stood. "We've had the boys on two separate occasions. Jordan was injured playing football and spent the night in the hospital. We took the younger boys so Katherine could stay with him. Another time, they were at our farm fishing and the boys wanted to use the telescope to watch the stars. Since it would be a late night and Katherine and Jordan had early practices, we offered to keep the younger boys."

Judge Washington faced the Riley's. "I don't see any issues with the child care."

Troy said, "Thank you. The next issue is Gabriel Hudson's influence on the boys. Mr. Novak, would you explain the issue with Mr. Hudson?"

"I'd be happy too. Mr. Hudson is a former professional football player and lived a playboy life-style. This is well documented in tabloids with photographs. We feel he's not a wholesome role model."

The judge faced Troy. "How long have you known Mr. Hudson?"

Turning around, he faced Gabriel and asked, "What year did you go pro?"

"Drafted 2005 and injured 2015."

"Thank you. I've known Mr. Hudson for fifteen years." He turned again and asked, "You got bored with the playboy lifestyle around what, 2011 or 2012?" After Gabriel nodded, he continued, "After that he became a model citizen."

Judge Washington tapped a pencil. "So for eight or nine years he's lived a normal life?" After Troy nodded, he asked, "Mr. Edwards, how long have you known Mr. Hudson?"

"Since middle school. We played football together. He's been a coach/teacher at the high school since 2016. This is his fifth year as our athletic director and head football coach. I can testify to his high moral character. He's been a great influence on our teenage boys."

Mr. Novak stood and held up a picture and a magazine. "I'd like to show you this." He handed it to the judge. "The photo is this 'great influence' kissing a porn-star at the school during a cross country meet and the magazine was found in his garbage can. It proves this woman is a porn-star."

Judge Washington's eyes widened. "Care to explain?"

"I did not kiss that woman. She kissed me. I knew her from my pro-days. She lived with a buddy and they separated. She found her way here thinking she could stay with me. I told her to leave, but in an attempt to convince me she kissed me. As for the magazine, it's not mine. I took it away from a boy and threw it in the trash. I didn't know she was in it, until that boy told me."

"What is the boy's name? We'll need to verify your story."

"I won't give his name. I gave my word that as long as he stayed away from those types of magazines I wouldn't tell. I plan to keep my word."

Mr. Novak said, "Since he won't name this imaginary boy, that's proof of guilt. He hasn't changed his lifestyle."

Joshua stood. "Sir, I'm that boy." He glanced at Gabriel. "Coach, I'm sorry I caused you trouble." He stepped closer. "Sorry, Mom. The magazine was mine. During football practice a group of us were looking at girlie magazines. Our coach caught us. He knew Coach Hudson was a family friend and contacted him. Coach called me on it. I promised not to look at them again and he wouldn't tell Mom. I gave him the magazine and he threw it away."

He glanced back at Coach. "That girl kissed him. He sent her away. I saw it. I told him she was in that magazine. He didn't know." He went back to his seat. "Sorry."

The judge released a deep breath. "I'd say that's proof of Mr. Hudson's influence on the boys." His eyes met Mr. Novak's. "Unless you have something else. I don't see a case." He paused. "Did your P.I. turn up anything?"

"No. But we do have one more issue to present." He motioned toward the door.

Melton Ivory walked in carrying a folder and handed it to Mr. Novak.

Mr. Novak gave a copy of the papers to Troy and Judge Washington. "You both received a copy of Mr. Hudson's bank statement. As you can tell, his bank statement is good, but would be better with Katherine's money. He's used to a lavish lifestyle. Why would a man like him be interested in a widow with four children? Let common sense rule."

When Katherine turned around and glanced at Gabriel, he mouthed, "It's okay."

She exhaled, and Troy covered her hand with his as he whispered, "We figured this was coming. We got this."

Jordan stood. "Sir. They're lying. The Riley's don't care about us. They're planning on sending us to boarding school. They only want our trust funds."

Judge Washington asked, "Son, do you have proof?"

"We hadn't seen or heard from them since before Jeremy was born. He's over six years old. One Sunday they came and took us for the night. All they did was fuss at us not to touch anything. I saw brochures for different boarding schools. The only reason they wanted us that night was to prove Mom and Coach were shacking up. They're not. They haven't done anything wrong." Jordan plopped down.

Troy stood. "Thank you Jordan for clearing up some things." He picked up two folders and handed one to the judge and one to Mr. Novak. "This is Mr. Hudson's financial portfolio. After you study these documents you'll see that Mr. Hudson doesn't need Katherine's money." He faced Mr. Ivory. "I'd like to know your motive for stalking Katherine?"

Melton Ivory left the room.

The judge opened the folder. "Please give me a few moments to read this."

When Judge Washington closed the folder, he faced the Riley's. "I'm sorry but I don't see a valid case. You're welcome to continue this pursuit if you choose."

Troy stood. "We've added a counter suit. If this case continues and the Riley's lose, we expect them to pay all court costs, my fee, one million dollars pain and suffering to Katherine and her children, and five hundred thousand dollars to Mr. Hudson for defamation of character."

Mr. Novak jumped up. "You can't do that."

Grinning, Troy said, "Watch me. Decide if you want to continue. By the way, the P.I. you've had watching Katherine needs to cease immediately. If not, we're adding harassment charges."

Mrs. Riley stood. "So you're saying there's no way to get our son's money? He would want us to have it."

Judge Washington's eyes met hers. "I guess you should've been more careful with the money he gave you."

Pointing at Katherine, Mrs. Riley continued, "She's rental property. She doesn't have a maid, a cook, or nanny. She even works. She's not a proper lady. We know how to use his money."

Troy stood. "The way I see it, Katherine is ten times the lady you are." He paused. "Are you dropping this nonsense?"

Mr. Novak nodded. "Yes, we're dropping everything."

Gabriel jumped up and hugged Katherine. "It's about time."

"I agree." After family hugs, Katherine said, "Gabriel, I need to talk to Mr. Elder. Would you take Jordan back to school? I'll be along shortly."

Katherine watched Gabriel leave before she continued, "Mr. Elder, could I speak with you?"

Troy cocked his head. "Sure Katherine." He hesitated. "If you're asking if Gabriel has any children hiding somewhere, he doesn't."

She smiled. "We talked about that last night. I believed him." She avoided eye contact. "I'm having a breast biopsy Friday."

"Breast cancer?" After she nodded, he continued, "I'm sorry. Hopefully it's nothing. How's Gabe taking it? How can I help?"

"I'm waiting for the biopsy results before I tell him." She fingered her purse. "If anything happens, I want Gabriel to have full custody of the boys. Can you do that?"

"Sure. Are you sure?"

She nodded. "I'm positive. I want it written in such a way that guarantees my mom and his parents remain part of the boys' lives. I don't want any possibility that my in-laws have any rights to the boys."

"I understand. Do you want me to wait until you discuss it with Gabe?"

"No. Please start it. I want everything in place in case I have cancer."

"Understood."

When Katherine stood, he did and put his hand in the small of her back. "I'll walk you out."

*****
As Katherine stood outside and waited for the girls, Gabriel walked up. "Are you pleased with this afternoon's outcome?"

"I am. I'm just worried what's around the corner. It seems it's just one issue after another."

"I know." He answered his walkie-talkie. "I'll be there in a few minutes. I need to talk with the girls."

"What about?"

He grinned. "You'll see. It won't take long."

Katherine checked her watch and then stepped inside the locker room. "Four minutes or you're running laps."

After the girls stood outside, Katherine said, "Coach Hudson has something to say."

Gabriel adjusted his cap. "This won't take long. At Saturday's meet an incident happened that shouldn't have." He noticed Rhonda hang her head. "Miss Morgan, this has nothing to do with you. I'm the one at fault."

He faced Katherine and then the girls. "At the meet I talked down to Coach Riley. As if that's not bad enough, some of you overheard it. I think she said 'I spoke to her like she was one of my players.' I want to apologize to her, again, and to you because I didn't set a good example for teenage girls."

Taking Katherine's hand, he said, "Will you accept my apology?"

"Of course." She faced the girls. "I accepted it the first time, too."

"I have an important message. You may not think so now, but you will as you get older. Young ladies, never allow a guy to talk down to you or treat you less than the wonderful people you are. Coach Riley held me accountable, and I admire her for it. Any guy who's worthy of you, won't do it. If a guy makes a mistake, he'll own up to it. You need to stand up for yourselves. This includes not only talking down to you, but also hitting. A man should never lay a hand on you. Any questions?"

When the girls indicated they didn't, he turned to leave. "Thank you."

Katherine followed him out. "Gabriel?" When he turned, she said, "Thank you. That was really nice."

"I messed up and wanted to make sure not only you, but they understood it wasn't acceptable." His eyes met hers. "I own up to my mistakes."

"I know." She glanced back at girls. "I need to get busy. I'll see you at the house."

*****
When Gabriel and Jordan got to the house, Joshua pointed to the den. "Mom's in there with her puzzle again."

Gabriel knocked on the door jamb. "Everything all right?"

She got up. "Yes, I just need to set out dinner. I had time between my appointment and the meeting so I put it in the crockpot."

He took her hand. "I'll help."

After dinner and dishes were finished, they sat on the couch as Gabriel said, "I have a feeling there are some things on your mind. Want to talk about them?"

"Joshua and the magazine."

"Our agreement was if he ever did it again, I'd tell you. That seemed to scare him enough to correct his actions. We also discussed what example he was setting for his younger brothers, if they found it."

"Thank you. I'm sure I wouldn't have handled it so peacefully."

Gabriel chuckled. "He did mention murder. When I assured him you wouldn't, he switched to grounding for life."

"Murder would've crossed my mind." She hesitated. "Maybe grounding only until he turned eighty-five."

"Sounds more than fair." He released a deep breath. "What else?"

"Mr. Novak mentioned why 'would a man like you be interested in a widow with four children'."

He leaned over and kissed her. "Because I fell in love with you. As for the boys, they've burrowed into my heart."

"You sure?"

"Positive." Gabriel held her close. "I feel there's more?"

"Nothing I'm willing to discuss right now."

"But there is something?" After she nodded, he studied her and then said, "Okay, I'll table it until you're ready."

She kissed him. "Thank you. I appreciate it."
######
Something went wrong in posting again. I'm not sure what, but I have copy and pasted it again so you can review.


CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons. She teaches high school math and also coaches girls cross country.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Sandy Frost Rodney Frost's wife

Sam Auto repair shop owner

Bill Brooks Assistant football coach, Gabriel's friend, and Angie's husband.

Harold Hudson Gabriel's dad and football announcer.

Sandy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Judy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Rhonda Morgan Teenage girl on cross country team, and victim of dating violence.

Mr. and Mrs. Morgan Rhonda's parents.

Kenny Clark Teenager - Rhonda's boyfriend

Grace Former friend of Gabriel and featured in porn magazine

Janette & Jackson Riley Katherine's in-laws

Dr. Martin Jordan's doctor

Troy Elder Lawyer and friend of Gabriel from his pro-football days

UIL The University Interscholastic League exists to provide educational extracurricular academic, athletic, and music contests. The UIL was created by The University of Texas at Austin in 1910 and has grown into the largest inter-school org

Benjamin Weinberg Lawyer for George's mistress and baby

Gail Mitchel and her daughter, Jewel George's mistress and baby

Mr. Novak Riley's lawyer

Judge Ryan Washington Judge Troy asked to sit in the meeting.




Author Notes Thank you Google images for sharing a photo of a hug. I also want to thank everybody for the helpful reviews. Again, thank you for catching those errors. This novel is far from over. I'm trying to post entire chapters, instead of posting them in parts. It seems most reviewers didn't have a problem with longer posts. Katherine and Gabriel still have some life issues to navigate. This is truly the calm before the storm. This novel is not actually about football, but is part of the background. High football is a national pastime in Texas. This post is a little over 2600 words.


Chapter 70
Football Chapter 41

By barbara.wilkey

Katherine and Gabriel have known each other for 50 days.

ENDING OF PREVIOUS POST:

After dinner and dishes were finished, they sat on the couch as Gabriel said, "I have a feeling there are some things on your mind. Want to talk about them?"

"Joshua and the magazine."

"Our agreement was if he ever did it again, I'd tell you. That seemed to scare him enough to correct his actions. We also discussed what example he was setting for his younger brothers, if they found it."

"Thank you. I'm sure I wouldn't have handled it so peacefully."

Gabriel chuckled. "He did mention murder. When I assured him you wouldn't, he switched to grounding for life."

"Murder would've crossed my mind." She hesitated. "Maybe grounding only until he turned eighty-five."

"Sounds more than fair." He released a deep breath. "What else?"

"Mr. Novak mentioned why 'would a man like you be interested in a widow with four children'."

He leaned over and kissed her. "Because I fell in love with you. As for the boys, they've burrowed into my heart."

"You sure?"

"Positive." Gabriel held her close. "I feel there's more?"

"Nothing I'm willing to discuss right now."

"But there is something?" After she nodded, he studied her and then said, "Okay, I'll table it until you're ready."

She kissed him. "Thank you. I appreciate it."

TODAY'S POST:

After the staff and students filed into the gym for the pep rally, Gabriel stood up front. "Go Bears!" The students repeated it and it continued five times before he said, "I'm sure you already know our girls' cross country team won again last night. Tonight I'm confident the football team will be victorious over the Hawks." He grinned. "I plan on seeing all of you at the Homecoming Dance Saturday night."

A student yelled, "Coach, a rumor's going around that you're finally bringing a date. Is that true?"

Gabriel chuckled. "Nothing gets by you." He put his hand out toward the cheerleaders. "Let's start this pep rally." He put the mic up to his lips again. "That being said, I'm still patrolling the dance. So don't think you can get by with any shenanigans."

The student body booed.

Raising his arm, Gabriel chuckled and yelled, "Go Bears!" Again, it was repeated.

*****
Gabriel stopped by cross country practice as he did every practice. He sighed as he glanced at his walkie-talkie. "Got to go. The knuckleheads are restless. I hope they calm down before the game or it might be a long game."

Katherine admired the view as she watched Gabriel walk away.

*****
As Katherine and the boys sat in section C of the stands, Angie walked up. "How'd the biopsy go this morning?"

"They took four samples. I should hear something Monday. The waiting is murder."

"It is for me. I can only imagine what you're going through. Have you told Gabe?"

"No. I don't want him worrying for nothing. When I know something, I'll tell him. He knows something's going on, but I said I wasn't ready to talk. He accepted it."

Angie nodded. "Here he comes." When he got closer, she asked, "Gabe, you feel good about this game?"

He glanced at the opposing team. "I do. What were you two discussing? It looked important."

Katherine smiled. "It was. We were discussing what dresses we're wearing tomorrow night and how to accessorize."

"You're a horrible liar but for now I'll accept it." He faced the team and shook his head. "I need to get busy." He ran toward the boys, lectured them, and sent them around the track. "If you mess that up, you'll run it again! Get moving!"

Katherine released a deep breath. "I guess they haven't settled down. I wonder how many laps they're going to run."

Angie studied the boys. "Knowing Gabe they may run until kick-off."

Harold addressed it over the loud speaker system. "It looks like our boys are up to their usual Homecoming shenanigans. I wonder when they'll learn Coach Hudson doesn't play, especially when there's a game about to start. We only have eight new players. The rest of the team knows better. They should've remembered last year."

Gabriel faced where Katherine sat and shrugged his shoulders.

She returned with a 'thumbs-up'.

With the lap completed, Gabriel huddled the boys.

Katherine glanced at Angie. "I guess they figured it out."

"I hope you're right. I'd better get back to my section."

Within the first few minutes of the game, the Bears recovered a fumble and scored. The score 0-to-7.

By halftime, the score was 0-to-28.

When the boys returned from halftime, they weren't running in their usual formation. Gabriel threw his cap down and motioned for them to run another lap. Katherine could tell he was yelling at Bill.

Angie came over. "I doubt he's yelling at Bill, but about the situation. Bill doesn't look upset."

"I'm sure you're right." She noticed him on the walkie-talkie.

The following voice they heard was Harold's. "Our Bears have made numerous substitutions. Here's the list."

Katherine released a deep breath. "Discipline?"

Angie nodded. "I believe so."

Joshua said, "Does Coach want to lose the game?"

Katherine faced her son. "No. He wants a well-disciplined team. If they don't follow the rules, they don't play."

Joshua studied the running players. "Man, that's harsh."

"That's life," said Katherine.

The cross country girls sitting with them commented among themselves before Rhonda asked, "Coach, would you do that to us?"

"If you deserved it, I would."

"Even if it caused us to lose a meet?"

"Winning won't get you through life, but being well-disciplined will." Katherine hesitated. "I think that was the most important lesson I learned from running."

Half-way through the third quarter, the Hawks scored. Now it was 7-to-28.

Going into the fourth quarter the score was 14-28.

The starting line-up sat on the bench and hung their heads.

Bill went over and said something to them, and then spoke with Gabriel.

Gabriel walked over and talk to them. They all nodded.

Harold announced, "Bear fans, it seems there's been some repentance and these boys will be going back in the game. Let's hope they learned their lesson. Coach Hudson won't be so nice the next time."

Gabriel faced Katherine and gave a 'thumbs-up'. She returned it.

The ending score was 14-to-35.

*****
When Gabriel and Jordan walked in the door, the younger boys had just finished eating.

As they sat, Katherine set plates in front of each of them. "I hope you like Philly cheesesteak with fresh fruit and veggies."

Jordan took a bite. "It's one of my favorites."

Gabriel grinned. "Everything you've fixed has been good."

Joshua came into the room after putting his place setting in the kitchen. "Coach, what were you thinking when you benched the starting line-up? Didn't you want to win? I thought you were all about winning."

"Of course, I wanted to win. But more importantly I wanted those knuckleheads to learn they needed to listen. Discipline wins games, not running off like you have no sense. They were hyped up because it's Homecoming. When you're like that, you don't engage your brain and make mistakes. Mistakes lose games."

Katherine winked at Gabriel. "Ready for more?"

He rubbed his stomach. "I think so."

She faced Jordan. "How about you?"

"Maybe a half. Can you do half?"

"I can do whatever you want. I'll be right back." When Katherine returned, she passed out the sandwiches and sat.

"Thanks, Mom." Jordan faced Joshua. "Coach was right. That team was incredibly easy. We should've beaten them 100-to-nothing. I have a feeling when we watch the game film we'll see a lot of missed plays."

Gabriel took a bite and chewed before he added, "Jordan's right. We have seven weeks before district. Now's not the time to start playing sloppy. We're undefeated."

Joshua took a drink. "You're already planning for district?"

With raised eyebrows, Gabriel said, "I've been planning for it since the end of last season. Why?"

"I never looked at it that way."

Katherine touched her son's hand. "It's time for you to go upstairs."

Nodding, Joshua kissed his mom's cheek. "Good night." He fist bumped Coach. "Good night."

Her eyes met Gabriel's. "Sorry about the questions."

"Not a problem. He thinks and questions. That's good. I don't mind." When her head tilted, he grinned. "Really I don't. Growing up I was probably a cross between him and Jeremy. I understand." He stood. "Let's get these dishes done." He glanced at his watch. "Since this was a home game, it's not late, yet. You don't have an early morning race, so you get to sleep late."

"Sure, Jeremy gets up at first light. He's better than a rooster."

"Jeremy and I have so much in common it's scary."

After dishes were finished, Gabriel backed Katherine against the refrigerator and placed his hands against it, pinning her. "You can't get away. Angie knows your secret, right?" Katherine answered yes, so he continued, "Does Bill know?"

"I don't think so, because he'd tell."

"Figures. What were you talking about before the game?"

"I told you. What we're wearing tomorrow night."

"Okay, I'll bite. What are you wearing?"

"We decided our 'little black dresses' weren't appropriate for a High School Homecoming Dance. Then you interrupted us."

Gabriel grinned. "You own a little black dress?"

"Would you like to see it?"

"I can't wait." He hesitated. "But I still don't believe you."

"I'll tell you Monday after I get more information."

Joshua walked into the kitchen. "Coach, why do you have Mom pinned against the refrigerator?"

"Because she has information I want."

Shaking his head, Joshua chuckled. "Good luck with that. If she doesn't want to talk, she won't. Haven't you learned that yet?"

"Obviously not, but I'm beginning to figure it out." He picked her up , carried her to the couch, and set her down. "Maybe I'll try a different tactic." He watched Joshua return upstairs.

Once Gabriel was sure Joshua had returned to his room, he kissed her. "Maybe I'll kiss you until you talk."

"Since, I won't talk; all that'll get you is a cold shower."

"And probably seventy-five push-ups."

She giggled.

After kissing her a few more times, he asked, "It's not working, is it?"

"Depends what your goal is. If your goal is to get me to talk, it's not."

"What if my goal is to show you how much I love you?"

"Then it worked perfectly."

He kissed her one more time and then stood. "I need to leave." He exhaled. "Good night. See you in the morning. Come on, Reggie." He petted Daisy's head. "Good night, Girl."

"Good night." Katherine leaned against the closed door. "I'm so in love with that impossible jock."



CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons. She teaches high school math and also coaches girls cross country.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Sandy Frost Rodney Frost's wife

Sam Auto repair shop owner

Bill Brooks Assistant football coach, Gabriel's friend, and Angie's husband.

Harold Hudson Gabriel's dad and football announcer.

Sandy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Judy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Rhonda Morgan Teenage girl on cross country team, and victim of dating violence.

Mr. and Mrs. Morgan Rhonda's parents.

Kenny Clark Teenager - Rhonda's boyfriend

Grace Former friend of Gabriel and featured in porn magazine

Janette & Jackson Riley Katherine's in-laws

Dr. Martin Jordan's doctor

Troy Elder Lawyer and friend of Gabriel from his pro-football days

UIL The University Interscholastic League exists to provide educational extracurricular academic, athletic, and music contests. The UIL was created by The University of Texas at Austin in 1910 and has grown into the largest inter-school org

Benjamin Weinberg Lawyer for George's mistress and baby

Gail Mitchel and her daughter, Jewel George's mistress and baby

Mr. Novak Riley's lawyer

Judge Ryan Washington Judge Troy asked to sit in the meeting.




Author Notes Thank you Google images for sharing a photo of a homecoming banner. I also want to thank everybody for the helpful reviews. Again, thank you for catching those errors. There are 11 posts left after this one. I'm trying to post entire chapters, instead of posting them in parts. Katherine and Gabriel still have some life issues to navigate. This is truly the calm before the storm. This novel is not actually about football, but is part of the background. High football is a national pastime in Texas. This post is a little over 1500 words.


Chapter 71
Football Chapter 42

By barbara.wilkey

Katherine and Gabriel have known each other for 51 days.

ENDING OF PREVIOUS POST:

After kissing her a few more times, he asked, "It's not working, is it?"

"Depends what your goal is. If your goal is to get me to talk, it's not."

"What if my goal is to show you how much I love you?"

"Then it worked perfectly."

He kissed her one more time and then stood. "I need to leave." He exhaled. "Good night. See you in the morning. Come on, Reggie." He petted Daisy's head. "Good night, Girl."

"Good night." Katherine leaned against the closed door. "I'm so in love with that impossible jock."

TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 40

Saturday morning Gabriel knocked on Katherine's door, with Reggie at his side.

When Joshua answered, he petted the large dog and adjusted his bib. "Jordan said Reggie's going to Homecoming, is that true?"

"Sure is. This will be his fifth one."

"Since Daisy's his girlfriend, do you think she can go?"

"I doubt your mom will allow it."

"Probably not. If you're looking for her, she's freaking out as she's sorting laundry. She forgot to get us a sitter for tonight."

When Gabriel went to the laundry room, he put his arms around her. "I hear you have a problem."

"I can't go. With everything going on, I forgot to get a sitter. Angie and Mom are both going."

"Don't worry. I got this. Dad will be the disc jockey. Mom hates attending these things, she'll be happy for an excuse." Once Rebecca answered, he explained the situation. "Mom, I'll bring dinner. Don't spend time cooking."

He faced Katherine. "How about Chinese?" Katherine began to give him each child's order. "Never mind. I'll never remember that. Mom, any other ideas?" He hesitated. "The boys' like Italian, right? I can order large family-size lasagna."

When Katherine hesitated, he released a deep breath. "Let me guess either - Jeremy or Joshua don't like lasagna." She mouthed Jeremy. Frustrated he said, "Never mind. Everybody's getting cheeseburgers and fries." He put his phone away. "Mom wants a chicken sandwich. Who knew ordering food was so difficult?"

Katherine ran her hand along his muscular forearm. "I'm sorry. Are you positive you want to sign up for this?"

He put his arms around her and drew her close. "I'm sure. If ordering food is our worst problem, we got this." After a few kisses, he glanced up at the ceiling. "Need help with the boys' rooms?" After she nodded, he said, "I'm on it."

Moments later, Gabriel and the boys came downstairs. Katherine faced them as she paused from cleaning the bathroom. "A problem?"

"We're taking a fieldtrip. They don't believe my apartment's clean. I've told them I clean it every day. They don't believe me."

She glared at her second son. "Joshua?"

"Mom, come on. When does he have time? There's no way he can do it."

"I get up, do upper body on Mondays, Wednesdays, and Fridays, clean house, and then meet your mom for a run. On Tuesdays and Thursdays I work on lower body, clean house, and then run with your mom. Saturdays and Sundays I take a break, eat breakfast, read the newspaper, clean house, and come here." He flexed his muscles. "See my strategy works."

Jordan's eyes widened. "And you work out with us during practice." He glanced at his mom. "You work out before your run too, don't you?"

She nodded. "I do, and then work out and run with the girls."

Gabriel headed toward the door. "Come on; let's get this over so you can get started on your rooms."

*****
When Gabriel and the boys returned, Katherine asked, "What's the verdict?"

Joshua hung his head. "I lost. His place is spotless. Did you know he has a gym set up in the spare bedroom?"

Katherine accepted a sack from Gabriel. "How would I? I've never been to his house." She glanced at the sack. "Lunch?"

Gabriel chuckled. "I thought we'd feed them and then make them work." He winked at her. "I think we need to correct the fact that you've never been to my place."

Once the boys finished eating they were sent upstairs to clean.

As Katherine and Gabriel picked up from lunch, he said, "When the boys are done, I thought they could pack for the night, I'll pick-up dinner, and take them out to Mom's. That way you have some free time. Sound good, or am I missing something?"

"It sounds wonderful. I'll have time to soak in a hot bubble bath." Katherine hesitated. "Will it give you enough time to get ready?"

"Yeah. All I need to do is give Reggie a bath."

She tilted her head. "Are you serious?"

"Of course, Reggie can't go to the dance smelling like a dog."

At the sound of the dryer's beep, Katherine turned. "Laundry calls."

Moments later she yelled, "No! This can't happen."

Gabriel came in. "What's wrong?"

Pushing the start button, she said, "This thing won't start. I do anywhere from fifteen to twenty loads a week. I have to have a dryer. Do you know a repairman?"

Jordan walked in the room. "Mom, what's wrong?"

Gabriel handed him his keys. "The dryer. Can you get my tools from the pick-up?"

After he nodded, Jordan left.

"Think you can fix it?"

"Probably. Dad used to fix everything around the house. I always watched and helped."

"Thank you." A timer went off. "Oh, I need to leave. I have to pick-up Jordan's corsage."

*****
When Katherine returned, Gabriel had the dryer running. She kissed his cheek. "Thank you. I don't know what I'd do without you."

Pulling her into a hug, he said, "I don't plan on you ever finding out." He glanced toward the stairs. "I'd better check and see if the boys have made progress."

Jeremy ran downstairs. "Mom, what do I pack for Grandma's?"

Gabriel turned toward the stairs. "Boy, duty." He faced Katherine. "Can I give Jordan Jeremy duty? I want to spend time helping Joel."

"Sounds like a plan."

*****
Gabriel and Reggie stood at Joel's bedroom door. When he glanced up, Gabriel said, "Is it okay if I come in? I thought you might like help."

Joel petted Reggie. "Sure. How long have you had him and why did you name him Reggie?"

"I got Reggie as a puppy. I've had him for six years. I named him after a famous..."

"Reggie White," interrupted Joel. "He was the number one all-time defensive lineman, 'Minister of Defense'."

"You're right. I didn't know you were interested in football."

"I am, but I'm not very good. I don't have Jordan's speed or Joshua's size and strength. I'm nobody."

"That's not true. You're somebody. You're younger than your brothers and haven't developed. I promise your body's going to start in a year or two. How old are you?"

"Just turned eleven." He mentally counted, "Three months ago."

"You'll start noticing body changes any day throughout the next year. For boys they start between eleven and twelve. You're probably going to get more awkward."

He covered his head with his arms. "My brothers pick on me already."

"I can help." Gabriel touched his shoulder. "But only if you want." After Joel nodded, he continued, "I'll give you a few exercises that help with balance."

Gabriel demonstrated three exercises and Joel did them with him. "Work on those for a few weeks. When you're ready, let me know and I'll give you some more." He got up to leave.

"Coach?" When Gabriel turned around, Joel put up his fist to bump.

After fist-bumping, Gabriel said, "If you need anything, I'm here. I understand sometimes it's easier to talk man-to-man than it is to your mom."

"Is that how you got roped into the girlie magazine incident with Joshua?"

Gabriel's eyes widened. "How'd you hear about that?"

"I overheard Jordan chewing out Joshua for being stupid."

"Understood." Glancing around the room, Gabriel said, "Let's get you packed. What you taking?"

After the packing was finished, Joel and Gabriel came downstairs. The rest of the boys were waiting.

Gabriel winked at Katherine before he said, "Any idea how many cheeseburger baskets I need?"

She glanced at Jordan. "One or two cheeseburgers?"

"Two."

"Five cheeseburger baskets and two extra cheeseburgers. The second one's for Joshua. Don't forget your mom's chicken sandwich."

He chuckled. "There's always one odd person." He pointed for the boys to head out. "I'll have one of them run in with yours and Jordan's. Hopefully we haven't forgotten anything. Rest and relax. I'll return around six-fifteen." He kissed her and then left.

As Joel ran dinner into the house, Katherine directed Reggie to the pick-up. "He said something about if he stays, he won't have to take a bath."

Gabriel stood outside the pick-up. "He hates them. Come on you lazy lug."

*****
Gabriel adjusted his suit jacket and tie before he knocked and entered Katherine's house with Reggie by his side with a bowtie around his neck.

Katherine smiled when she saw him. "Hello. You two are very handsome."

Staring at Katherine, Gabriel exhaled. "You were beautiful, but now you're...I don't know what's greater than beautiful. I'm at a loss for words. Wow!"

"Thank you."

Gabriel handed her a bouquet of flowers and a fresh flower hairclip. "I took a chance with the hair clip, but I see it'll work perfectly." Before Katherine could speak, he said, "I wanted to get flowers, but somehow a corsage didn't seem right."

Accepting them, Katherine said, "They're perfect. Thank you."

He lifted a necklace from her hand. "Need help with this?"

"I was waiting for Jordan."

"I'll do it." He went behind her as she lifted her hair. After the necklace was secured, he kissed her neck.

Katherine released a slow breath, closed her eyes, and held her stomach.

He stood in front of her. "A problem?"

She swallowed. "Please don't do that again."

"A new experience?" After she nodded, he continued, "Can I do it after we're married?"

Smiling Katherine said, "Definitely."

As she reached up to kiss him, Jordan called, "Mom, can you help with this tie. It's impossible."

She glanced at the flowers, as Gabriel said, "I got this. Take care of the flowers." He went upstairs.

As Katherine finished putting the flowers in a vase, and adding the hairclip, Gabriel came down the stairs. "Jordan will be right down."

With Jordan downstairs, Gabriel glanced at the door. "Ready?" He hesitated. "Can we take the SUV? I don't think Sammy wants to sit by Reggie."

Nodding, Katherine stopped. "Just a minute. I almost forgot." She hurried to the kitchen and returned with the corsage and a boutonniere. She handed the wrist corsage to Jordan. "I got petite roses because I didn't want it to be bulky." Facing Gabriel, she held up the boutonniere. "For you."

Gabriel accepted it. "Thank you. I don't have a clue what to do with it."

"I don't believe that." Katherine took it from him and removed the pin. "It goes here. I thought a navy rose bud would match the team colors. I was worried about it being too large and girlie, hence the rose bud." She took his hand and led him to her bedroom mirror. "Is it okay? If you don't like it, it's not required." She watched him in a mirror and sighed.

"You're handsome."

Turning, Gabriel kissed her. "Thank you." He grinned as he glanced at the bed and shook his head.

Katherine spied the bed and rushed out.

Gabriel took her hand. "You're cute when you blush." He glanced at Jordan. "Ready to pick up your date?"

"I guess. I'm getting nervous. What do I do with the corsage? Will I have to wear a flower? Will you two be watching? Or worse yet, will you be necking in the car?"

Chuckling, Gabriel said, "I promise not to neck in the car. We might embarrass Reggie. You know Daisy turned him down, don't you?"

After a pause, Gabriel continued, "Jordan, I'll be serious. Those are real concerns. I'm guessing you put the corsage over her hand. Chances are you'll get a boutonniere. Her mom might help you with it, if not, your mom will. By the way, I'd never disrespect your mom by necking in a car."

Holding hands, Gabriel and Katherine went to the car. As Gabriel held the car door for her, she whispered, "I love you."

He pecked her cheek. "And I love you."

*****
Katherine watched Jordan walk up to Sammy's door. "I can't believe my baby's growing up. It seems just yesterday he was born."

Caressing her hand, Gabriel said, "Are you okay?"

She smiled. "I'd kiss you, but we promised Jordan we wouldn't."

He kissed her. "We promised not to neck. Didn't say a word about a kiss." He hesitated. "You seem a little nervous. Why?"

"Promise not to laugh." He nodded, and she said, "I've never been to Homecoming." When his eyes widened, she continued, "It's basically a jock dance. I refused to date jocks."

"I'm honored to be the jock you allowed to escort you to Homecoming." He caressed her hand. "I'll be by your side most of the night. I'll probably have to make some sort of speech and break up a few guys rivaling over the same girl. Unless something unforeseen happens, I'm all yours."

"Thank you. I appreciate it."

*****
As Gabriel parked, Katherine said, "Jordan, you and Sammy go inside and get settled. We'll be along soon."

After the young couple got out, Gabriel asked, "What's that about?"

"I thought if we walked in with them, it'd be like we're supervising. Jordan deserves a date without his mom."

"Good idea. I hadn't thought of that." Gabriel hesitated. "How long do we wait?"

"I don't know."

After waiting a few minutes, Katherine exhaled. "I guess it's time."

Gabriel got out, walked around, and offered his hand to help Katherine out. He grinned. "You've never looked more gorgeous. I'm going to have to fight off the men."

Katherine leaned up and pecked his cheek. "You won't, because my heart belongs only to you."

Putting his hand in the small of her back, he escorted Katherine into the gym.

Once inside Bill and Angie walked to them. While Angie and Katherine hugged, Bill pulled Gabriel aside. "She's drop-dead gorgeous. When will you put a ring on her finger?"

"When I'm sure she'll say yes."

Bill slapped his buddy's back. "She will."

"I'm not so sure."

Mr. Edwards stood on stage. "Coach Hudson, please come up and say a few words."

Nodding toward Katherine, he turned and left. As he held the microphone, he welcomed everyone, reminded them of the rules, and to have fun, before he announced the first dance. "Ladies and gentlemen, my linemen started a new tradition. Our first dance will be 'The Stroll'. Mrs. Riley, will you help me start this party off?"

As their eyes met, she nodded and met him below the stage. He took her hand, and they waited for the linemen to line up with their dates and then the rest of the students. Soon the music started and they strolled down the line. It continued until all couples had strolled.

The dance finished, and Harold spoke, "Our next dance's a special request from a guy for his special lady. I've been asked to keep it anonymous. For this dance we'll turn the lights down low. Behave! Or it won't happen again."

The music started, and Gabriel held Katherine close. She stared into his eyes. "Do you happen to be the special guy?"

He grinned. "And you're his special lady." He released a deep breath. "I so want to kiss you."

"I feel the same. Look around and remember the example it'd set."

Gabriel chuckled. "True." As the song ended, the lights came on, but still dim. "Better walk around and make sure there's a space between them." He pointed to the left. "You go that way and I'll go right. We'll meet in the center."

After they met up, Katherine said, "Gabriel, would you dance with me?"

Gabriel took her offered hand. They went to the dance floor.

Before they could continue, the girls' cross country team interrupted and Rhonda asked, "Coach Riley, you're here with Coach. So you are dating?"

Katherine glanced at Gabriel. "I guess it's official. We're dating."

The girls clapped before they dispersed.

Gabriel took Katherine's hand. "Let's try this again."

As they danced, Mr. and Mrs. Edwards walked up. Gabriel kissed Mrs. Edwards cheek. "Hello, Peggy. I haven't seen you for a while. How have you been?"

"I've been fine. I've heard so much about the second part of the couple who's making sure my husband has job security. I had to meet her."

Gabriel introduced Katherine.

As the ladies talked, Paul asked, "Isn't it about time you made a commitment to that lady."

"I'm not sure Katherine's ready."

Paul's eyed widened. "I think she is. I've seen the way she looks at you."

After Peggy and Katherine joined the men, Paul faced Katherine. "Would you dance with me? Maybe I can convince you to keep this rascal under control."

"I have no control over him. My favorite line is, 'you're incorrigible.' He just laughs when I say it."

"I understand your problem," teased Paul.

Gabriel danced with Peggy.

*****
As the night continued, Gabriel and Katherine danced between intermittent student checks.

While getting drinks, Jordan asked, "Coach, can I ask a question?"
"Of course. What's the problem?"

"Can we go someplace more private?" Jordan led him outside. "This is embarrassing." After studying his feet for a few moments, he said, "How do I say goodnight? Do I kiss her? Shake her hand? Hug her? If I hug her, is there an appropriate time limit for the hug?"

Gabriel nodded and after a few moments, he asked, "I guess my thought is how well do you like her?" He held up his hand. "Don't answer. Just think about it. If you like her a lot, then I'd say it'd be appropriate to peck her cheek. That'd give her an option to turn into the kiss. If you're unsure how you feel, then only a hug. If you're pretty sure it's not going anywhere, just thank her and say good night."

"Did you follow that with Mom?"

"Not really. As you know, this is our first date. I was never sure where I stood with her. She can be hard to figure out."

Jordan laughed. "Tell me about it." He glanced at the door. "I'd better get back. Thank you."

"No problem."

As they walked inside, Gabriel heard, "Coach Hudson! Over here!"

When he arrived, he saw Bill and Paul holding one boy and Katherine and Angie attempting to hold another.

He stood between them. "Knuckleheads, are you going to talk or fight?"

"He started it."

"I'm not moving in on your girl."

"Enough!" yelled Gabriel. When they were silent, he continued, "So this is over a girl. When you're ready to act respectable, we'll go outside and discuss it."

The boys took some deep breaths. After a few moments, he asked, "Ready to talk?" Both boys nodded, so he said, "You can release them. Let's go."

As Gabriel passed Katherine, she whispered, "I had help this time."

Chuckling, Gabriel said, "I noticed."

The two boys followed Gabriel outside.

The four talked while they waited for Gabriel's return.

"Did you get the boys calmed down?" asked Paul.

"Yes. It was the usual teenage jealousy." Gabriel cocked his head. "You four are intelligent. Why were two strong men holding one boy and two women holding the other? Why wasn't it divided up, one man and one woman?"

Paul scratched his head. "I don't know. We reacted and didn't take time to process."

Gabriel took Katherine's hand. "Let's dance."

She accepted his hand as he led her to the dance floor.

At the end of their second dance, Gabriel glanced at his watch. "There's about forty-five minutes left." He squeezed Katherine's hand. "I hope you've had fun."

She leaned her head against his arm. "I did. Thank you for inviting me."

Bill came up behind them and teased, "Kids, keep the appropriate distance."

Gabriel leaned down for a kiss.

Katherine raised her hand. "Not here. At home you can do that all night if you want."

His eyebrows rose. "Really?"

Bill laughed. "Severe case of 'foot-in-mouth'."

With crimson cheeks, Katherine said, "We need to do a student check." She left.

After Katherine walked the room, Gabriel caught up with her. Before he had a chance to speak, she said, "Don't you dare say anything."

He grinned. "I was going to ask you to dance."

"Okay." She took his hand. After a few moments she said, "I didn't mean..."

"Hush," interrupted Gabriel. "I knew what you meant, but your blush was adorable."

After more dances, Paul tapped Gabriel's shoulder. "It's time to do your thing."

He nodded, but said to Katherine, "Be right back. Don't move."

After walking onto the stage, Gabriel took the microphone. "Before our final dance, I want to thank you for coming and I hope you had a good time. Football team and their dates please stay and help turn this room back into a gymnasium. All coaches and chaperones please remain and assist."

He started to motion for the lights to dim, but paused. "Ms. Sarah, do not feed Reggie the leftovers no matter how much he begs. It upsets his stomach." He waited for the laughter to stop and then announced the last dance.

Gabriel held Katherine close as they danced. Once the music stopped, the lights came on and he announced, "Good night to those leaving and the rest get busy. Let's get this done and go home."

*****
After the gym was cleaned, Gabriel with Marc by his side asked Sarah, "Have you seen Judy or maybe Katherine?"

She nodded and pointed toward two people sitting on the floor off to the side.

"Ms. Sarah, do you mind if Marc helps you?"

"Sure Coach, I could use help carrying things to the car."

Gabriel waited until Marc was out of hearing range then he knelt by the ladies. "Miss Carter, what seems to be the problem?"

"Marc hates me." She paused and then restarted, "Marc was talking with some guys and Darrin asked me to dance. I accepted. Darrin lives across the street and we've been friends like forever. We grew up together. We were never apart. I can't remember any time in my life when Darrin wasn't there. He's like a brother. I thought Marc understood, but I guess he didn't." She wiped a tear. "Marc came up called me a name and slugged Darrin."

"And the fight started." Gabriel offered her a napkin. "Darrin explained to Marc that you're only friends. I think Marc understood. He's worried and looking for you." He stood and offered his hand to help her up. "He's helping Ms. Sarah and should be here any minute."

Smiling Gabriel said, "Now it's your turn." He assisted Katherine.

"Thank you." Once Katherine stood, she put on her heels. "I was worried they'd get hung in the hem."

As Marc and Judy talked, Gabriel walked to them. "You two good?"

They both thanked him and walked off holding hands.

As they left, Jordan and Samantha walked up.

Katherine asked, "Did you have fun?"

After they indicated they did, Gabriel said, "Let's head to the car."

*****
As Jordan walked Samantha to her door, Gabriel caressed Katherine's hand. "I doubt Jordan wants us watching."

"You're right." Her eyes met his. "How do you control students by doing nothing except being there? What's your secret?"

"I don't know. Maybe it's my size."

After Jordan got in the backseat, Gabriel asked, "Everything good?"

"Thanks, Coach."

As Gabriel nodded, Katherine's eyes widened. "Something I need to know?"

Grinning, Gabriel said, "Nope, a guy thing."

"All right." Katherine faced Jordan. "How does Gabriel keep student order by doing nothing but being there?"

"Probably his size and his presence. There's an air about him that says 'don't mess with me'."

Katherine leaned back in her seat. "How do I get it and how come I don't see it?"

Jordan chuckled. "Mom, don't worry. You don't have it."

Reaching over and taking her hand, Gabriel added, "You've never had a cause to see it. You've never made me angry. I doubt you're capable."

Her eyes widened. "Are you sure?"

"You've seen me frustrated, confused, jealous, and hurt, but never angry."

Silence continued the rest of the way home.

Once inside, Jordan kissed his mom's cheek. "Good night. I'll see you in the morning."

He nodded toward Gabriel. "Good night, Coach."

"See you tomorrow."

After Jordan went upstairs, Gabriel removed his suit jacket before he cuddled beside Katherine on the couch. "I need some quiet time with my gal." He kissed her. "We haven't had time to ourselves."

"Tonight was perfect".

He chuckled. "It was." He hesitated. "So Monday's big, right?"

"It is. Please, don't press me. I promise I'll tell you everything Monday."

"Okay, but I'm worried."

"I know." Her eyes twinkled. "Since we couldn't neck in the car, can we on the couch?"

A lingering kiss followed.

Katherine backed away. "Maybe we should stop."

He kissed her again. "Probably." He caressed her hand. "What plans do you have for tomorrow?"

"Groceries, rest, and work on my puzzle." She laughed. "Maybe we should get the boys."

"If you need a longer break, I could ask if Mom and Dad will take them another night. I'm sure they wouldn't mind."

Katherine pecked his cheek. "You're too good to me. No, we need to get them." She leaned her head against his shoulder and sighed. "I could really get used to this."


Thank you youtube. Possible song Gabriel asked his dad to play for his special gal.

In Case You Didn't Know by Brett Young









CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons. She teaches high school math and also coaches girls cross country.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Sandy Frost Rodney Frost's wife

Sam Auto repair shop owner

Bill Brooks Assistant football coach, Gabriel's friend, and Angie's husband.

Harold Hudson Gabriel's dad and football announcer.

Sandy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Judy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Rhonda Morgan Teenage girl on cross country team, and victim of dating violence.

Mr. and Mrs. Morgan Rhonda's parents.

Kenny Clark Teenager - Rhonda's boyfriend

Grace Former friend of Gabriel and featured in porn magazine

Janette & Jackson Riley Katherine's in-laws

Dr. Martin Jordan's doctor

Troy Elder Lawyer and friend of Gabriel from his pro-football days

UIL The University Interscholastic League exists to provide educational extracurricular academic, athletic, and music contests. The UIL was created by The University of Texas at Austin in 1910 and has grown into the largest inter-school org

Benjamin Weinberg Lawyer for George's mistress and baby

Gail Mitchel and her daughter, Jewel George's mistress and baby

Mr. Novak Riley's lawyer

Judge Ryan Washington Judge Troy asked to sit in the meeting.



Author Notes Thank you Google images for sharing a photo of a homecoming dance. I also want to thank everybody for the helpful reviews. Again, thank you for catching those errors. There are 10 posts left after this one. I'm trying to post entire chapters, instead of posting them in parts. Katherine and Gabriel still have some life issues to navigate. This is truly the calm before the storm. This novel is not actually about football, but is part of the background. High football is a national pastime in Texas. This post is a little over 4200 words. I know it's long, sorry about that, but I am now posting entire chapters. I had this divided into three posts, but it's one chapter.


Chapter 72
Football Chapter 43

By barbara.wilkey

Katherine and Gabriel have known each other for 53 days.

ENDING OF PREVIOUS POST:

"I know." Her eyes twinkled. "Since we couldn't neck in the car, can we on the couch?"

A lingering kiss followed.

Katherine backed away. "Maybe we should stop."

He kissed her again. "Probably." He caressed her hand. "What plans do you have for tomorrow?"

"Groceries, rest, and work on my puzzle." She laughed. "Maybe we should get the boys."

"If you need a longer break, I could ask if Mom and Dad will take them another night. I'm sure they wouldn't mind."

Katherine pecked his cheek. "You're too good to me. No, we need to get them." She leaned her head against his shoulder and sighed. "I could really get used to this."


TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 42

After school Monday, Angie paused at Katherine's classroom door and noticed her on the phone with tears streaming down her cheeks. She took a deep breath. "Something tells me this isn't good. I'd better get Gabe."

Inside the office, Angie asked Nancy, "Can you call Coach Hudson? It's important."

Gabriel opened Paul's door. "Angie, what's wrong?"

"Katherine. She needs you."

As Gabriel ran down the hallway, Paul asked, "What happened?"

"Sorry. It's not my place to say," answered Angie. "I'm sure you'll know soon. Give them about fifteen minutes then go down."

*****
Gabriel entered Katherine's room, noticed her crying, shut, and locked the door. "It's not good, is it?"

She shook her head.

He pulled a chair beside her and drew her into a hug.

"I have breast cancer." She sobbed.

As the news sank in, Gabriel closed his eyes and held her.

Later Paul unlocked the door and entered.

Gabriel dried his eyes. "Katherine, can I tell Paul?" After she nodded, he swallowed. "Katherine has breast cancer."

Paul dropped to a chair. "No! I'm sorry." Silence. "What can I do? What do you need?"

Gabriel inhaled and kissed her cheek, but said to Paul, "I'm taking her home. Can you tell Bill and Angie to cover our practices? Ask Bill to bring Jordan home." He hesitated. "As soon as I get more information, I'll let you know." He handed Paul his pick-up keys. "Can you and Bill figure out how to get it to Katherine's?"

"Sure."

*****
At Katherine's, Gabriel asked, "What can I do?"

"Tell Mom what's going on and ask her to stay for the boys. I can't do it right now." As Gabriel nodded, Katherine touched his arm and whispered, "I need you."

"I'll talk with Ms. Sarah, and be right back."

When Gabriel returned, Katherine hadn't moved. "Where would you be most comfortable?"

She glanced toward her bedroom, but said nothing.

"If that's where you want to be, that's where we'll go." He put his hand in the small of her back and started that direction.

"No. The den."

Gabriel nodded and turned. They sat on the loveseat, and he held her.

The silence continued until the sun started to set. Gabriel pecked her cheek. "What's the next step? Do you know?"

She dried her tears and then patted his chest. "I got your shirt wet."

"It's okay. What's next?"

"Tomorrow at eight-thirty, I meet with the surgeon. Thursday, I need to be at the hospital at six o'clock for surgery."

"They're moving fast."

"The biopsy showed I have HR+ hormone receptor-positive which means the cancer cells in my body contain both estrogen and progesterone receptors." She held her breath. "The things that make me different from my boys are killing me." After a silence, she continued, "It's an invasive type of cancer so they want to treat it aggressively. Right now I'm in stage 2. Depending what they find during surgery that could change."

"Can I come with you tomorrow?"

She nodded. "Yes." Another silence filled the air. "After surgery, they'll decide on my treatment." She hesitated, "I need to tell the boys."

"Right now you need to come to terms with it. There's plenty of time to talk with the boys. Let's find out exactly what we're dealing with." Gabriel removed his phone. "Is it okay if I call Paul and tell him we'll need subs for the following three days?"

She shook her head. "No, we can't be off that long, especially you; only tomorrow morning and Thursday morning. Once surgery's over Thursday and I'm home, you can go to school. Mom can stay with me. I can go to work tomorrow afternoon and Wednesday."

Gabriel's eyes met hers. "I'm not allowing you to go through this by yourself. I'm definitely butting my way in. Not only are you going to need my support, the boys will too." He kissed her. "Get used to it."

He checked his ringing phone. "Sorry, it's Dad." After she nodded, he answered, "Dad, is everything okay?" He listened. "That's right. I forgot. I'll tell Jeremy that you haven't forgotten." Again he listened. "Yes, there's something going on. I'll call you later. Give Mom my love."

After he hung up, he said, "Tomorrow is 'eat lunch with Grandpa Day'. I'd forgotten about it."

"I had too. I'm sure Jeremy hasn't."

"Later, I'll talk with him."

*****
Thursday morning, Gabriel held Katherine's hand as they waited for her to be moved to the OR. They turned when they heard somebody walk into the room.

Sarah smiled. "I'm glad I'm not late." She hugged and kissed her daughter's cheek.

"Mom, I'm glad you're here but what about the boys?"

"Harold and Rebecca showed up for boy duty."

Katherine's eyes met Gabriel's. "Did you have something to do with that?"

"The boys needed somebody, you needed your mom, and she needed to know you're all right. Mom and Dad were eager to help. After the boys are at school, Mom and Dad will be here for additional support."

Katherine squeezed his hand holding hers. "Thank you."

He leaned over and kissed her.

Before long, Bill, Angie, and Paul walked in.

"Who's teaching today?" Katherine asked as she smiled.

"Don't worry." Paul grinned. "There's no way we're going to let you go through this alone."

Bill kissed her cheek and then pointed to Gabriel. "We need your help to keep that one under control."

Katherine's eyes widened. "I don't understand why you think I have any influence. I don't." Her eyes met each person in the room. "You being here means a lot."

Within minutes the surgeon entered. "I see you need a larger room." After a few comments, she said, "We're ready." She faced Katherine's friends. "Questions?"

Gabriel nodded. "After the lump's removed, you're implanting a venous access port, right?"

"Yes. She'll need it for chemotherapy." The doctor glanced at Katherine. "Ready?" When she nodded, the surgeon continued, "We're taking additional skin samples than may be necessary, but with her type of cancer we need to check how far it's spread. This will take about an hour and half, maybe two. We'll keep you posted."

Before the orderly took Katherine to OR, Gabriel kissed her. "I love you and will be waiting."

She answered, "And I love you."

Bill patted Gabriel's back. "She's in good hands."

*****
Silence followed. Before long Harold and Rebecca arrived with breakfast burritos and coffee for all.

Gabriel kissed his mom's cheek. "Thanks."

Rebecca asked, "How long has Katherine been in OR?"

Checking his watch, Bill answered, "About an hour."

Gabriel stood, went to a window, and stared out.

Harold walked to him. "You find someone you love and this happens, right?"

"It's not fair. Not necessarily for me, but Katherine has four young boys. They need her."

"She'll need you." Harold paused. "So will the boys. Your mom and I are also available." He hugged his son.

"I haven't had a chance to ask. How'd lunch with Jeremy go?"

Laughing, Harold said, "He reminds me of you at the same age."

"Mom's alluded to that." Gabriel studied the door they took Katherine through. "It shouldn't be much longer." After a silence, he asked, "Why her? Am I being punished for my pro-years?"

"You know it doesn't work like that."

"Dad, ever since I met her it's been one problem after another. Now this."

"You've known each other for, what two months?" After Gabriel nodded, Harold continued, "Everything you've gone through has made you two a strong couple. Maybe it prepared you for this. She'll need your strength and patience. Actually your stubbornness will come in handy."

"First time I've ever heard that was a positive."

Gabriel turned his head at a sound and then rushed to Katherine's side as he glanced at the doctor. "Well?"

"Everything went well. I sent off the tissue samples. She has an appointment in one week. I'll have the results then. Depending on that and how she's healing, the oncologist will schedule her treatment. My nurse will be in shortly with discharge instructions and the follow-up appointment." The surgeon paused. "Who's going to be with her the most?"

Sarah said, "I'm moving in."

The surgeon nodded. "My nurse will instruct you on how to care for seroma drainage." She tapped Katherine. "Open your eyes and breathe deeply." She turned as the nurse entered. "I'll see you in one week." She left.

The nurse reminded Katherine to keep her eyes open and take deep breaths. "Gentlemen, please leave for a few minutes. We'll get Mrs. Riley dressed and give instructions on how to care for the seroma drainage." She smiled at Gabriel. "I promise we'll hurry."

Before he left, Gabriel pecked Katherine's cheek.

*****
Parked in front of Katherine's house, Gabriel helped Katherine into the house. Inside he asked Sarah, "Where should she go?"

"I think her bed would be best. That's where she'll be the most comfortable." She studied Gabriel. "Under the circumstances it'll be all right. I'm her mom and don't see a problem."

Gabriel grabbed a chair from the living room and moved it beside the bed. He held Katherine's hand while she slept.

Early afternoon, Katherine woke up and her eyes met Gabriel's. He asked, "How are you feeling?"

"Like a Mac-truck ran over me." She paused. "You looked deep in thought. What were you thinking?"

"How much I love you. How I wish I could take your place." He grinned. "How upset you're going to be when I push my way into your life."

"Those are deep thoughts."

He caressed the hand he held. "I had plenty of time."

"What answers did you come up with?"

Leaning over he kissed her cheek. "Not a single one." He glanced out the door. "Are you hungry?"

"Thirsty."

"Water?" After she answered, he continued, "I'll be right back."

Katherine watched him walk out. He doesn't deserve to go through this.

When Gabriel returned, he set the glass on the table, helped her sit up, and propped the pillows behind her.

She took a sip. "Thank you." After a long pause, she continued, "District playoffs start in what six weeks?" Gabriel nodded, and she said, "About the middle of my chemotherapy."

"Probably. Why?" When she paused, he added, "You're more important than winning district or state."

"If you win district, it'd be five years in a row."

"I know. My priorities have changed." Gabriel exhaled before he grinned. "Winning's still important, but not my priority. You and the boys have taken that spot." When Katherine started to say something, he kissed her. "It won't do any good to argue."

"I see that." She sipped more water. "Are you sure?"

"I'm positive."

Sarah walked in and asked, "Is it okay if I run home for a few things?"

Katherine wobbled as she stood. "Of course, I think I'm ready to walk around."

Gabriel offered his hand. "I'm here if you need help."

They held hands as they walked into the living room. After they sat on the couch, Katherine said, "I haven't said anything to the boys. I think it's time. Jordan and Joshua are asking questions."

"Want to talk to them after dinner?"

Blowing out air, Katherine nodded. "Probably. I'm not sure how to explain it without scaring them." She paused. "I'm scared."

"So am I."

"You didn't sign up for this."

"Neither did you, so what's your point?"

She leaned into his chest. "I guess I don't have one."

*****
After dinner, Katherine and Gabriel asked the boys to join them in the living room. Jeremy sat between them on the couch, and the other boys sat in various chairs.

Joshua's eyes met his mom's. "We know something's going on, what is it?"

Gabriel reached over and touched Katherine's arm. When she looked at him, he nodded. She began, "Please don't ask questions until I finish." She paused. "Today I had a cancerous lump and some extra tissue removed from my right breast. I'll start chemotherapy in a few weeks. Chemotherapy's a medicine that kills cancer. This is really strong medicine and will have many side-effects. It has to be to fight cancer."

Sarah gave Joel a hug, as Katherine continued, "Grandma will stay here. I'll need her help and I'm going to need you to be strong and help as much as possible."

Tears welled in Jeremy's eyes as he looked up at Gabriel. "Can't you make Mommy better?"

Gabriel hugged the child's shoulders. "I wish I could. I promise I'll be by her side, and I'll be here for you guys too. Together we'll fight this, but it'll take all of us." He inhaled a deep breath.

Silence continued.

Jordan stood and kissed his mom's cheek. "I love you." He went upstairs.

Moments later Joshua did the same.

Joel sat beside his mom, and cuddled her. This continued for a few minutes, before he went upstairs.

Jeremy leaned into Katherine. "I'm never leaving your side."

Katherine kissed his forehead. "Honey, you have to go to bed and to school. I promise I'll wake you in the morning."

"You'll be at school."

"I'm going to be at home for a while. I'll get you up and eat breakfast with you."

"Who's going to take Jordan to practice?"

She tilted her head. "I hadn't thought about that."

Gabriel tapped her arm. "I'll still run so I'll stop by on my way back to the school and pick him up. Is that okay?" He grinned. "That gives me a chance to check on you."

"Thank you." She faced her youngest son. "Jeremy, you need to get upstairs."

"Will you read me a story?"

Standing Gabriel said, "Tonight I will."


~~~~~~~~~~
Many of you know I'm a breast cancer survivor. Much of what will happen to Katherine is what I went through. I did shorten a little for the sake of a novel. Example, I had two surgeries because the cancer had spread farther than they had anticipated. While I was going through this, I posted short updates. They are in my portfolio, if you're interested. I placed them in a book last week. They are not in timeline order. I realized that too late. I'll try to get that fixed. Computers and I don't see eye-to-eye.
~~~~~~~~~~~

CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons. She teaches high school math and also coaches girls cross country.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Sandy Frost Rodney Frost's wife

Sam Auto repair shop owner

Bill Brooks Assistant football coach, Gabriel's friend, and Angie's husband.

Harold Hudson Gabriel's dad and football announcer.

Sandy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Judy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Rhonda Morgan Teenage girl on cross country team, and victim of dating violence.

Mr. and Mrs. Morgan Rhonda's parents.

Kenny Clark Teenager - Rhonda's boyfriend

Grace Former friend of Gabriel and featured in porn magazine

Janette & Jackson Riley Katherine's in-laws

Dr. Martin Jordan's doctor

Troy Elder Lawyer and friend of Gabriel from his pro-football days

UIL The University Interscholastic League exists to provide educational extracurricular academic, athletic, and music contests. The UIL was created by The University of Texas at Austin in 1910 and has grown into the largest inter-school org

Benjamin Weinberg Lawyer for George's mistress and baby

Gail Mitchel and her daughter, Jewel George's mistress and baby

Mr. Novak Riley's lawyer

Judge Ryan Washington Judge Troy asked to sit in the meeting.


Author Notes Thank you Google images for sharing information on breast cancer. I also want to thank everybody for the helpful reviews. Again, thank you for catching those errors. There are 8 posts left after this one. I did put two together, because one was really short. Katherine and Gabriel still have some life issues to navigate. This novel is not actually about football, but is part of the background. High football is a national pastime in Texas. This post is a little under 2300 words. I had this divided into three posts, but it's one chapter.


Chapter 73
Football Chapter 44

By barbara.wilkey

Katherine and Gabriel have known each other for 54 days.

ENDING OF PREVIOUS POST:

Jeremy leaned into Katherine. "I'm never leaving your side."

Katherine kissed his forehead. "Honey, you have to go to bed and to school. I promise I'll wake you in the morning."

"You'll be at school."

"I'm going to be at home for a while. I'll get you up and eat breakfast with you."

"Who's going to take Jordan to practice?"

She tilted her head. "I hadn't thought about that."

Gabriel tapped her arm. "I'll still run so I'll stop by on my way back to the school and pick him up. Is that okay?" He grinned. "That gives me a chance to check on you."

"Thank you." She faced her youngest son. "Jeremy, you need to get upstairs."

"Will you read me a story?"

Standing Gabriel said, "Tonight I will."


TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 43

Friday afternoon, Katherine set her laptop on the dining room table. "Mom, have a seat. Gabriel's going to Zoom the pep rally. Watch it with me."

Gabriel started the rally by announcing the upcoming dates of the sporting events. When he came to the girls' cross country, he said, "As most of you already know, Coach Riley will be home for a few months. Her team wants to say hello."

He faced the computer toward the girls. The girls waved, shouted, and blew kisses.

Tears welled in Katherine's eyes. "I've only been out a few days. I already miss them."

When Gabriel turned the computer around, he winked and mouthed, "Katherine, I love you."

Katherine covered her mouth. "I don't think he should've done that."

After a pause, he yelled, "Go Bears!" This continued five times before he turned over the pep rally to the cheerleaders and the band.

Sarah smiled. "That's a man who loves you."

"I know." Katherine exhaled. "I don't know what I've done to deserve him."

Hugging her daughter, Sarah said, "My dear, he's just as lucky to have found you."

"I'm not sure."

"I'm positive. I know how wonderful you are."

"You're my mom. You're supposed to think that."

*****
As Katherine and Sarah prepared to listen to the football game, Sarah answered a knock on the door. "Rebecca, come in. We're getting ready to listen to Harold bring the game."

Rebecca held out a large box. "I brought snacks. I hope you don't mind me coming over."

Katherine hugged her. "I hope you don't mind kid interruptions during the game."

"Heaven's no!" She opened the box. "There are nachos, wings, loaded potato bites, party mix, and makings for sandwiches."

Sarah laughed. "There's no way we can eat all that."

"I know. Gabe mentioned the boys have a snack after the game, so I figured I'd make sure there was plenty. That way you don't have to worry."

Rebecca's eyes met Katherine's. "You're not going through this by yourself. Harold and I are here for you and the boys. Whatever you need, don't be afraid to ask. If you don't ask, we'll push our way in." She giggled. "Where do you think Gabe inherited it from?"

Tears welled in Katherine's eyes. "Thank you."

*****
During halftime, Harold announced that University of Texas head football coach, Tom Herman was in the stands.

Harold speculated, "I wonder if he's here to watch the Bears or the home team, Canyon Lake Hawks. Before the game I saw him shaking hands with Coach Hudson. Coach played for UT, but not for Coach Herman. Mack Brown was head coach back then. We've got some good seniors this year, but head coaches don't do recruiting. I can't wait to talk with Coach Hudson."

When the second half ended, the Bears retained their undefeated status.

*****
After the game, Katherine fell asleep on the couch.

A few hours later, Gabriel, Harold, and Jordan walked in. Jordan stared at his sleeping mom. "Is she all right?"

Sarah hugged him. "She's just tired."

Rebecca kissed her husband's cheek and then pointed to the table. "Help yourself. The young'uns have already eaten and are in bed."

Jeremy ran down the stairs and hugged Coach. "You won another game. We listened to it." He then hugged Harold. "I heard your voice over the TV but couldn't see you."

Katherine woke up. "Why aren't you asleep? I put you in bed over an hour ago."

"I wanted to say hi to Coach and Grandpa."

Harold gave Jeremy a squeeze. "How did you know I'd be here?"

Jeremy giggled. "Grandma told me." He glanced at his mom. "I know. Back to bed."

Grinning Harold said, "I think we all need to get together for a meal on a regular basis." He paused. "Like back in the old days. Maybe Sunday dinner."

Gabriel nodded. "I like that idea. I think it would be good for the boys."

Rebecca tilted her head. "I think we should meet here for Sunday dinner, so we won't upset the boys' routine. They'll already be here."

Sarah helped herself to some party mix. "That would work."

Putting her hand on Katherine's shoulder, Rebecca said, "Sarah and I can take care of the meal and clean up. You don't need to worry about anything. Just supply the house and the kids."

Katherine laughed. "That I can do."

Jeremy called from upstairs. "I like that idea."

"You need to get yourself in bed, now," called Katherine.

Gabriel set his plate down. "I got this." He went upstairs.

When he returned, Katherine noticed him and Harold off to the side talking. I wonder if that's about the UT coach. I'll ask Gabriel later.

After the kitchen was cleaned and everybody had left, Gabriel sat beside Katherine on the couch and kissed her. "I haven't had a chance to talk with you all day. How are you feeling?"

"Better than yesterday."

Sarah walked in and kissed Katherine's cheek. "If you don't need anything, I'm going to bed. I'll see you in the morning."

"Good night, Mom. I'm sure the boys and all things football wore you out."

"I'd forgotten how much fun it was. I've missed it." She kissed Gabriel's cheek. "Good night. I'm sure I'll see you tomorrow."

"You will. I'll be by to get Jordan and then return after practice. If you give me a grocery list, I'll take care of it right after practice."

Katherine rested her head against Gabriel's arm. "I missed you today."

He kissed her forehead. "And I missed you. When I get Jordan before practice, I'm coming inside at least to kiss you good morning, even if you're asleep. Is that okay?"

"It is."

"I think I'll start dropping by during my lunch break."

"Will you have time?"

"I'll make time." He squeezed her tighter. "It's important."

"I'd like that." Katherine hesitated. "During halftime your dad said the UT coach was at the game. He said you talked with him. Was it important?"

"I don't know. I had to get to the team. We basically shook hands and that was it. He said something about getting with me later."

She yawned. "Seems strange."

"It does. You're tired, and I need to get going. Would you like me to zoom part of the cross country meet with you?"

Katherine smiled. "Can you?"

Gabriel stood and offered his hand. After Katherine stood, he kissed her. "I can and I'll see you in the morning. Good night."

"Good night."


~~~~~~~~~
The large high schools televise the football games in Texas. At some of the smaller high schools, they have their own channel where they have the district highlights scrolling on the TV screen. Things like the school board meetings and sporting events, especially football games are announced but you cannot see the game only hear it.

I had a few questions about Katherine not telling her boys about the cancer earlier. I told all but one of my boys about my cancer from the beginning. My older boys were adults, my youngest was senior in high school. The son I didn't tell was deployed to Afghanistan. I felt he had enough to worry about. He found out when he returned. He was upset with me for keeping him in the dark. He didn't need to worry about his mom. Many women choose not to tell their children until they have all the information. I chose to go that way with this story because of the age of the children, especially Jermemy. I continued to work through chemo. This was a personal choice; most choose not to. That being said, I came home and went straight to bed. My guys took care of meals and household chores.
~~~~~~~~~~


CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons. She teaches high school math and also coaches girls cross country.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Sandy Frost Rodney Frost's wife

Sam Auto repair shop owner

Bill Brooks Assistant football coach, Gabriel's friend, and Angie's husband.

Harold Hudson Gabriel's dad and football announcer.

Sandy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Judy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Rhonda Morgan Teenage girl on cross country team, and victim of dating violence.

Mr. and Mrs. Morgan Rhonda's parents.

Kenny Clark Teenager - Rhonda's boyfriend

Grace Former friend of Gabriel and featured in porn magazine

Janette & Jackson Riley Katherine's in-laws

Dr. Martin Jordan's doctor

Troy Elder Lawyer and friend of Gabriel from his pro-football days

UIL The University Interscholastic League exists to provide educational extracurricular academic, athletic, and music contests. The UIL was created by The University of Texas at Austin in 1910 and has grown into the largest inter-school org

Benjamin Weinberg Lawyer for George's mistress and baby

Gail Mitchel and her daughter, Jewel George's mistress and baby

Mr. Novak Riley's lawyer

Judge Ryan Washington Judge Troy asked to sit in the meeting.


Author Notes Thank you Google images for the photo of possible tailgate party foods. I also want to thank everybody for the helpful reviews. Again, thank you for catching those errors. There are 7 posts left after this one. Katherine and Gabriel still have some life issues to navigate. This novel is not actually about football but is part of the background. High football is a national pastime in Texas. This post is a little over 1000 words.


Chapter 74
Football Chapter 45

By barbara.wilkey

Katherine and Gabriel have known each other for 61 days.

ENDING OF PREVIOUS POST:

"I'd like that." Katherine hesitated. "During halftime your dad said the UT coach was at the game. He said you talked with him. Was it important?"

"I don't know. I had to get to the team. We basically shook hands and that was it. He said something about getting with me later."

She yawned. "Seems strange."

"It does. You're tired, and I need to get going. Would you like me to zoom part of the cross country meet with you?"

Katherine smiled. "Can you?"

Gabriel stood and offered his hand. After Katherine stood, he kissed her. "I can and I'll see you in the morning. Good night."

"Good night."


TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 45

After his Friday morning run, Gabriel knocked on Katherine's door. Jordan answered, "Hi, Coach." When Katherine rushed to the door, Jordan grinned. "I'll wait outside."

After a few kisses, Gabriel exhaled. "As much as I'd enjoy doing this all day, I need to get to school."

"Will you have time to come by at lunch?"

"Wasn't I here every day this week?"

"Yes, but there's a game tonight."

"I'll see you around eleven-thirty." Another kiss, before he said, "See you later."

Katherine went in the kitchen and started breakfast for the other boys. My sewer drainage (seroma drainage) was removed yesterday. I could go back to work. I don't start chemo for ten days. There's absolutely no reason for me to be home. I feel fine.

Sarah joined her in the kitchen. "I can tell your brain's working overtime. What's going on?"

"I should go to work next week. I'm in a little pain but not much and the sewer's gone. There's no reason to sit here and do nothing."

"You have a puzzle that needs to be completed," teased Sarah.

"Mom!"

"The doctor wants you to take it easy. I'm sure there's a reason. Besides she won't sign the necessary paperwork for you to return to work."

"She's being over cautious."

"I doubt it. Didn't she say something about catching an infection?" Sarah faced the stairs. "I'll get the boys."

*****
When Gabriel arrived during his lunch break, Katherine and Daisy were sitting on the front porch. "Getting fresh air?"

"I want to go back to work, but Mom has sided with my overly cautious doctor." She paused. "I can do it. I'm feeling fine."

"You're feeling fine because you're resting. If you start doing more, you'll start feeling it. You need to conserve your strength for chemo. The oncologist said it'll be the hardest thing you've ever gone through."

Katherine's eyes met his. "You're siding with Mom and my doctor?"

"I am. I'm sure Paul would agree." He offered his hand. "Let's go in."

"I'm not sure what Mom's fixed for lunch."

Sarah offered, "That's because you've pouted all morning."

Gabriel kissed her. "I hope that helps."

She smiled. "It does."

Sarah set lunch on the table. "Any worries about the Hornets?"

"They have a fast running back we'll need to stop. As long as we can keep him from getting the ball, we'll be fine." Gabriel winked at Katherine. "It should be an easy game." He grunted as he checked his ringing phone and stepped from the table. "Sorry, it's Paul. I need to take it."

Katherine watched Gabriel as he ran his hand through his short hair and checked his watch. "I'll be there in about thirty minutes." After a silence he said, "I don't care. Give him a tour of the weight room."

As he sat, Katherine said, "It's okay if you need to leave."

"I don't want to. I look forward to our time together and won't allow for interruptions." Gabriel took a drink.

Both heads turned as they heard a knock on the door. Gabriel got up. "I wonder who that is."

When he opened it, Melton Ivory said, "Don't slam the door."

Gabriel glared at him. "Why not?"

"I heard Mrs. Riley has breast cancer, and so have her in-laws. I wanted to warn her they're using it to attempt to get custody, again. Please give her the message." He turned to leave.

"You work for their lawyer?" After Melton nodded, Gabriel continued, "It all makes sense now. Why are you telling us?"

"I realized how wrong they are about everything." He left.

Gabriel called after him. "Thank you." He closed the door and faced Katherine. "You heard?"

"Now what?"

He removed his phone. "I'm calling Troy. He'll handle it. Don't worry."

After speaking with Troy, Gabriel checked his watch and kissed Katherine. "It's taken care of. I need to go. The pep rally will be on Zoom. I'll come by after the game." At the door, he faced her. "I love you more each day."

"I love you too. Good luck tonight."

*****
About twenty minutes before game time, the boys, Sarah, and Katherine were ready. Sarah answered a knock on the door. "Rebecca, come in."

Greetings and hugs continued before Rebecca scanned the table. "Sarah, the snacks look so yummy." She checked her watch. "The game starts in fifteen minutes. Has Harold started the pre-game show? I heard the UT head coach met with Gabe this afternoon. I wonder what he wants. It's mysterious. I hope Harold tells us." She hesitated. "Then again, he may not know."

Katherine stared at the TV. That was the meeting Paul called about. I wonder why Gabriel didn't say anything. Maybe there wasn't anything to tell. He wouldn't keep a secret, would he?

Joshua sat beside her. "Mom, is everything all right?"

She hugged her son. "Of course. I'm anxious for kick-off.

As the game began, Sarah said, "Gabriel said during lunch they need to make sure the Hornets' running back doesn't get the ball."

Rebecca nodded. "He's a senior this year. Last year he scored two touchdowns against us. What was his name?" She thought a moment. "O'Henry, that's it. He's really fast. I'm sure a big university will sign him." She picked up a plate. "Let's get this party started."

Everybody filled their plates and readied for the kick-off. As the first quarter ended, O'Henry caught a pass and ran thirty yards for a touchdown.

Harold announced, "Coach's cap just hit the ground. He's not happy. I wonder who missed their tackle. Coach Hudson's animated. Coach Brook came over to talk with him. The score 6-0. We blocked the extra point. There's the buzzer for the end of the first quarter. We need to score in the second quarter or our winning streak's in jeopardy."

Rebecca put her hand on Katherine's arm. "Gabe doesn't take losing well."

"Numerous people have warned me."

Starting the second quarter the Bears got first down after first down and scored.

Katherine whispered, "Don't try for the two-point conversion. They'll expect it."

Harold commented, "Coach still has our boys huddled up. He's staring at the Hornets' huddle. I wonder what he's thinking. They're ready. Let's see what he's going to try." After a few minutes he laughed. "The extra point's good. I wondered if he'd try for the two points. I guess he figured they'd expect it. The one thing I know is Coach Hudson will not be out coached."

Katherine released the breath she'd been holding.

Joshua laughed. "Mom, you called that right. How did you know?"

Sarah smiled. "Your mom grew up in a football family. She probably knows more about football than most people. Your grandpa was the most winning coach in district. Gabe may break his record, if some big university doesn't scoop him up."

Katherine silently studied her mom. Like the UT head coach who's been meeting with him.

*****
The final score: 6-10. The Bears were victorious and O'Henry wasn't able to get another first down.

Katherine walked over to the table. "Boys, finish your snacks.

Jeremy hugged Rebecca. "Will Grandpa come like he did last week?"

She hugged the child. "Yes. We're going to make regular visits. Remember us talking about it last week? Is that okay?"

"It's great." Jeremy took his mom's hand. "Can I stay up until Coach and Grandpa get here?"

"It was a home game, so yes, but soon after that you need to go to bed. Why don't you get on your pajamas before they arrive?"

He stomped upstairs. "Okay."

"It wasn't long before Jordan, Gabriel, and Harold walked in the door. Gabriel kissed Katherine. "I expected you'd be asleep."

Before she answered, she reached for the cap he always hung up as he entered. "I see it's a little extra dirty."

"Dad, did you announce it hitting the ground?"

Harold hugged his wife. "I announce every play-by-play."

Gabriel drew Katherine in a hug before he kissed her. "Maybe, but I think only once."

Sarah said, "Guys, get some food."

Before Gabriel and Harold fixed a plate, they spent time with Jeremy, answering all his questions and allowing him time with Reggie. When it came time for him to go to bed, Reggie and Daisy followed him upstairs.

They continued eating and discussing the game. After the other boys went upstairs, Rebecca said, "Katherine advised you not to try a two-point-conversion because they'd expect it."

Gabriel winked at her. "You were right. I'm glad I listened."

Soon the kitchen was cleaned, and Gabriel's parents left.

Putting his arm around Katherine, he asked, "Are you too tired to sit and cuddle a while?"

"It's one of my favorite things."

"What's another of your favorite things?" interrupted Gabriel.

She kissed him. "That."

After a few lingering kisses, Katherine got quiet, and Gabriel asked, "Are you sure you're not tired?"

"I took a nap this afternoon. I'm fine." Katherine's eyes met his. "Can I ask about something?"

"Always."

"What did Coach Herman want?"

"He offered me a coaching job."

"I thought we were equal partners. When were you going to tell me?" When Katherine hesitated, Gabriel started to speak, but she continued, "So I'm not part of decision making? I'm to be kept on the shelf until..."

A kiss interrupted her, before Gabriel said, "This conversation's going downhill. Let me explain and then if you have questions we'll go from there."

After exhaling, Gabriel said, "Tom offered me a line-coaching job. He's impressed with the program I've built. I didn't tell you because I turned it down. I saw no reason to discuss it."

When she started to speak, he put his finger over her lips and continued, "I turned it down because I wasn't interested at this time in my life."

"Why?" asked Katherine. "The money. The prestige."

"I don't need the money or the prestige. I have everything I want with you and the boys. I'm happy coaching here."

"Did you turn it down because of me?"

"Not really. Our relationship's in a good place. I have hopes of us getting married." Gabriel paused. "With the hours coaches keep, it's too far to drive daily. I didn't want us to be in different cities."

"This job could lead to other jobs, a head coach of a university and then the pros."

"I know."

"Why didn't you discuss it with me?"

"I felt there wasn't any reason to. I wasn't interested."

"The reasons for turning it down seem to deal with me. I would've told you to take it. I don't want to hold you back. You'll grow to resent me."

"I'd never resent you. You're not holding me back."

"But you could be back with professional football."

"True, but I've been there." Gabriel shrugged his shoulders. "I'm not interested." He kissed her. "Please understand I'm happy here. I'm making changes in boys' lives and if I teach them a little football that's a plus."

He paused before he continued, "I didn't bring it up probably for the same reason you didn't tell me about the doctor finding the lump. You didn't want me to worry unless there was something to worry about. I wasn't interested so there wasn't anything to discuss."

Katherine studied his face.

"I understand your concern. I'm not George. I'm not interested in a trophy wife. We are and we'll continue to be partners." Gabriel grinned and his kiss lingered. "If it'll help, I promise to discuss everything with you."

"That would be ridiculous, wouldn't it?"

His eyes met hers. "It's up to you. If it'll help you trust me..."

Her kiss interrupted him. "I trust you. Are you positive it's what you want?"

"I am. I told Tom at this time in my life I'm not interested, but if something comes up in a few years, maybe. Is that fair enough?"

She cuddled into his chest and yawned. "I'll agree with that. I'm sorry I was being ridiculous.

"Under the circumstances it makes sense."

After another yawn, she said, "You're way too patient with me."

"Either I'm boring or you're tired." Gabriel stood. "I know I'm not boring, so it has to be you're tired." He helped her stand. "There's no cross country meet tomorrow, so I'll be by after practice." He kissed her. "I'll take Jordan to practice." After a few more kisses, he grinned. "Good night." He started out the door but turned back. "That was a good morning kiss, in case you're not up." He winked as he left.

"You're...."

"Incorrigible," interrupted Gabriel. "I know and you love it."
"You're right. I do."


~~~~~~~
A little background on the seroma drainage. After my first surgery, I didn't need one put in because I only lost 4 lymph nodes. After the second surgery my total lymph node loss was 16, so the surgeon put on it. It literally is a drainage sewer. I called it a sewer. At the beginning, it had to be drained 3 -4 times a day. It was under my arm, so someone was needed to empty it by a syringe. My husband did it. After a few weeks, depending on the person, less and less waste is produced. When there's almost no waste, the surgeon removes it. With this many missing lymph nodes, problems can occur. I've been lucky. I only have a little swelling, when a weather front goes through. When I fly or travel to the mountains, I need to wear a compression sleeve and sometimes a glove on that arm/hand. While you have a seroma drainage in legally you can't drive.

I mentioned in yesterday's post, I will be visiting my mom from February 11-21. I may not be able to post or review because Mom doesn't have Internet. I'll do what I can.
~~~~~~~


CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons. She teaches high school math and also coaches girls cross country.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Sandy Frost Rodney Frost's wife

Sam Auto repair shop owner

Bill Brooks Assistant football coach, Gabriel's friend, and Angie's husband.

Harold Hudson Gabriel's dad and football announcer.

Sandy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Judy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Rhonda Morgan Teenage girl on cross country team, and victim of dating violence.

Mr. and Mrs. Morgan Rhonda's parents.

Kenny Clark Teenager - Rhonda's boyfriend

Grace Former friend of Gabriel and featured in porn magazine

Janette & Jackson Riley Katherine's in-laws

Dr. Martin Jordan's doctor

Troy Elder Lawyer and friend of Gabriel from his pro-football days

UIL The University Interscholastic League exists to provide educational extracurricular academic, athletic, and music contests. The UIL was created by The University of Texas at Austin in 1910 and has grown into the largest inter-school org

Benjamin Weinberg Lawyer for George's mistress and baby

Gail Mitchel and her daughter, Jewel George's mistress and baby

Melton Ivory Lawyer who tried to get a date with Katherine

Mr. Novak Riley's lawyer

Judge Ryan Washington Judge Troy asked to sit in the meeting.





Author Notes Thank you Google images for the photo of Bevo, UT's macott. I also want to thank everybody for the helpful reviews. Again, thank you for catching those errors. There are 6 posts left after this one. Katherine and Gabriel still have some life issues to navigate. This novel is not actually about football but is part of the background. High football is a national pastime in Texas. This post is a little over 2100 words.


Chapter 75
Football Chapter 46

By barbara.wilkey

Katherine and Gabriel have known each other for 62 days.

ENDING OF PREVIOUS POST:

"I am. I told Tom at this time in my life I'm not interested, but if something comes up in a few years, maybe. Is that fair enough?"

She cuddled into his chest and yawned. "I'll agree with that. I'm sorry I was being ridiculous.

"Under the circumstances it makes sense."

After another yawn, she said, "You're way too patient with me."

"Either I'm boring or you're tired." Gabriel stood. "I know I'm not boring, so it has to be you're tired." He helped her stand. "There's no cross country meet tomorrow, so I'll be by after practice." He kissed her. "I'll take Jordan to practice." After a few more kisses, he grinned. "Good night." He started out the door but turned back. "That was a good morning kiss, in case you're not up." He winked as he left.

"You're...."

"Incorrigible," interrupted Gabriel. "I know and you love it."

"You're right. I do."

TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 47

When Gabriel knocked on the door early Saturday morning, Jordan answered and then stepped outside. "Mom's still asleep."

"Not surprised. I left pretty late last night."

The drive to practice was silent until Gabriel parked, and then Jordan asked, "I heard something in the locker room after the game." Their eye's met, before he continued, "UT offered you a coaching job. If it's true, are you leaving?"

Gabriel removed the keys from the ignition. "It's true. I turned it down." He teased, "I couldn't leave you knuckleheads." After a pause, he said, "Since it's a rumor, I'd better address it this morning. Thanks for letting me know." He paused before he opened the door. "Jordan, you can ask me anything. You could've asked last night. I want us to have open communication."

"Thanks Coach."

*****
After practice, Jordan opened the front door. "Mom, we're home."

"I'm in the den."

Gabriel walked in and kissed her. "How you doing?"

"Good enough to work Monday."

Sarah stood in the door. "Jordan's eating. Would you like something?"

Turning toward her, Gabriel grinned. "Any coffee?"

"Of course. I knew you'd be here. I always make sure there's a fresh pot. I'll get it." Sarah turned to leave.

"I can get my own. You don't need to wait on me." He glanced at Katherine. "I'll be right back."

Katherine followed him, and they went to the back porch.

Before Gabriel could sit, Jeremy asked, "Coach, can you help me in my room?"

As he followed Jeremy upstairs, a knock sounded on the door, Katherine said, "I'll get it."

When the door was open, Mr. Edwards gave her a hug. "How you feeling?"

"Well enough to come to work next week."

Paul's eyes widened. "Did your doctor clear it?" When she shook her head, he said, "The answer is no. Is Gabe here?"

Gabriel walked down the stairs. "What brings you here?" He grinned at Katherine. "Jeremy thought shoving everything in his closet was picking up his room. He's making the correction."

"Thank you."

Glancing at Paul, he said, "Sorry. Saturday's clean bedrooms' day. I only threw my cap once during Friday's game. The UIL shouldn't complain. I know it has to be big or you'd text." He pointed toward the back porch. "Let's go out here."

Katherine said, "I'll bring coffee."

*****
Once both men were seated, Paul asked, "As much as I enjoy having the best football coach in all of Texas, plus he's a close friend, I need to understand why you turned down the coaching job. I guess I want to make sure you're not making a mistake."

"I appreciate it. My life's perfect. You give me free reign over the athletic department. I'm in love with an amazing woman, and more importantly she loves me." He chuckled. "I've wondered what her problem is." He hesitated. "Not only that, I'm part of a family and it feels good. I'm the luckiest man on earth. Why would I mess that up?" He ran his hand through his hair. "I told Herman I'm saying no for now, but if something becomes available in a few years I'll reconsider."

Katherine stood in the doorway with the coffee. Tears crept down her cheeks.

Gabriel stood and held her. "What's wrong?"

"I get it. I didn't before, but now I understand."

"I have a perfect life, you, the boys, and my job. It couldn't get any better. I don't need anything."

"But I have breast cancer and the boys, well, they're boys."

"I understand. Things happen that are out of our control. Kids will be kids. I was a kid once and spend most of my day with kids. I do kids." He tightened his hug. "We'll fight this cancer together, and I'll be by your side every step of the way."

Katherine dried her eyes as she looked at Paul. "I'm sorry. Gabriel and I talked about this, but I didn't understand his reasons until just now."

Jeremy stood at the door with his arms full. "Coach said this doesn't belong in my closet." He glared at Gabriel. "Where do they belong?"

"Jeremy, where are your manners?"

"Hello Mr. Edwards. "Did your mom make you clean your room?"

"She did, and I make my daughters clean their rooms, too."

"Figures." He frowned at his mom. "Well? I can't play until I'm done."

Gabriel took the objects from the child. "I'll help you find them a spot." He walked toward the stairs. "Paul, duty calls."

Katherine smiled. "He's so good with them."

Paul chuckled. "Probably because he's a big kid himself."

She tilted her head. "I've thought the same thing."

He paused a moment. "To be honest, I've known Gabe since we played middle school football. He's one of the good guys and always was. The woman lucky enough to catch him will have a great husband and father." He grinned. "Matter-a-fact, the man who captures your heart is equally as lucky. I'm glad you found each other."

"I have a lot of baggage." She turned away.

Paul touched her arm. "When you were a teenager you made mistakes. You learned from them, right?" Their eyes met as she nodded, and he continued, "We've all made mistakes. Gabe doesn't hold it against you. I've seen him with the boys. He genuinely loves them." He exhaled. "I'm giving you some fatherly advice. Get over it. It's time you forgave yourself." He offered her a Kleenex. "Dry your eyes. Let's keep this talk our secret."

Nodding, Katherine kissed his cheek. "Thank you."

Touching his cheek, Paul grinned. "You're the first math teacher to ever kiss me. I enjoyed it."

"I understand why you two are friends."

He hugged her shoulders. "You're right."

*****
During dinner, Gabriel set his fork down and then said, "Katherine, next weekend is the last free time you have before chemotherapy. If it's all right with Sarah, why don't we go out on a real date, not a Homecoming dance?"

"I don't know..."

"It's a wonderful idea," interrupted Sarah.

Katherine closed her eyes before smiling. "It's a date."

~~~~~~~
There are two new towers close to my mom. She now has Internet. It's not good, but she has it. It comes and goes as I'm typing, but at least I have Internet.
~~~~~~~


CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons. She teaches high school math and also coaches girls cross country.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Sandy Frost Rodney Frost's wife

Sam Auto repair shop owner

Bill Brooks Assistant football coach, Gabriel's friend, and Angie's husband.

Harold Hudson Gabriel's dad and football announcer.

Sandy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Judy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Rhonda Morgan Teenage girl on cross country team, and victim of dating violence.

Mr. and Mrs. Morgan Rhonda's parents.

Kenny Clark Teenager - Rhonda's boyfriend

Grace Former friend of Gabriel and featured in porn magazine

Janette & Jackson Riley Katherine's in-laws

Dr. Martin Jordan's doctor

Troy Elder Lawyer and friend of Gabriel from his pro-football days

UIL The University Interscholastic League exists to provide educational extracurricular academic, athletic, and music contests. The UIL was created by The University of Texas at Austin in 1910 and has grown into the largest inter-school org

Benjamin Weinberg Lawyer for George's mistress and baby

Gail Mitchel and her daughter, Jewel George's mistress and baby

Melton Ivory Lawyer who tried to get a date with Katherine

Mr. Novak Riley's lawyer

Judge Ryan Washington Judge Troy asked to sit in the meeting.





Author Notes Thank you Google images for the photo of a young boy pondering cleaning his room. I also want to thank everybody for the helpful reviews. Again, thank you for catching those errors. There are 5 posts left after this one. Katherine and Gabriel still have some life issues to navigate. This novel is not actually about football but is part of the background. High football is a national pastime in Texas. This post is a little over 1000 words.


Chapter 76
Football Chapter 47

By barbara.wilkey

Katherine and Gabriel have known each other for 69 days.

ENDING OF PREVIOUS POST:

During dinner, Gabriel set his fork down and then said, "Katherine, next weekend is the last free time you have before chemotherapy. If it's all right with Sarah, why don't we go out on a real date, not a Homecoming dance?"

"I don't know..."

"It's a wonderful idea," interrupted Sarah.

Katherine closed her eyes before smiling. "It's a date."

TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 48

After Saturday morning practice, Gabriel and Jordan got in the pick-up and Jordan asked, "Coach, can I ask you something?"

"Sure, I've told you that you're welcome to ask me anything."

"Do you wish you had Mom to yourself?"

"That's a loaded question." Gabriel exhaled and then his eyes met Jordan's. "I'll answer honestly. My first choice would've been to spend time alone with her before there were kids. That wasn't an option."

Chuckling Gabriel added, "First Reggie's size scared your mom and Daisy. Next, Jeremy ran a shopping cart into me, and then I spilled hot coffee on her and met you. Remember when I threw the football and you caught it, but knocked your mom into Mr. Edwards? Hardly a normal start to a relationship."

"But you still pursued her."

Gabriel turned the ignition key. "I felt from the beginning your mom was special. I don't give up. She tried to keep me out of her life."

"When you realized there were two more of us, didn't you get concerned?"

"Joel and Joshua?" When Jordan nodded, Gabriel continued, "Naw, somehow it seemed normal." After parking, Gabriel asked, "Did I answer your question?"

"Sort of. I guess your answer would be, it would've been nice, but wasn't in the cards, and Mom and we are worth it."

Gabriel shook his head. "You summed it up perfectly. I wouldn't change a thing."

"Got it."

*****
After the Saturday chores were completed, Gabriel checked his watch and then winked at Katherine. "Are you ready for our date?" After she nodded, he continued, "I need to get home and get ready. I'll return about seven o'clock. Okay?"

*****
When Gabriel returned and Katherine answered the door, he asked, "I forgot to ask, can I leave Reggie here. He doesn't need to go on our date."

"Of course."

"Good." He grinned. "You'd better say goodbye to the boys. Our ride's waiting."

"Our ride?"

"You'll see, do your goodbyes."

Outside, Katherine asked, "What's this?"

He cocked his head. "A car." As she frowned, he continued, "My pick-up wasn't suitable and your SUV might be used by Sarah, so I rented a limousine." He pecked her cheek. "I hope you approve."

"I do."

He held out his hand. "One more thing. Give me your phone."

She set it in his hand. "Why?"

He handed both cell phones to the driver. "I gave Sarah our driver's number. Unless it's a true emergency, we won't be bothered."

"Are you sure?"

Gabriel opened the back door for her. "I'm positive. You deserve it." He studied her. "Would you get in?"

She tucked her skirt and sat. "All right, already."

Once Katherine was seated, Gabriel leaned in and kissed her before he got in on the opposite side. "Philip, we're ready."

Philip nodded. Once he put the limousine in drive, he asked, "Sir, continue as planned?"

Nodding, Gabriel said, "Yes." His eyes met Katherine's. "I hope you enjoy yourself."

"I'm sure I will." She caressed his hand. "You've put a lot of planning into this, didn't you?"

"Maybe a little. Sit back and relax."

"You sure I can't have my phone back?"

He chuckled. "Philip, no matter what she says don't give it to her."

Philip grinned. "Understood."

Continuing, Gabriel said, "We're on an honest-to-goodness date. Nothing counts but us." He grinned. "It'll be hard, but we can do it."

"We can."

*****
Once the limousine parked, Katherine stared out the window at the decorated outside gazebo. "You did this for me?"

Gabriel opened his door. "I did." After he helped her out, he continued, "I wanted alone time, something special, and romantic. I hope you approve."

She walked in circles, studying the lights trimming the tree branches, candles, and table setting.

He put his hand on the small of her back, led her to the table, and held her chair.

Moments later, a waiter placed on the table a fruit and cheese board. "I hope you enjoy."

Katherine glanced around. "Where's this coming from?"

Pointing behind him, Gabriel said, "There's a van back there."

As soft music began, she smiled. "You thought of everything."

"I tried." He took her hand. "Help yourself. I was afraid of taking you to a public restaurant because your oncologist is worried about you catching something. Also, I was afraid in public we'd get interrupted. So here we are."

The dinner continued with the main course and dessert. After dinner, they danced under the stars.

A few dances later, Gabriel asked, "Can we sit and talk?"

"Sure. Is there a problem?"

Gabriel exhaled. "I know you're insecure. I'm worried you feel I'm not fully committed to you. I need you to know I am." He kissed her. "I'm not George or some fancy jock."

"It's me, not you. You're wonderful." She released a deep breath. "Growing up I felt I didn't live up to Dad's expectations. I didn't play football. I tried to make myself worthy, I got the best grades and ran the fastest to prove myself. It didn't make any difference. I still felt I didn't measure up."

Gabriel started to say something but Katherine put her finger across his lips. "Let me finish." She swallowed. "While married to George, I felt I couldn't be the wife he wanted/needed. As you know, he had numerous affairs. Just more proof I'm not good enough. I've disappointed every man in my life."

He encompassed her in a hug, drawing her close. "Please stop. George was the problem, not you. I'll share what first attracted me to you. First, your intelligence." He chuckled. "Even jocks want an intelligent wife."

After a long pause, he continued, "With everything you've been through, you moved across country by yourself with the boys, the Frost insults, your in-laws, and now cancer you've impressed me with your strength and emotional stability."

Katherine smiled. "You've dried numerous tears. You mentioned early on that you didn't do tears."

"I've discovered I do tears when there's a reason. I don't do manipulative tears." With a grin, he said, "It didn't take long to figure out you wanted a home and family."

"You couldn't miss the boys."

"That's true. I hope you never question my devotion to the boys."

"I've marveled at how good you are with them."

A kiss ensued. "Last but not least, you're gorgeous. Any man would be proud to have you on their arm."

Pink tinged her cheeks. "You're exaggerating."

His eyes met hers. "I'm not. You're my first priority." He paused. "Then the boys."

She put her arms around his muscular arm and laid her head against it. "I'm not used to somebody putting me first." She swallowed. "It feels good but guilty."

"Get used to the feeling. I plan on it happening often."

"I know." She pecked his cheek then turned away.

After a lengthy silence, Gabriel asked, "What's on your mind?"

Silence followed, before she faced him. "I start Chemo day after tomorrow."

"You're not going through it alone. I'll be by your side."

She held his hand. "Thank you." After she kissed him, she said, "I don't want the night to end."

"Neither do I."

*****
When Katherine entered her house, Sarah and Rebecca were talking and Sarah said, "Welcome back. I hope you relaxed."

"I did. We had a wonderful time. How'd everything go here?"

"Very well.

Sarah continued, "Jordan's upstairs and the others are asleep."

Rebecca released a deep breath. "I hope it's okay. Jordan wanted information about Chemo. I helped him with research. He's scared." When tears entered Katherine's eyes, Rebecca hugged her. "I hope I didn't overstep."

"I'm glad you were here to help."

"Sweetheart, there's no way you're going through this alone."

Gabriel walked in. "What's wrong?"

Katherine dried her eyes. "Everything's perfect."

Shaking his head, Gabriel said, "Of course, it's normal to walk into a room and the two ladies whom I love very much are embraced and crying. Why would I be worried?"

Katherine hugged him. "I'm blessed and it's because you pushed your way into my life. Thank you."


~~~~~~~
A day late, but I'm posting while waiting for my flight home. I'll catch up on reviews and reviewing tomorrow.
~~~~~~~


CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons. She teaches high school math and also coaches girls cross country.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Sandy Frost Rodney Frost's wife

Sam Auto repair shop owner

Bill Brooks Assistant football coach, Gabriel's friend, and Angie's husband.

Harold Hudson Gabriel's dad and football announcer.

Sandy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Judy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Rhonda Morgan Teenage girl on cross country team, and victim of dating violence.

Mr. and Mrs. Morgan Rhonda's parents.

Kenny Clark Teenager - Rhonda's boyfriend

Grace Former friend of Gabriel and featured in porn magazine

Janette & Jackson Riley Katherine's in-laws

Dr. Martin Jordan's doctor

Troy Elder Lawyer and friend of Gabriel from his pro-football days

UIL The University Interscholastic League exists to provide educational extracurricular academic, athletic, and music contests. The UIL was created by The University of Texas at Austin in 1910 and has grown into the largest inter-school org

Benjamin Weinberg Lawyer for George's mistress and baby

Gail Mitchel and her daughter, Jewel George's mistress and baby

Melton Ivory Lawyer who tried to get a date with Katherine

Mr. Novak Riley's lawyer

Judge Ryan Washington Judge Troy asked to sit in the meeting.





Author Notes Thank you Google images for the photo of a gazebo. I also want to thank everybody for the helpful reviews. Again, thank you for catching those errors. There are 4 posts left after this one. Katherine and Gabriel still have some life issues to navigate. This novel is not actually about football but is part of the background. High football is a national pastime in Texas. This post is a little under 1400 words.


Chapter 77
Football Chapter 48

By barbara.wilkey

Katherine and Gabriel have known each other for 70 days.

ENDING OF PREVIOUS POST:

When Katherine entered her house, Sarah and Rebecca were talking and Sarah said, "Welcome back. I hope you relaxed."

"I did. We had a wonderful time. How'd everything go here?"

"Very well.

Sarah continued, "Jordan's upstairs and the others are asleep."

Rebecca released a deep breath. "I hope it's okay. Jordan wanted information about Chemo. I helped him with research. He's scared." When tears entered Katherine's eyes, Rebecca hugged her. "I hope I didn't overstep."

"I'm glad you were here to help."

"Sweetheart, there's no way you're going through this alone."

Gabriel walked in. "What's wrong?"

Katherine dried her eyes. "Everything's perfect."

Shaking his head, Gabriel said, "Of course, it's normal to walk into a room and the two ladies whom I love very much are embraced and crying. Why would I be worried?"

Katherine hugged him. "I'm blessed and it's because you pushed your way into my life. Thank you."

TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 48

After the family dinner Sunday evening, Jordan sat on the couch beside his mom. "Last night I researched chemo." When Katherine didn't comment, he continued, "You're going to experience fatigue, nausea, memory loss, and pain."

"Those are some side effects, but the medicine needs to be strong to kill the cancer," answered Katherine.

Joshua added, "I heard your hair's going to fall out."

After she nodded, Jordan asked, "It'll grow back, right?"

Sarah came from the kitchen and put her hands on Jordan's shoulders. "It will."

Rebecca had followed Sarah. "We're going to help your mom through this. We're here for you boys too. It'll take all of us, but that's what families do, work together."

Jeremy scanned the room. "Where's Coach and Grandpa?"

Sarah glanced over her shoulder. "They're outside."

Rebecca laughed. "Probably up to no good."

Jordan continued, "My research said Mom will do okay tomorrow and probably most of Tuesday but will start feeling bad Wednesday and then really bad until Sunday night. Then the cycle repeats itself every other week for eight weeks. Once phase two starts chemo's every week for twelve weeks."

Sitting in a chair beside Joel, Sarah said, "That's why I've moved into the spare bedroom. I want to be close in case your mom or any of you need me. After all of that, we have radiation therapy for six weeks. We're talking about twenty-six weeks before we can begin to get back to normal."

"Harold and I will visit once a day to see if there's any way we can help. We're all in this together."

Jeremy smiled. "I like it when you and Grandpa visit."

"That's because they spoilt you rotten," teased Joshua.

Sarah put her arm around Joel. "You're awfully quiet. Questions?"

Harold and Gabriel walked into the room. Gabriel nodded toward Katherine as he asked, "Joel, why don't you come with us?"

Joel got up and followed the men outside.

Katherine stood. "Maybe I should..."

"Sit," interrupted Sarah. "They're fine. You can talk with Gabriel later."

"True."

*****
After Harold and Rebecca went home, and the boys were upstairs, Sarah went to her room and left Gabriel and Katherine alone.

As they cuddled on the couch, Katherine asked, "What were you and your dad up to?"

"Father and son talk."

"Care to elaborate?"

Gabriel chuckled. "It wouldn't do any good to say it was a private conversation, would it?"

She studied his eyes. "Probably not."

"I want you to lean on me and draw strength to get through this." He hesitated. "What if I fall short?"

"We've only known each other about two months."

He kissed her. "For the first time in my life I know exactly what I want. You."

Katherine started to speak, but it was interrupted with another kiss.

"Most women were interested in my pro-status and money. None of that impressed you."

"I wasn't looking for a man in my life and definitely not a playboy jock." Katherine tilted her head and thought. "My family's my priority."

"They are and I respect that. I'll never get in the way."

Katherine leaned her head against his chest. "You aren't. You've helped me become a better parent. You're great with the boys. They need you in their lives."

Gabriel grinned. "You know my goal is to marry you, don't you?"

"You've mentioned it on several occasions."

"I haven't changed my mind."

"You've made it clear; to include not accepting a coaching job with UT." Katherine paused. "Are you having second thoughts?"

Gabriel's kiss lingered. "Definitely not. I'm where I want to be. My concern is I may not know how to help."

"Just being here's enough. That you're excellent at."

He checked his watch. "I'd better get home. I'll come by in the morning to get Jordan." He paused. "I'll be here around my usual lunch time and take you for your infusion. I think Sarah's coming too. Mom and Dad will be available to get the boys from school." He stood and offered his hand to help her up. After they walked to the door, another kiss followed. "Good night."



CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons. She teaches high school math and also coaches girls cross country.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Rodney Frost: Math department head, at least for now.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Frank Collins Math teacher.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Alan Green an Assistant Principal

Sandy Frost Rodney Frost's wife

Sam Auto repair shop owner

Bill Brooks Assistant football coach, Gabriel's friend, and Angie's husband.

Harold Hudson Gabriel's dad and football announcer.

Sandy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Judy Teenage girl on cross country team.

Rhonda Morgan Teenage girl on cross country team, and victim of dating violence.

Mr. and Mrs. Morgan Rhonda's parents.

Kenny Clark Teenager - Rhonda's boyfriend

Grace Former friend of Gabriel and featured in porn magazine

Janette & Jackson Riley Katherine's in-laws

Dr. Martin Jordan's doctor

Troy Elder Lawyer and friend of Gabriel from his pro-football days

UIL The University Interscholastic League exists to provide educational extracurricular academic, athletic, and music contests. The UIL was created by The University of Texas at Austin in 1910 and has grown into the largest inter-school org

Benjamin Weinberg Lawyer for George's mistress and baby

Gail Mitchel and her daughter, Jewel George's mistress and baby

Melton Ivory Lawyer who tried to get a date with Katherine

Mr. Novak Riley's lawyer

Judge Ryan Washington Judge Troy asked to sit in the meeting.




 

Author Notes Thank you Google images for the photo of ways to reduce breast cancer risks. I also want to thank everybody for the helpful reviews. Again, thank you for catching those errors. There are 3 posts left after this one. Katherine and Gabriel still have some life issues to navigate. This novel is not actually about football but is part of the background. High football is a national pastime in Texas. This post is a little under 900 words. I know it's short, but says all that needs to be said. LOL


Chapter 78
Football Chapter 49

By barbara.wilkey

Katherine and Gabriel have known each other for 71 days.

ENDING OF PREVIOUS POST:

Gabriel's kiss lingered. "Definitely not. I'm where I want to be. My concern is I may not know how to help."

"Just being here's enough. That you're excellent at."

He checked his watch. "I'd better get home. I'll come by in the morning to get Jordan." He paused. "I'll be here around my usual lunch time and take you for your infusion. I think Sarah's coming too. Mom and Dad will be available to get the boys from school." He stood and offered his hand to help her up. After they walked to the door, another kiss followed. "Good night."

TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 49

Monday Gabriel stood at the kitchen door and watched Katherine sitting on the back porch, before he said, "Sarah said you were out here. Are you enjoying the beautiful day?"

Katherine turned. "I'm thinking about how fast life changes, and the little control we have over it."

He leaned over, kissed her, and then sat. "True."

Sarah brought out a tray with lunch. "Katherine, you should eat before we leave."

"Mom, you didn't need to go to this much trouble."

She put her hand on Gabriel's shoulder and teased, "Yes, I did. I have firsthand knowledge of this man's appetite."

"Guilty as charged." Gabriel glanced at Katherine. "Are you joining me?"

"I'm not hungry."

Sarah frowned, as her eyes met Gabriel's, she turned and then went inside.

Gabriel held Katherine's hand. "You need to keep up your strength."

"I know, but I have a nervous stomach. I'm not sure anything would stay down."

"Understood." Gabriel pushed his plate aside.

"Please eat. I know you're hungry."

"I'll wait." He glanced at his watch. "We need to leave in a few minutes anyway."

Katherine stood. "I'll finish getting ready."

Gabriel watched her go inside.

Sarah returned. "Please eat something. I'm sure she'll be a while." After Gabriel took a bite, she continued, "She's frightened."

"We all are." He took another bite. "I'll give her a few minutes."

After sitting, Sarah said, "Katherine will be angry with me for saying this but you need to know." She took a drink of tea. "My daughter never discussed her marriage, but we knew things weren't right. She closed all communication. Bob went there on more-than-one occasion to bring her and the boys home. I'm afraid she'll close us out again."

Putting his hand over Sarah's, he said, "I'm going to do my best to keep her from it. She needs our support."

Getting up Sarah hugged Gabriel. "You're the best thing that's ever happened to her. She was back to her old self again; now this."

He kissed her cheek. "Thank you for saying it." He glanced inside the house. "I guess I'll see if she's ready."

"Sure you don't want to eat more?"

Gabriel chuckled. "As tempting as it is, I'm sure." He stood in front of Katherine's bedroom door for a few moments and took a deep breath before knocking. "You about ready?" When she didn't answer, he leaned his head against the door. She's crying. Now what? He glanced at Sarah, who motioned for him to enter. "Katherine, I hope it's okay but I'm coming in."

As he spoke, the door opened. "Thank you." He studied her face. "You look like you could use a hug." He opened his arms and waited. Once she accepted the hug, he kissed her forehead. "Is there any way I can make this easier?"

"No," she whispered.

"I'm here." After she nodded, he continued, "Ready?"

"Not really, but I don't have a choice." She swallowed. "Let's go." She reached over, grabbed a jacket, and her purse.

*****
Inside the hospital, Katherine stood at the counter of the oncology department. As she waited, she glanced at Gabriel and Sarah.

Sarah grabbed Gabriel's hand and whispered, "She's nervous."

He grinned at her hand holding his. "So's her mom." He took his free hand and covered hers. "I'll see what I can do." He walked up and slipped his arm around Katherine's waist.

She leaned into him. "I have to have blood work before anything happens." When his eyes widened, she added, "Before each infusion, they'll check my red and white blood cells along with the platelets. They're checking for the obvious, anemia, low white blood cells; infection. Low platelets; bruising and or bleeding. This is going to be brutal, isn't it?"

"Yes, but you're stronger. Just remember cancer can't conquer your spirit."

Katherine nodded and mouthed, "Thank you." She laid her head against his chest.

*****
After completing the labs, they returned to the waiting room until an oncology nurse called them back. Once Carol called them and they went to her office, she immediately placed an adhesive containing numbing medicine over her venous access port. "This will help since today's the first time we've accessed it. It can sting. The more often it's used the less it stings, but we'll numb it each time, just in case." As she took Katherine's vitals, she explained, "I'll be your nurse through the entire process and anytime, day or night," she handed her card to Katherine, "call with any concerns or problems."

Katherine handed it to Gabriel. "Please hold this for me."

He accepted it.

Carol teased, "Your weight's good. I wish you had a few extra pounds. Most people lose weight with this process. You don't have any extra to lose."

Gabriel chuckled. "I've mentioned you didn't have ten extra pounds hiding anywhere."

Hot pink crept across Katherine's cheeks.

As they walked into the infusion room, Carol pointed to a hanging bell. "After your last treatment, you'll ring that bell."

Katherine stared at the bell and exhaled.

Gabriel's hand patted her arm. "You'll make it."

She glanced at him and nodded.

Carol adjusted some plastic tubing. "Katherine, please unbutton the first few buttons of your blouse so I can prep the port." As she waited, she said, "Phase one will last eight weeks. First we'll infuse Adriamycin." She held up the bag. "As you can see it's bright red. Your urine will have a red tinge to it for a few days. When this bag's finished, we'll start the Cytoxian. The entire process will take about two hours. Both of these cause hair loss, fatigue, and nausea. I'm sure Dr. Emil prescribed an anti-nausea pill."

Nodding Katherine said, "He did. I took it a few hours ago. I understand I take another one tonight and tomorrow morning."

"That's right." Carol checked the infusion line. "It's working. Sit back and relax." She pointed to the TV and handed Gabriel the remote control. "In case you want to watch something. I'll be by to check on you."

Katherine's eyes met Sarah's and then Gabriel's. "There's no way I can relax."

*****
A few hours later they arrived home. Katherine attempted to go straight to her room, but Gabriel and Sarah convinced her to sit on the couch and wait for the boys. Gabriel held her hand. "The boys are worried. They need to see you're all right. Mom and Dad are picking up Jeremy and Joel. When Joshua finishes with practice, I'll get him. Bill will bring Jordan home after practice."




~~~~~
I've tried to explain Katherine's first chemo infusion the best as I could and express the emotion. When it got time for me to leave the house to go to the hospital, to be honest, I refused to go. My husband, Brian informed me that I didn't have that choice that I was going to fight the cancer. These two drugs were the same as my first go round of chemo. I did have third one also infused, but it was an experimental drug, so I am not discussing it in the story. One day I was having a pity party over my hair loss.  My son, Steven, he was a senior in high school, said, "Mom, I'd rather have you bald than dead."  He reminded me of what was really important.   I will be happy to answer any questions that I can.
~~~~~


CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons. She teaches high school math and also coaches girls cross country.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Angie Brooks Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Bill Brooks Assistant football coach, Gabriel's friend, and Angie's husband.

Harold Hudson Gabriel's dad and football announcer.

Troy Elder Lawyer and friend of Gabriel from his pro-football days




 

Author Notes Thank you Google images for the photo of a lady receiving chemo. I also want to thank everybody for the helpful reviews. Again, thank you for catching those errors. There are 2 posts left after this one. Katherine and Gabriel still have some life issues to navigate. This novel is not actually about football but is part of the background. High football is a national pastime in Texas. This post is a little under 900 words. I know it's short, but says all that needs to be said. LOL


Chapter 79
Football Chapter 50

By barbara.wilkey

Katherine and Gabriel have known each other for 75 days.

ENDING OF PREVIOUS POST:

A few hours later they arrived home. Katherine attempted to go straight to her room, but Gabriel and Sarah convinced her to sit on the couch and wait for the boys. Gabriel held her hand. "The boys are worried. They need to see you're all right. Mom and Dad are picking up Jeremy and Joel. When Joshua finishes with practice, I'll get him. Bill will bring Jordan home after practice."


TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 50

Early Friday morning, Gabriel and Jordan arrived at the locker room and Gabriel opened his office door. "Come in for a minute. You've been silent. What's on your mind?"

Jordan glared at him and his jaw set.

"I get you're angry. Why?" When Jordan remained silent, Gabriel continued, "Say what's on your mind."

"Last night." Jordan took a deep breath. "I know Mom ignored you and refused to leave her room. Things are bad. All she's done is vomit. Her hair's mostly fallen out. It started Wednesday night." He bit his lower lip attempting to control threatening tears. "After you left, Grandma and Mom had a terrible fight. Grandma told her that she was wrong for not talking to you. Mom said horrible things to her." His chin quivered. "You tell us if we want something bad enough we'll fight for it. Is that just talk? Why'd you give up?"

"Your mom didn't want me there."

"Isn't Mom worth fighting for? You obviously don't think so. Maybe you haven't changed." Jordan left and muttered, "Maybe you're just a playboy jock."

After Jordan left, Bill stood in Gabriel's office doorway. "Want to talk?"

"You heard?" After his friend nodded, Gabriel shoved the desktop contents to the floor. "Jordan's right."

"Getting angry won't help." He waited a few moments before he asked, "What happened?"

"Last night Katherine locked herself in her room. She wouldn't acknowledge I knocked on her door. She wanted nothing to do with me. I got hurt and left."

"Did you get hurt or did your pride get in the way? This is probably the first time in your life a female turned you away."

Gabriel glared at him. "You're analyzing me?"

"I'm your friend. I know you're not a playboy jock. The best thing that's ever happened to you is slipping away. You love Katherine and she loves you. Don't allow cancer to cripple that love." Bill took a deep breath.  "Poison's being injected in her veins. She's not herself. Jordan's right. Is everything you preach just empty words? When it gets hard, you can't handle it? She's worth fighting for. Why aren't you?"

Gabriel hung his head for a few moments, before his eyes met Bill's. "I promised I'd be there for them and the first time it got hard I left." He glanced at his watch. "It's too early. Katherine's sleeping. After practice, I'm fighting." He ran his hand through his short hair. "I'll call Paul and clear it. It'll probably take all day. You'll have to coach tonight's game." When Bill's eyes widened, he added, "I'll leave a game plan. Bring Jordan home too."

"You sure about the game?"

"This'll be hardest thing I've ever done in my life."

"Harder than Katherine allowing you into her life?"

Nodding, Gabriel said, "Close. She'll say something like, 'You didn't sign up for this'."

*****
While Gabriel finished the game plan, Paul walked into his office and shut the door.

Gabriel's eyes met his friend's. "We usually meet in your office. Why the special visit?"

"I'm worried about you. It's not like you to miss a game. What's going on with Katherine?"

"Why do you assume it's Katherine?"

"We've been friends since Junior High and you've never missed a game. I remember a game in high school you injured your knee and attempted to convince Coach Beck to allow you back in." Paul scanned the room. "Can you pour me a cup of coffee?" After he sipped the coffee, he continued, "Thank you." He hesitated. "I heard a rumor that young Riley raked you over the coals and you allowed it."

Gabriel scanned the room. "You have my office bugged?" He chuckled. "I'm not sure how you heard that. He did, and I deserved it. He wanted answers. I was wrong and am taking the day to correct it." He exhaled. "I'm guessing you want details."

"Only if you need to talk."

"I never realized how much you and Bill liked to talk." Gabriel avoided eye contact. "I was with Katherine Wednesday evening and some side effects were starting, but they weren't bad yet. I guess they got worse. According to Jordan she's had a lot of vomiting and her hair fell out. When I went there for lunch Thursday, Sarah said she was sleeping. When I returned after practice, she had locked herself in her room and refused to talk. I tried to convince her to let me in, but she wouldn't. I was hurt, maybe my pride got in the way, but I gave up and left."

"That's a tough call."

"Anyway, Jordan questioned my motive. He asked, why I didn't think she was worth fighting for." Gabriel refilled his coffee cup. "He's right. I didn't fight for her." After a long pause, he continued, "So now I need to make things right and pray Katherine will forgive me."

"You two belong together. I'm sure it will eventually work out. Chemo really messes with people."

"I went to the doctors' appointments with her plus researched the side effects. I knew them. I..." His hand hit the desk. "I messed up."

"Get going and correct the situation."

"I may have to break the door down, before we'll be able to talk face-to-face."

"I wouldn't advise that. It might make matters worse."

Gabriel chuckled. "You could be right. I'll rethink that option."

*****
As Gabriel and Reggie climbed in his pick-up, he called Sarah. After she answered, he said, "I heard you and Katherine had words last night. I'm sorry I caused an argument." He listened. "So she hasn't spoken to you either. I'm on my way." Again, he was silent. "You may be right. It might be better if you're not there. You sure you don't mind?" He chuckled. "I bet your houseplants could use water, but I doubt it'll take all day." He listened. "All right, I'll stay in touch."

*****
Gabriel used his key, unlocked the door, and held it open for Reggie. "Why don't you and Daisy take a nap?" He shook his head. "When have I ever had to tell you to nap? Go do your thing." He stood in the middle of the living room and stared at Katherine's bedroom door. Now what? I guess I push forward like I always do.

Knocking, he said, "Katherine, we need to talk."

Silence.

He knocked again and then turned the knob. "Katherine, I'm not leaving until we talk."

Again silence.

Studying her door, he knocked. "I'm going to my truck to get tools. You leave me no option but to remove the door." He walked toward the front door. That's stupid. The hinges are on the inside, I can't remove it. Turning around, he considered the knob. It uses the old fashioned skeleton key. Maybe I can jimmy it. He removed his pocket knife, opened it, and inserted it in the key hole wiggling it. "Katherine, I'm unlocking the door."

Silence continued.

As he shook the door knob, a key fell from the top door jamb. Maybe I should've checked there first. He inserted the key. "Katherine, I have the key. I'm unlocking the door."

Once the door opened, Katherine stood in the center of the bedroom and glared at him. "You broke into my room. You need to leave."

"I used a key. I'm not sure it's illegal." Gabriel's eyes met hers. "I'm not leaving until we talk."

"There's nothing to talk about. Now leave." She headed toward the bathroom.

Gabriel sighed when he heard vomiting. Jordan wasn't exaggerating. Her eyes are hollow. She's probably dehydrated. I wonder how she's been sleeping.

A few moments later she returned. "I see you're still here. I guess I didn't make myself clear. I want you gone."

"There are a few problems with that. First, you're not doing well, and second, I'm not leaving until we talk." He teased, "I've been accused of being pushy and incorrigible. I'm living up to my reputation."

"There's nothing you can do."

"I can be by your side and support you." Gabriel stepped closer. "I love you. I'm not allowing you to go through this alone."

Katherine inhaled. "I'm giving you an out for everything you've said. You can leave."

He touched her arm. "I'm not leaving. I meant every word."

Tears streamed down her cheeks as she yanked off the scarf covering her bare head. "You didn't sign up for this. Look at me."

Gabriel took the scarf from her hand and replaced it. "I'm not in love with your hair."

"Chemo may make me sterile. I may not be able to give you children."

"If we have a child together, I'd be happy. If not, I'm satisfied." He paused. "I'm not George. I love you. Your ability to have my children has nothing to do with me wanting to marry you."

She swiped at her tear stained cheeks as she started to lift her T-shirt.

"Don't," he interrupted and touched her hand.

She raised it and revealed the almost six inches long surgical scar on her partial right breast. "Tell me you can spend the rest of your life making love to this!" She sobbed.

Putting his arms around her, Gabriel guided her head to his chest and held tight. "None of this matters. I love you. Not your hair or your breasts."

She mumbled through crying. "But you're used to models."

He kissed her forehead. "You haven't figured it out yet, if I wanted a model I'd be with a model. I want you, Katherine Sarah Beck Riley and your ready-made family." He used his hand to raise her chin and kissed her.

"Really?"

"Really. You're the one love of my life. You're stuck with me."

Drying her tears, she said, "I am, aren't I? I'm really stuck with you."

Gabriel chuckled. "You are, but please try to contain the enthusiasm."

"Sorry. I didn't mean it like it sounded. I just realized you're serious. I'm not going to wake up someday and you're gone."

Holding her as tight as he could, Gabriel kissed her. "I'm sorry you believed that. I thought you understood how much I love you."

"I do." Katherine glanced at a large envelope lying on her dresser. "I have something for you." She turned and rushed to the bathroom, but didn't make it. Leaning over the toilet her vomiting continued.

When she finished, Gabriel stood at the door and surveyed the damage. Vomit everywhere, the floor, rug, outside the toilet, and her T-shirt.

"Sorry, I didn't make it."

"Take off your clothes and get in the shower."

"But..."

"Do it. I can honestly say the farthest thing from my mind is lusting after your naked body. I'll clean this up."

"You don't need to."

"Where would I find clean clothes?"

"In the second drawer."

"I'll pass them to you after I clean up the mess." He took her dirty clothes and the area rug to the laundry room and got cleaning supplies.

As he left, he heard her say, "You didn't sign up for this."

"Wantta bet?"

*****
After the mess was cleaned and Katherine was resting, Gabriel asked, "Have you called Carol? I'm wondering if the anti-barf pills are working. Maybe a different medication would work better."

"I've wondered about that. I'll call in a few minutes." She glanced at the dresser. "First, I have something to talk to you about." She started to get up.

"Don't move," interrupted Gabriel. "What do you need?"

She pointed. "That envelope."

Gabriel picked it up. "This one?" After she nodded, he brought it to her.

"It has your name on it."

"I see that. Do you know what's in it?"

"Yes." Katherine hesitated. "Why don't you take it to another room and read? I want you to think about it before we discuss it."

His eyebrows rose. "Okay. I'll be in the kitchen if you need me. I'll make some coffee."

"You don't need to make me any."

He glanced toward the bathroom. "I figured that."

*****
When Gabriel returned to the bedroom, Katherine was asleep. He went back to the kitchen and called Troy Elder, his lawyer and friend.

Once the call was answered Gabriel said, "Thank you for asking. Her first round of chemo isn't going well." He listened. "Yes, she just gave me the will." Again he listened. "Of course, I'd be honored to raise the boys. You know her in-laws will contest this, don't you?" He tapped the table as he listened. "So she expected that, and had you write it in such a way they could never get or have access to them."


~~~~~
The anti-barf pills, is what I used to call them, were very expensive even a few years back. One pill cost $135. I'm sure the price only went up. Luckily my insurance paid everything. Chemo can really mess with your brain. One morning when I was going to work, I backed the car out of the garage, only I forgot to open the garage door. It's called 'chemo brain'. One of my sons' Andrew had given me a new garage door opener for Christmas, the previous one only worked when it felt like it. When I told him about my accident, he said, "Mom, if you didn't want a new garage door opener all you had to do was tell me." LOL Again, I attempted to describe the emotions of going through this. I hope I succeeded.
~~~~~


CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons. She teaches high school math and also coaches girls' cross country.

Daisy: Katherine's yellow Labrador

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Reggie: a very large English Mastiff

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua: Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel: Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Angie Brooks: Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Rebecca and Harold Hudson: Gabriel's parents

Sarah and Bob Beck: Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Bill Brooks: Assistant football coach, Gabriel's friend, and Angie's husband.

Troy Elder: Lawyer and friend of Gabriel from his pro-football days

 

Author Notes Thank you Google images for the photo of a lady after she lost her hair. I also want to thank everybody for the helpful reviews. Again, thank you for catching those errors. There is 1 post left after this one. This novel is not actually about football but is part of the background. High football is a national pastime in Texas. This post is a little over 2100 words. I know it's short, but says all that needs to be said. LOL


Chapter 80
Chapter 51

By barbara.wilkey

Katherine and Gabriel have known each other for 76 days.

ENDING OF PREVIOUS POST:

When Gabriel returned to the bedroom, Katherine was asleep. He went back to the kitchen and called Troy Elder, his lawyer and friend.

Once the call was answered Gabriel said, "Thank you for asking. Her first round of chemo isn't going well." He listened. "Yes, she just gave me the will." Again, he listened. "Of course, I'd be honored to raise the boys. You know her in-laws will contest this, don't you?" He tapped the table as he listened. "So, she expected that, and had you write it in such a way they could never get or have access to them."

TODAY'S POST:

Chapter 51

Around six o'clock Saturday morning, Jordan stood in his mom's bedroom doorway. "Coach? Coach?"

Gabriel awoke and sat on the edge of the bed. "Jordan, I'm sorry. I fell asleep. Nothing..."

"Don't worry, Coach," interrupted Jordan. "I know Mom had a hard night." He glanced up at the air vent. "I heard her vomiting all night."

Gabriel stood. "I'll take you to practice."

"I can jog." He grinned.

Gabriel placed his hand on the teenager's shoulder. "I'll take you. You had a good game last night. I'm sorry I wasn't there to witness it."

"Me too. But I'm glad you settled things with Mom."

"So am I."

*****
After Gabriel discussed a few things with Bill, he stopped by his apartment, and grabbed some clothes. Once at Katherine's, he went out back. I might as well work out before I shower. I'm sure Katherine will sleep for a while.

*****
Mid-morning, Katherine stood at the kitchen window and watched before she went to the back porch. "Good morning, it looks like you've been at this for a while. Are you trying to work through something?" She released a deep breath. "After the way I spoke to you yesterday, I owe you an apology. I'm sure you've changed your mind."

Gabriel grabbed a towel and dried his face, neck, and hair. "Yes and no." He grinned. "Breathe. I know it was the circumstances that caused you to lash out. My love for you or the boys hasn't changed."

He pointed to a lawn chair. "Have a seat. I'd rather shower before we talk, but you look worried. First, we don't need to worry about the will because you're going to be around to a ripe-old-age, but yes, if something happens, I'd be honored to raise the boys."

He glanced toward the kitchen. "I sure could use a cup of coffee." Pausing he added, "That can wait. My work-out thoughts; I fell asleep last night beside you. Jordan woke me up."

Katherine's hand flew over her mouth. "No!" After a moment, she continued, "But nothing happened."

"I was completely dressed and on the outside of the blankets. Jordan knows that. He said he heard through the air vent that you had a rough night."

"This can't happen again."

"I know. That's what I was thinking about." He wiped his hand with the towel before he took hers. "I also don't want to wait twenty-six weeks to make you my wife. I want to get married today."

Katherine's eyes widened. "We can't even get a license. It's Saturday."

Gabriel grinned. "Other than that, would you say yes?"

Getting up, Katherine walked inside.

He followed her. "This silence is making me nervous."

Her eyes met his. "I love you, but this is too fast. We've only known each other a few months. There's no way I can plan a wedding in a day."

"I think it can be done." He held a chair and waited for her to sit before he continued, "I've thought about this. Mom and Dad can pull in some favors, get the license, and minister. Angie can get your dress and my ring. Sarah can take care of the flowers. We'll have the wedding here..." he grinned, "near the bathroom." He hesitated. "Both our moms, with Angie's help can come up with dinner."

"We'll only invite our parents, Bill, Angie, and Paul?"

"Yes, and Paul's wife."

Katherine rubbed her arms. "I doubt our wedding night would live up to your expectations."

Gabriel leaned over and kissed her. "I understand. That's not why I'm marrying you. When all of this is over, I promise you a honeymoon worthy of our love." He glanced toward the bedroom. "I won't allow you to go through this alone. I will be by your side. For that to happen, I need to live here. Being married will stop a lot of problems, plus I want to set a good example for the boys."

"Thank you." Katherine jumped up and ran to the bathroom.

"By the way, I called Carol. Your mom's picking up a new anti-barf prescription. I hope you don't mind."

Katherine returned. "Sorry and thank you."

"You haven't answered my question." Gabriel knelt on one knee. "Will you marry me, today?"

"Who would give me away?" She tilted her head. "What about the boys?"

"That's perfect." Hanging his head, Gabriel chuckled. "I'm down here on one knee and you still haven't answered my question." He rose, took a small box out of his gym bag, and got down on his knee, again. "Maybe this will help. I've had it for a while but was waiting for the right time." He opened the box revealing an engagement ring. "Katherine, will you please marry me?"

Katherine covered her mouth.

Gabriel placed the carat diamond ring on her finger. "I took the hand covering your mouth as a yes."

She found her voice, "Yes," and threw her arms around his neck. "Yes."

After a few lingering kisses, Katherine ran to the bathroom.

Shaking his head, Gabriel said, "I'll get this wedding in motion." He made phone calls.

 

THE END

 

CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons. She teaches high school math and also coaches girls' cross country.

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Jeremy: Katherine's six year old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen year old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua: Katherine's thirteen year old son. He's in 8th grade

Joel: Katherine's eleven year old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Angie Brooks: Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Sarah and Bob Beck: Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased

Bill Brooks: Assistant football coach, Gabriel's friend, and Angie's husband.

Troy Elder: Lawyer and friend of Gabriel from his pro-football days

Author Notes Thank you Google images for the photo of a diamond ring. I also want to thank everybody for the helpful reviews. Again, thank you for catching those errors. This novel is not actually about football but is part of the background. High football is a national pastime in Texas. This post is a little under 900 words.


Chapter 81
Epilogue???

By barbara.wilkey

Many of my readers have suggested I write an epilogue. They wanted to know what is going on with Katherine, Gabriel, and the boys.

I had no intentions of writing an epilogue. As I'm working on editing this novel, in the back of my mind was you'd ask for one. I was considering it.

As in all of my novels, my characters guide my writing. When I started this novel, my ending was completely different from where my characters led me. So, the epilogue is also guided by my characters.

Gabriel and Katherine have requested that you honor their privacy during this time. They hope later after all of this is over, they'll be able to share their future with you.

Thank you for honoring their request.

Author Notes Thank you google images for the image. Thank you, readers, for the wonderful support you continually give me.


Chapter 82
Epilogue 2

By barbara.wilkey

Previous Epilogue:

As in all of my novels, my characters guide my writing. When I started this novel, my ending was completely different from where my characters led me. So, the epilogue is also guided by my characters.

Gabriel and Katherine have requested that you honor their privacy during this time. They hope later after all of this is over, they'll be able to share their future with you.

Thank you for honoring their request.



The long-awaited Epilogue

Almost a year and a half later:


Gabriel helped Katherine from the limousine. They stood on the sidewalk and stared at their house as Katherine exhaled. "We're back to reality, are you ready?"

Kissing her and picking her up, Gabriel said, "As wonderful as our month away has been, I'm actually looking forward to continuing our life together." He chuckled. "Ready to enter the lion's den?"

"Are you going to let me walk?"

"Nope, usually a groom carries his wife over their home's threshold. Since we were married in the house and with the circumstances at the time, I wasn't able to." He held her tighter and kissed her. "Now's my chance."

As Gabriel carried her inside, Jeremy ran down the stairs. "Mom and Dad are back!" When Gabriel set Katherine on the floor, Jeremy hugged them both. "I missed you a lot."

Bill and Angela walked in from the kitchen. "Welcome, back."

Bill grinned. "We have a bet. Katherine, where did this guy take you for your honeymoon? Angela says to the French Riviera. I say something like a Puerto Rican Beach."

Sarah walked in. "I think it was an ocean cruise."

Jordan walked in the front door, with Gabriel's parents, Rebecca and Harold. Harold grinned and slapped Gabriel on the back. "Jordan really liked his visit to the University of Texas. He may follow in your footsteps."

Gabriel grinned. "He still has a few other places to visit before he has to make up his mind." His eyes met his dad's. "Thanks for following up while we were gone."

"Not a problem. I'm glad we could help."

Katherine had her son wrapped in a hug only a mother could get away with. "I know you'll make the right decision."

"Don't distract them," teased Bill. "We're seeing who won the bet."

Rebecca smiled. "I think you took a trip to the major cities in Europe."

"If I know my son, and I think I do," said Harold. "You rented a private Pacific Island where you could just enjoy your wife and celebrate your marriage, her surviving breast cancer, and your future life together."

Gabriel grinned. "Sarah, is there coffee in the kitchen?"

"Of course. Aren't you going to tell us?"

"After I get a cup of coffee."

When he returned, Gabriel pretended to do a drumroll. "Dad, you were the closest, but didn't get it exactly right. I took my gorgeous wife to a secluded mountain cabin in the Montana Rockies. I wanted to spend time alone and enjoy each other. Nothing to distract us."

Katherine's face glowed. "It was wonderful. I couldn't have imagined a more perfect honeymoon." She took Gabriel's hand. "Thank you for making it perfect."

Jeremy glanced at everybody. "Who's fixing dinner? I'm hungry."

Katherine scanned the area. "It seems we're missing two boys."

Bill nodded toward the stairs. "I have a feeling they're engrossed in a ball game and haven't paid attention to what's going on around them."

Gabriel started up the stairs. "I'll get them."

*****
Once Joel and Joshua were downstairs and welcomed their parents, Rebecca, Sarah, Angela, and Katherine got busy with dinner.

Angela and Katherine set the table as Angela asked, "Mr. Edwards keeps asking if you're ready to resume teaching. Did you and Gabriel discuss it?"

"We did. It's been a little over a year since my last radiation treatment. I feel strong. Gabriel and I took long hikes and started our running routine again. I think I'm more than ready to get back to work. I'm also planning on coaching girls' cross country. Ready to help?"

"Has Gabriel blessed off on this?" asked Angela.

Gabriel walked in. "What have I blessed off on?"

Kissing his cheek, Katherine said, "Me going back to work."

"And coaching cross country," interrupted Angela.

He studied Katherine and nodded. "I have my reservations, but she has my full support. I understand how important it is to her."

Smiling Katherine said, "Thank you." She laughed. "Besides you'll be right there butting your way in."

He kissed her. "It's part of my charm, don't you know?"

*****
When dinner was over, everybody left, and the boys went upstairs. Gabriel and Katherine sat on the couch in an embrace. Gabriel exhaled. "This year will be busy since it's Jordan's senior year."

"Joshua will be a sophomore. Will he make varsity? Imagine them both on the same football team? Their personalities are so different. It might be hard."

Chuckling Gabriel said, "You're right. Joshua has talent and good size. He'll easily make varsity. I'm glad they play different positions. There shouldn't be any competition between them."

Katherine glanced toward the stairs. "At least Jeremy's calming down a little. Third grade should be a breeze." She tilted her head. "Joel's so quiet I worry about him. He says he's going out again for football. I hope it's what he wants to do and not what he feels he should do."

Nodding Gabriel said, "I'll talk with him. Maybe man-to-man will help. Eighth grade can be a hard year."

"Thank you." Katherine leaned over, kissed him, and smiled. "You know what the best part is of right now?" When Gabriel's eyebrows rose, she continued, "I don't have to say goodnight to you at the door. I can kiss you goodnight in our bed."

Gabriel lifted her up and carried her to the bedroom. "I plan on doing more than just kissing goodnight, Mrs. Hudson."



CHARACTERS:

Katherine Riley: age 33 - widowed: husband died 6 months ago. She moved to Texas from NYC with her four sons. She teaches high school math and also coaches girls' cross country.

Gabriel Hudson: High School football coach and former NFL defensive lineman

Jeremy: Katherine's six-year-old son. He's in first grade.

Jordan: Katherine's fifteen-year-old son. He's a sophomore.

Joshua: Katherine's thirteen-year-old son. He's in 8th grade.

Joel: Katherine's eleven-year-old son. He's in 6th grade.

Paul Edwards: High School principal and Gabriel's friend.

Angie Brooks: Math teacher and Katherine's friend.

Sarah and Bob Beck: Katherine's parents, Bob is deceased.

Bill Brooks: Assistant football coach, Gabriel's friend, and Angie's husband.




Author Notes Thank you google images for the photograph of a Rocky Mountain cabin. Many of you asked for an epilogue and I really didn't want to do one. One of my editors basically said I need an epilogue to this story. So here is it. Before I sent it to her, I want you to help me edit it. Thank you, readers, for the wonderful support you continually give me.


Chapter 83
Love For The Win

By barbara.wilkey

I wanted to let you know that a week ago, Love For The Win was finally published. You knew it as 'Football - A Novel". I can be found on Amazon under the title or my name. The new novel was supposed to be up on these sites by Friday. It's not there. I have contacted my publisher as to why not. GRRR

Also please check out my website:

https://barbarawilkey.com/

Or my author's page on Facebook:

https://www.facebook.com/barbarawilkeyauthor

or on Facebook you can just search my name. For my author's page you'll find me under Barbara A Wilkey

My publisher told me, the novel about Cordero and Alexandra should be published in about a month and a half. We'll see. The publishing world doesn't seem to act on a timetable.

I'd like to share that I've been invited to another meet the author. It's scheduled for August 17.

Author Notes Please drop by and check these sites and the novel out.


One of thousands of stories, poems and books available online at FanStory.com

You've read it - now go back to FanStory.com to comment on each chapter and show your thanks to the author!



© Copyright 2015 barbara.wilkey All rights reserved.
barbara.wilkey has granted FanStory.com, its affiliates and its syndicates non-exclusive rights to display this work.

© 2015 FanStory.com, Inc. All Rights Reserved. Terms under which this service is provided to you. Privacy Statement